This is a modern-English version of In the Tennessee mountains, originally written by Craddock, Charles Egbert. It has been thoroughly updated, including changes to sentence structure, words, spelling, and grammar—to ensure clarity for contemporary readers, while preserving the original spirit and nuance. If you click on a paragraph, you will see the original text that we modified, and you can toggle between the two versions.

Scroll to the bottom of this page and you will find a free ePUB download link for this book.

IN THE TENNESSEE MOUNTAINS

BY CHARLES EGBERT CRADDOCK

BY CHARLES EGBERT CRADDOCK

BOSTON AND NEW YORK

Boston and New York

HOUGHTON MIFFLIN COMPANY

HOUGHTON MIFFLIN COMPANY

The Riverside Press Cambridge

The Riverside Press Cambridge

COPYRIGHT, 1884, BY HOUGHTON, MIFFLIN & CO.

COPYRIGHT, 1884, BY HOUGHTON, MIFFLIN & CO.

COPYRIGHT, 1912, BY MARY N. MURFREE

COPYRIGHT, 1912, BY MARY N. MURFREE

ALL RIGHTS RESERVED

All rights reserved.


CONTENTS.

DRIFTING DOWN LOST CREEK.
A-PLAYIN' OF OLD SLEDGE AT THE SETTLEMINT.
THE STAR IN THE VALLEY.
ELECTIONEERIN' ON BIG INJUN MOUNTING.
THE ROMANCE OF SUNRISE ROCK.
THE DANCIN' PARTY AT HARRISON'S COVE.
OVER ON THE T'OTHER MOUNTING.
THE "HARNT" THAT WALKS CHILHOWEE.

IN THE TENNESSEE MOUNTAINS.


DRIFTING DOWN LOST CREEK.

I.

I.

High above Lost Creek Valley towers a wilderness of pine. So dense is this growth that it masks the mountain whence it springs. Even when the Cumberland spurs, to the east, are gaunt and bare in the wintry wind, their deciduous forests denuded, their crags unveiled and grimly beetling, Pine Mountain remains a sombre, changeless mystery; its clifty heights are hidden, its chasms and abysses lurk unseen. Whether the skies are blue, or gray, the dark, austere line of its summit limits the horizon. It stands against the west like a barrier. It seemed to Cynthia Ware that nothing which went beyond this barrier ever came back again. One by one the days passed over it, and in splendid apotheosis, in purple and crimson and gold, they were received into the heavens, and returned no more. She beheld love go hence, and many a hope. Even Lost Creek itself, meandering for miles between the ranges, suddenly sinks into the earth, tunnels an unknown channel beneath the mountain, and is never seen again. She often watched the floating leaves, a nettle here and there, the broken wing of a moth, and wondered whither these trifles were borne, on the elegiac current. She came to fancy that her life was like them, worthless in itself and without a mission; drifting down Lost Creek, to vanish vaguely in the mountains.

High above Lost Creek Valley looms a forest of pine. It's so thick that it conceals the mountain from which it grows. Even when the Cumberland Mountains to the east are bare and stark against the wintry wind, their leafy trees stripped away, their cliffs exposed and grim, Pine Mountain remains a dark, unchanging mystery; its rugged heights are hidden, and its chasms and depths stay out of sight. Whether the sky is blue or gray, the dark, austere outline of its peak defines the horizon. It stands against the west like a wall. Cynthia Ware felt that nothing beyond this wall ever reappeared. Day after day passed over it, and in breathtaking beauty, in shades of purple, crimson, and gold, they were welcomed into the sky and never returned. She watched love leave, as well as many hopes. Even Lost Creek itself, winding for miles through the mountains, suddenly disappears into the ground, carving an unknown path beneath the mountain, never to be seen again. She often observed the drifting leaves, an occasional nettle, the broken wing of a moth, and wondered where these small things were carried away on the mournful current. She began to feel that her life was like them, valueless on its own and without purpose; drifting down Lost Creek, destined to fade into the mountains.

Yet her life had not always been thus destitute of pleasure and purpose. There was a time—and she remembered it well—when she found no analogies in Lost Creek. Then she saw only a stream gayly dandering down the valley, with the laurel and the pawpaw close in to its banks, and the kildeer's nest in the sand.

Yet her life hadn't always been so lacking in joy and meaning. There was a time—and she remembered it clearly—when she found no comparisons in Lost Creek. Back then, she saw only a cheerful stream winding down the valley, with laurel and pawpaw trees right by its banks, and the kildeer's nest in the sand.

Before it takes that desperate plunge into the unexplored caverns of the mountain, Lost Creek lends its aid to divers jobs of very prosaic work. Further up the valley it turns a mill-wheel, and on Mondays it is wont to assist in the family wash. A fire of pine-knots, kindled beside it on a flat rock, would twine long, lucent white flames about the huge kettle in which the clothes were boiled. Through the steam the distant landscape flickered, ethereal, dream-like. The garments, laid across a bench and beaten white with a wooden paddle, would flutter hilariously in the wind. Deep in some willowy tangle the water-thrush might sing. Ever and anon from the heights above vibrated the clinking of a hand-hammer and the clanking of a sledge. This iterative sound used to pulse like a lyric in Cynthia's heart. But her mother, one day, took up her testimony against it.

Before it takes a desperate plunge into the uncharted caves of the mountain, Lost Creek helps with a variety of ordinary tasks. Further up the valley, it turns a mill wheel, and on Mondays, it often assists with the family laundry. A fire made from pine knots, started next to it on a flat rock, would swirl long, bright white flames around the large kettle where the clothes were boiled. Through the steam, the distant landscape shimmered, almost surreal. The clothes, laid across a bench and beaten white with a wooden paddle, would dance joyfully in the wind. Deep in some willow thicket, a water-thrush might sing. Now and then, the sound of a hand hammer and the clanging of a sledge echoed from the heights above. This rhythmic noise used to resonate like a melody in Cynthia's heart. But one day, her mother decided to speak out against it.

"I do declar', it sets me plumb catawampus ter hev ter listen ter them blacksmiths, up yander ter thar shop, at thar everlastin' chink-chank an' chink-chank, considerin' the tales I hearn 'bout 'em, when I war down ter the quiltin' at M'ria's house in the Cove."

"I swear, it really gets me all worked up to have to listen to those blacksmiths over at their shop, with their constant clanging and banging, especially considering the stories I've heard about them when I was down at the quilting at Maria's place in the Cove."

She paused to prod the boiling clothes with a long stick. She was a tall woman, fifty years of age, perhaps, but seeming much older. So gaunt she was, so toothless, haggard, and disheveled, that but for her lazy step and languid interest she might have suggested one of Macbeth's witches, as she hovered about the great cauldron.

She stopped to stir the boiling clothes with a long stick. She was a tall woman, around fifty years old, but looking much older. She was so thin, so toothless, haggard, and messy that if it weren't for her slow walk and lack of enthusiasm, she could have reminded someone of one of Macbeth's witches as she hovered around the big cauldron.

"They 'lowed down yander ter M'ria's house ez this hyar Evander Price hev kem ter be the headin'est, no 'count critter in the kentry! They 'lowed ez he hev been a-foolin' round Pete Blenkins's forge, a-workin' fur him ez a striker, till he thinks hisself ez good a blacksmith ez Pete, an' better. An' all of a suddenty this same 'Vander Price riz up an' made a consarn ter bake bread in, sech ez hed never been seen in the mountings afore. They 'lowed down ter M'ria's ez they dunno what he patterned arter. The Evil One must hev revealed the contrivance ter him. But they say it did cook bread in less 'n haffen the time that the reg'lar oven takes; leastwise his granny's bread, 'kase his mother air a toler'ble sensible woman, an' would tech no sech foolish fixin'. But his granny 'lowed ez she didn't hev long ter live, nohow, an' mought ez well please the chil'ren whilst she war spared. So she resked a batch o' her salt-risin' bread on the consarn, an' she do say it riz like all possessed, an' eat toler'ble short. An' that banged critter 'Vander war so proud o' his contrivance that he showed it ter everybody ez kem by the shop. An' when two valley men rid by, an' one o' thar beastis cast a shoe, 'Vander hed ter take out his contraption fur them ter gape over, too. An' they ups an' says they hed seen the like afore a-many a time; sech ovens war common in the valley towns. An' when they fund out ez 'Vander hed never hearn on sech, but jes' got the idee out 'n his own foolishness, they jes' stared at one another. They tole the boy ez he oughter take hisself an' his peartness in workin' in iron down yander ter some o' the valley towns, whar he'd find out what other folks hed been doin' in metal, an' git a good hank on his knack fur new notions. But 'Vander, he clung ter the mountings. They 'lowed down yander at M'ria's quiltin' ez 'Vander fairly tuk ter the woods with grief through other folks hevin' made sech contraptions ez his'n, afore he war born."

They said down at M'ria's house that this guy Evander Price had become the most useless person in the area! They figured he had been hanging around Pete Blenkins's forge, working as a striker, until he thought he was as good a blacksmith as Pete, if not better. Then all of a sudden, this same Evander Price stood up and created a contraption to bake bread like no one had ever seen in the mountains before. They figured at M'ria's that they didn’t know what he based it on. The Devil must have shown him how to make it. But they said it baked bread in less than half the time a regular oven takes; at least his granny's bread, since his mother was a fairly sensible woman and wouldn’t mess with such a silly thing. But his granny thought she didn’t have long to live anyway, and might as well please the kids while she was still around. So she risked a batch of her salt-rising bread on the contraption, and she said it rose like it was possessed and baked pretty quick. And that proud guy Evander was so impressed with his creation that he showed it to everyone who came by the shop. And when two men from the valley rode by and one of their horses lost a shoe, Evander had to pull out his contraption for them to gawk at, too. They said they had seen something like that many times before; such ovens were common in the valley towns. And when they found out that Evander had never heard of anything like that and just came up with the idea out of his own foolishness, they just looked at each other in shock. They told the boy that he should take his pride and his ironworking skills down to some of the valley towns, where he’d learn what others had been doing with metal and get a better grasp on his talent for new ideas. But Evander clung to the mountains. They said down at M'ria's quilting that Evander was really upset that other people had made contraptions like his before he was even born.

The girl stopped short in her work of pounding the clothes, and, leaning the paddle on the bench, looked up toward the forge with her luminous brown eyes full of grave compassion. Her calico sun-bonnet was thrust half off her head. Its cavernous recesses made a background of many shades of brown for her auburn hair, which was of a brilliant, rich tint, highly esteemed of late years in civilization, but in the mountains still accounted a capital defect. There was nothing as gayly colored in all the woods, except perhaps a red-bird, that carried his tufted topknot so bravely through shade and sheen that he might have been the transmigrated spirit of an Indian, still roaming in the old hunting-ground. The beech shadows, delicately green, imparted a more ethereal fairness to her fair face, and her sombre brown homespun dress heightened the effect by contrast. Her mother noted an unwonted flush upon her cheek, and recommenced with a deep, astute purpose.

The girl paused in her task of pounding the clothes, leaning the paddle against the bench as she looked up toward the forge with her bright brown eyes filled with serious compassion. Her calico sun bonnet was pushed halfway off her head. The deep shadows inside it created a backdrop of various shades of brown for her auburn hair, which had a vivid, rich color that had become popular in recent years but was still seen as a flaw in the mountains. There was nothing as brightly colored in the woods, except maybe a redbird, which proudly carried its tufted crown through the light and shade as if it were the reincarnated spirit of an Indian still wandering the old hunting grounds. The delicate green beech shadows added an almost otherworldly beauty to her fair face, while her dark brown homespun dress accentuated the contrast. Her mother noticed an unusual flush on her cheek and resumed her work with a deep, thoughtful intention.

"They 'lowed down yander in the Cove, ter M'ria's quiltin', ez this hyar 'Vander Price hev kem ter be mighty difficult, sence he hev been so gin over ter pride in his oven an' sech. They 'lowed ez even Pete Blenkins air fairly afeard o' him. Pete hisself hev always been knowed ez a powerful evil man, an' what 'twixt drink an' deviltry mos' folks hev been keerful ter gin him elbow-room. But this hyar 'Vander Price hectors round an' jaws back so sharp ez Pete hev got ter be truly mealy-mouthed where 'Vander be. They 'lowed down yander at M'ria's quiltin' ez one day Pete an' 'Vander bed a piece o' iron a-twixt 'em on the anvil, an' Pete would tap, same ez common, with the hand-hammer on the hot metal ter show Vander whar ter strike with the sledge. An' Pete got toler'ble bouncin', an' kep' faultin' Vander,—jes' like he use ter quar'l with his t'other striker, till the man would bide with him no more. All at wunst 'Vander hefted the sledge, an' gin Pete the ch'ice ter take it on his skull-bone, or show more manners. An' Pete showed 'em."

"They said down there in the Cove, at M'ria's quilting, that this Vander Price has become really difficult ever since he got so proud about his oven and stuff. They said even Pete Blenkins is pretty scared of him. Pete has always been known as a pretty rough guy, and because of his drinking and troublemaking, most folks have been careful to give him space. But this Vander Price struts around and talks back so fiercely that Pete has had to be really cautious when Vander's around. They said down there at M'ria's quilting that one day Pete and Vander had a piece of iron between them on the anvil, and Pete was tapping away, just like usual, with the hand-hammer on the hot metal to show Vander where to strike with the sledge. Pete was getting pretty worked up and kept criticizing Vander—just like he used to argue with his other striker until the guy wouldn’t put up with him anymore. Suddenly, Vander picked up the sledge and gave Pete the choice to take it on his head or behave better. And Pete behaved."

There was a long pause. Lost Creek sounded some broken minor chords, as it dashed against the rocks on its headlong way. The wild grapes were blooming. Their fragrance, so delicate yet so pervasive, suggested some exquisite unseen presence—the dryads were surely abroad! The beech-trees stretched down their silver branches and green shadows. Through rifts in the foliage shimmered glimpses of a vast array of sunny parallel mountains, converging and converging, till they seemed to meet far away in one long, level line, so ideally blue that it looked less like earth than heaven. The pine-knots flamed and glistered under the great wash-kettle. A tree-toad was persistently calling for rain, in the dry distance. The girl, gravely impassive, beat the clothes with the heavy paddle. Her mother shortly ceased to prod the white heaps in the boiling water, and presently took up the thread of her discourse.

There was a long pause. Lost Creek played some broken minor chords as it rushed against the rocks on its fast path. The wild grapes were blooming. Their scent, both delicate and strong, hinted at an exquisite unseen presence—surely the dryads were out and about! The beech trees reached down with their silver branches and green shadows. Through gaps in the leaves, you could see glimpses of a vast range of sunny parallel mountains, coming together and coming together, until they seemed to meet far away in one long, even line, so perfectly blue that it looked less like earth and more like heaven. The pine knots flared and sparkled under the large wash kettle. A tree toad was persistently calling for rain in the dry distance. The girl, looking serious and indifferent, beat the clothes with a heavy paddle. Her mother soon stopped stirring the white heaps in the boiling water and eventually continued her conversation.

"An' 'Vander hev got ter be a mighty suddint man. I hearn tell, when I war down ter M'ria's house ter the quiltin', ez how in that sorter fight an' scrimmage they hed at the mill, las' month, he war powerful ill-conducted. Nobody hed thought of hevin' much of a fight,—thar hed been jes' a few licks passed a-twixt the men thar; but the fust finger ez war laid on this boy, he jes' lit out an' fit like a catamount. Right an' lef' he lay about him with his fists, an' he drawed his huntin' knife on some of 'em. The men at the mill war in no wise pleased with him."

"Vander has to be a really sudden guy. I heard when I was down at Maria's house for the quilting, that during that fight and scuffle they had at the mill last month, he acted really badly. Nobody expected much of a fight—there were just a few punches thrown between the guys there; but as soon as someone laid a finger on this kid, he just took off and fought like a wildcat. He was swinging his fists right and left and even pulled out his hunting knife on some of them. The men at the mill were definitely not happy with him."

"'Pears-like ter me ez 'Vander air a peaceable boy enough, ef he ain't jawed at, an' air lef' be," drawled Cynthia.

"'Pears to me he's a pretty peaceful kid, as long as nobody bothers him and he’s left alone," Cynthia drawled.

Her mother was embarrassed for a moment. Then, with a look both sly and wise, she made an admission,—a qualified admission. "Waal, wimmen—ef—ef—ef they air young an' toler'ble hard-headed yit, air likely ter jaw some, ennyhow. An' a gal oughtn't ter marry a man ez hev sot his heart on bein' lef' in peace. He's apt ter be a mighty sour an' disapp'inted critter."

Her mother felt a bit embarrassed for a moment. Then, with a sly yet wise look, she made a confession—a cautious one. "Well, women—if they're young and pretty stubborn still, are likely to nag some, anyway. And a girl shouldn't marry a man who has his heart set on being left alone. He's probably going to be a really bitter and disappointed guy."

This sudden turn to the conversation invested all that had been said with new meaning, and revealed a subtle diplomatic intention. The girl seemed deliberately to review it, as she paused in her work. Then, with a rising flush, "I ain't studyin' 'bout marryin' nobody," she asserted staidly. "I hev laid off ter live single."

This unexpected shift in the conversation gave everything that had been said a new significance and showed a hidden diplomatic intention. The girl appeared to thoughtfully reconsider it as she took a break from her work. Then, with a slight blush, she stated firmly, "I’m not thinking about marrying anyone. I’ve decided to live single."

Mrs. Ware had overshot the mark, but she retorted, gallantly reckless, "That's what yer aunt Malviny useter declar' fur gospel sure, when she war a gal. An' she hev got ten chil'ren, an' hev buried two husbands, an' ef all they say air true she's tollin' in the third man now. She's a mighty spry, good-featured woman an' a fust-rate manager, yer aunt Malviny air, an' both her husbands lef' her su'thin',—cows, or wagons, or land. An' they war quiet men when they war alive, an' stays whar they air put, now that they air dead; not like old Parson Hoodenpyle what his wife hears stumpin' round the house an' preachin' every night, though she air ez deef ez a post, an' he hev been in glory twenty year,—twenty year, an' better. Yer aunt Malviny hed luck, so mebbe 't ain't no killin' complaint fur a gal ter git ter talkin' like a fool about marryin' an' sech. Leastwise, I ain't minded ter sorrow."

Mrs. Ware had missed the point, but she replied, boldly and carelessly, "That's what your Aunt Malviny used to swear by when she was a girl. And she has ten children, buried two husbands, and if everything they say is true, she's reeling in the third man now. She's a really lively, attractive woman and an excellent manager, your Aunt Malviny is, and both her husbands left her something—cows, wagons, or land. And they were quiet men while they were alive, and they stay put now that they're dead; not like old Parson Hoodenpyle, whom his wife still hears stomping around the house and preaching every night, even though she’s as deaf as a post, and he’s been in glory for twenty years—twenty years, and more. Your Aunt Malviny had luck, so maybe it’s not so bad for a girl to talk foolishly about marrying and such. At least, I don’t mind grieving."

She looked at her daughter with a gay grin, which, distorted by her toothless gums and the wreathing steam from the kettle, enhanced her witch-like aspect and was spuriously malevolent. She did not notice the stir of an approach through the brambly tangles of the heights above until it was close at hand; as she turned, she thought only of the mountain cattle,—to see the red cow's picturesque head and crumpled horns thrust over the sassafras bushes, or to hear the brindle's clanking bell. It was certainly less unexpected to Cynthia when a young mountaineer, clad in brown jeans trousers and a checked homespun shirt, emerged upon the rocky slope. He still wore his blacksmith's leather apron, and his powerful corded hammer-arm was bare beneath his tightly rolled sleeve. He was tall and heavily built; his sun-burned face was square, with a strong lower jaw, and his features were accented by fine lines of charcoal, as if the whole were a clever sketch. His black eyes held fierce intimations, but there was mobility of expression about them that suggested changing impulses, strong but fleeting. He was like his forge fire: though the heat might be intense for a time, it fluctuated with the breath of the bellows. Just now he was meekly quailing before the old woman, whom he evidently had not thought to find here. It was as apt an illustration as might be, perhaps, of the inferiority of strength to finesse. She seemed an inconsiderable adversary, as haggard, lean, and prematurely aged she swayed on her prodding-stick about the huge kettle; but she was as a veritable David to this big young Goliath, though she too flung hardly more than a pebble at him.

She looked at her daughter with a cheerful smile, which, distorted by her toothless gums and the steam rising from the kettle, gave her a witch-like appearance that seemed falsely sinister. She didn't notice the movement approaching through the tangled brush of the heights above until it was close; as she turned, she thought only of the mountain cattle—to see the red cow's picturesque head and crumpled horns poking through the sassafras bushes, or to hear the brindle’s clanging bell. It was definitely less surprising for Cynthia when a young mountaineer, dressed in brown jeans and a checked shirt made of homespun fabric, appeared on the rocky slope. He still wore his leather blacksmith's apron, and his muscular arm was bare beneath his rolled-up sleeve. He was tall and sturdy; his sunburned face was square, with a strong jaw, and his features were highlighted by fine lines of charcoal, almost like a clever sketch. His black eyes had fierce hints of intensity, but there was a shift in their expression that suggested changing emotions, strong yet brief. He was like his forge fire: while the heat could be intense for a moment, it varied with the breath of the bellows. Right now, he was nervously shrinking in front of the old woman, who he clearly hadn’t expected to see here. It was perhaps a perfect example of how strength can be outmatched by cunning. She seemed like an insignificant opponent as she swayed on her walking stick around the large kettle, looking haggard, thin, and prematurely aged; yet she was a true David facing this big young Goliath, even if she was only throwing a pebble at him.

"Laws-a-me!" she cried, in shrill, toothless glee; "ef hyar ain't 'Vander Price! What brung ye down hyar along o' we-uns, Vander?" she continued, with simulated anxiety. "Hev that thar red heifer o' our'n lept over the fence agin, an' got inter Pete's corn? Waal, sir, ef she ain't the headin'est heifer!"

"Laws-a-me!" she shouted, in sharp, toothless excitement; "isn't that Vander Price! What brings you down here with us, Vander?" she went on, pretending to be worried. "Has that red heifer of ours jumped over the fence again and gotten into Pete's corn? Well, if she isn’t the most stubborn heifer!"

"I hain't seen none o' yer heifer, ez I knows on," replied the young blacksmith, with gruff, drawling deprecation. Then he tried to regain his natural manner. "I kem down hyar," he remarked in an off-hand way, "ter git a drink o' water." He glanced furtively at the girl; then looked quickly away at the gallant red-bird, still gayly parading among the leaves.

"I haven't seen any of your heifer, as far as I know," replied the young blacksmith, with a rough, slow dismissal. Then he tried to get back to his usual self. "I came down here," he said casually, "to get a drink of water." He stole a quick glance at the girl and then quickly shifted his gaze to the cheerful red-bird, still proudly showing off among the leaves.

The old woman grinned with delight. "Now, ef that ain't s'prisin'," she declared. "Ef we hed knowed ez Lost Creek war a-goin' dry over yander a-nigh the shop, so ye an' Pete would hev ter kem hyar thirstin' fur water, we-uns would hev brung su'thin' down hyar ter drink out'n. We-uns hain't got no gourd hyar, hev we, Cynthy?"

The old woman smiled with joy. "Well, if that isn't surprising," she said. "If we had known that Lost Creek was drying up over by the shop, so you and Pete would have to come here looking for water, we would have brought something down here to drink from. We don't have a gourd here, do we, Cynthy?"

"'Thout it air the little gourd with the saft soap in it," said Cynthia, confused and blushing.

"'Though it is the small gourd with the soft soap in it," said Cynthia, confused and blushing.

Her mother broke into a high, loud laugh. "Ye ain't wantin' ter gin 'Vander the soap-gourd ter drink out'n, Cynthy! Leastwise, I ain't goin' ter gin it ter Pete. Fur I s'pose ef ye hev ter kem a haffen mile ter git a drink, 'Vander, ez surely Pete 'll hev ter kem, too. Waal, waal, who would hev b'lieved ez Lost Creek would go dry nigh the shop, an' yit be a-scuttlin' along like that, hyar-abouts!" and she pointed with her bony finger at the swift flow of the water.

Her mother burst into a loud, high-pitched laugh. "You don’t really want to drink out of ‘Vander’s soap gourd, do you, Cynthy? At least, I’m not giving it to Pete. I figure if you have to walk half a mile to get a drink, then Pete will have to do the same. Well, who would have thought Lost Creek would dry up near the shop, and still be rushing along like that around here?" She pointed with her bony finger at the swift flow of the water.

He was forced to abandon his clumsy pretense of thirst. "Lost Creek ain't gone dry nowhar, ez I knows on," he admitted, mechanically rolling the sleeve of his hammer-arm up and down as he talked. "It air toler'ble high,—higher 'n I ever see it afore. 'T war jes' night afore las' ez two men got a kyart sunk in a quicksand, whilst fordin' the creek. An' one o' thar wheels kem off, an' they hed right smart scufflin' ter keep thar load from washin' out'n the kyart an' driftin' clean away. Leastwise, that was how they telled it ter me. They war valley men, I'm a-thinkin'. They 'lowed ter me ez they hed ter cut thar beastis out 'n the traces. They loaded him up with the goods an' fotched him ter the shop."

He had to drop his awkward act of being thirsty. "Lost Creek isn't dry anywhere, as far as I know," he said, absentmindedly rolling up and down the sleeve of his strong arm while he spoke. "It's pretty high—higher than I've ever seen it before. Just last night, two guys got their cart stuck in quicksand while crossing the creek. One of the wheels came off, and they had to hustle to keep their load from washing out of the cart and drifting away. At least, that's what they told me. I think they were from the valley. They told me they had to cut their animals out of the harness. They loaded him up with the goods and took him to the shop."

Mrs. Ware forebore her ready gibes in her interest in the country-side gossip. She ceased to prod the boiling clothes. She hung motionless on the stick. "I s'pose they 'lowed, mebbe, ez what sort'n goods they hed," she hazarded, seeing a peddler in the dim perspective of a prosaic imagination.

Mrs. Ware held back her usual jokes as she listened to the local gossip. She stopped stirring the boiling clothes and stood still by the stick. "I guess they thought, maybe, about what kind of goods they had," she speculated, imagining a peddler in the hazy distance of her everyday thoughts.

"They lef' some along o' we-uns ter keep till they kem back agin. They 'lowed ez they could travel better ef thar beastis war eased some of his load. They hed some o' all sorts o' truck. They 'lowed ez they war aimin' ter sot up a store over yander ter the Settlemint on Milksick Mounting. They lef' right smart o' truck up yander in the shed a-hint the shop; 'pears like ter me it air a kyart-load itself. I promised ter keer fur it till they kem back agin."

"They left some stuff with us to keep until they came back again. They figured they could travel better if their animals weren’t so loaded down. They had a bit of everything. They said they were planning to set up a store over there at the Settlement on Milksick Mountain. They left quite a bit of stuff up there in the shed behind the shop; it seems like it’s a cartload all by itself. I promised to take care of it until they came back."

Certainly, so far as Cynthia was concerned, the sharpness of wits and the acerbity of temper ascribed generally to the red-haired gentry could be accounted no slander. The flame-colored halo about her face, emblazoned upon the dusky depths of her old brown bonnet, was not more fervid than an angry glow overspreading her delicate cheek, and an intense fiery spark suddenly a-light in her brown eyes.

Certainly, as far as Cynthia was concerned, the wit and temper usually associated with red-haired people were not an exaggeration. The bright red halo around her face, highlighted against the dark fabric of her old brown bonnet, was no more intense than the angry glow on her delicate cheek and the sudden fiery spark that lit up her brown eyes.

"Pete Blenkins mus' be sodden with drink, I'm a-thinkin'!" she cried impatiently. "Like ez not them men will 'low ez the truck ain't all thar, when they kem back. An' then thar'll be a tremenjious scrimmage ter the shop, an' somebody'll git hurt, an' mebbe killed."

"Pete Blenkins must be completely drunk, I think!" she exclaimed impatiently. "Those men will probably claim that the truck is missing stuff when they come back. And then there will be a huge fight at the shop, and someone will get hurt, maybe even killed."

"Waal, Cynthy," exclaimed her mother, in tantalizing glee, "air you-uns goin' ter ache when Pete's head gits bruk? That's powerful 'commodatin' in ye, cornsiderin' ez he hev got a wife, an' chil'ren ez old ez ye be. Waal sorrow fur Pete, ef ye air so minded."

"Waal, Cynthy," her mother exclaimed with teasing excitement, "are you going to be upset when Pete's head gets broken? That's really considerate of you, considering he has a wife and kids who are as old as you. Well, feel sorry for Pete if that's how you feel."

The angry spark in Cynthia's eyes died out as suddenly as it kindled. She began to beat the wet clothes heavily with the paddle, and her manner was that of having withdrawn herself from the conversation. The young blacksmith had flushed, too, and he laughed a little, but demurely. Then, as he still rolled and unrolled the sleeve of his hammer-arm, his wonted gravity returned.

The angry spark in Cynthia's eyes faded just as quickly as it had ignited. She started to hit the wet clothes hard with the paddle, and she seemed to have pulled away from the conversation. The young blacksmith also turned red and chuckled softly, but modestly. Then, as he continued to roll and unroll the sleeve of his hammer arm, his usual seriousness came back.

"Pete hain't got nothin' ter do with it, nohow," he averred. "Pete hev been away fur two weeks an' better: he hev gone ter see his uncle Joshua, over yander on Caney Fork. He 'lowed ez apple-jack grows powerful fine in them parts."

"Pete has nothing to do with it, anyway," he stated. "Pete has been away for over two weeks; he went to visit his uncle Joshua, over there at Caney Fork. He said that apple-jack grows really well in that area."

"Then who war holpin' at the forge ter-day?" asked Mrs. Ware, surprised. "I 'lowed I hearn the hand-hammer an' sledge too, same ez common."

"Then who was working at the forge today?" asked Mrs. Ware, surprised. "I thought I heard the hand-hammer and sledge as usual."

There was a change among the lines of charcoal that seemed to define his features. He looked humbled, ashamed. "I hed my brother a-strikin' fur me," he said at last.

There was a shift in the lines of charcoal that seemed to outline his features. He looked humbled, ashamed. "I had my brother working for me," he finally said.

"Why, 'Vander," exclaimed the old woman shrilly, "that thar boy's a plumb idjit! Ye oughtn't trust him along o' that sledge! He'd jes' ez lief maul ye on the head with it ez maul the hot iron. Ye know he air ez strong ez a ox; an' the critter's fursaken in his mind."

"Why, 'Vander," the old woman exclaimed sharply, "that boy's a complete idiot! You shouldn't trust him with that sledge! He'd just as likely hit you on the head with it as he would strike the hot iron. You know he's as strong as an ox, and the kid's lost in his mind."

"I knows that," Evander admitted. "I wouldn't hev done it, ef I hedn't been a-workin' on a new fixin' ez I hev jes' thought up, an' I war jes' obligated ter hev somebody ter strike fur me. An' laws-a-massy, 'Lijah wouldn't harm nobody. The critter war ez peart an' lively ez a June-bug,—so proud ter be allowed ter work around like folks!" He stopped short in sudden amazement: something stood in his eyes that had no habit there; its presence stupefied him. For a moment he could not speak, and he stood silently gazing at that long, level blue line, in which the converging mountains met,—so delicately azure, so ethereally suggestive, that it seemed to him like the Promised Land that Moses viewed. "The critter air mighty aggervatin' mos'ly ter the folks at our house," he continued, "but they hectors him. He treats me well."

"I know that," Evander admitted. "I wouldn't have done it if I hadn't been working on a new idea that I just came up with, and I was just obligated to have someone strike for me. And goodness, 'Lijah wouldn't hurt a fly. The guy was as cheerful and lively as a June bug—so proud to be allowed to work around like everyone else!" He stopped abruptly, struck by sudden amazement: something in his eyes was unusual; its presence left him speechless. For a moment, he couldn’t talk, and he stood silently gazing at that long, flat blue line where the converging mountains met—so delicately blue, so ethereally suggestive, that it felt to him like the Promised Land that Moses saw. "The guy is pretty annoying most of the time to the folks at our house," he continued, "but they boss him around. He treats me well."

"An ill word is spoke 'bout him ginerally round the mounting," said the old woman, who had filled and lighted her pipe, and was now trying to crowd down the charge, so to speak, without scorching too severely her callous fore-finger. "I hev hearn folks 'low ez he hev got so turrible crazy ez he oughter be sent away an' shet up in jail. An' it 'pears like ter me ez that word air jestice. The critter's fursaken."

"People are generally saying bad things about him around the mountain," said the old woman, who had filled and lit her pipe and was now trying to pack down the tobacco without burning her thick forefinger too badly. "I've heard folks say he's gone so crazy that he should be sent away and locked up in jail. And it seems to me that’s just the right thing to do. The poor creature is abandoned."

"Fursaken or no fursaken, he ain't goin' ter be jailed fur nothin',—'ceptin' that the hand o' the Lord air laid too heavy on him. I can't lighten its weight. I'm mortial myself. The rider says thar's some holp in prayer. I hain't seen it yit, though I hev been toler'ble busy lately a-workin' in metal, one way an' another. What good air it goin' ter do the mounting ter hev 'Lijah jailed, stiddier goin' round the woods a-talkin' ter the grasshoppers an' squir'ls, ez seem ter actially know the critter, an' bein' ez happy ez they air, 'ceptin' when he gits it inter his noodle, like he sometimes do, ez he ain't edzactly like other folks be?" He paused. Those strange visitants trembled again upon his smoke-blackened lids. "Fursaken or no," he cried impulsively, "the man ez tries ter git him jailed will 'low ez he air fursaken his own self, afore I gits done with him!"

"Forsaken or not, he isn't going to be jailed for anything—except that the hand of the Lord is resting too heavily on him. I can't lighten that burden. I'm only human myself. The rider says there's some help in prayer. I haven't seen it yet, though I've been pretty busy lately working with metal in various ways. What good will it do to have 'Lijah jailed, instead of him wandering around the woods talking to the grasshoppers and squirrels, who seem to actually know the guy and are as happy as they are, except when he gets it stuck in his head, like he sometimes does, that he's not quite like other people?" He paused. Those strange visitors trembled again on his smoke-darkened eyelids. "Forsaken or not," he exclaimed impulsively, "anyone who tries to get him jailed will find that he has forsaken his own self before I'm done with him!"

"'Vander Price," said the old woman rebukingly, "ye talk like ye hain't got good sense yerself." She sat down on a rock embedded in the ferns by Lost Creek, and pulled deliberately at her long cob-pipe. Then she too turned her faded eyes upon the vast landscape, in which she had seen no change, save the changing season and the waxing or the waning of the day, since first her life had opened upon it. That level line of pale blue in the poetic distance had become faintly roseate. The great bronze-green ranges nearer at hand were assuming a royal purple. Shadows went skulking down the valley. Across the amber zenith an eagle was flying homeward. Her mechanical glance followed the sweeping, majestic curves, as the bird dropped to its nest in the wild fastnesses of Pine Mountain, that towered, rugged and severe of outline, against the crimson west. A cow-bell jangled in the laurel.

"'Vander Price," the old woman said reproachfully, "you talk like you don't have any sense yourself." She settled onto a rock nestled in the ferns by Lost Creek and took a slow drag from her long pipe. Then she, too, fixed her faded gaze on the vast landscape, which she hadn’t seen change, except for the shifting seasons and the rise and fall of the day, since her life first began there. That flat line of pale blue in the poetic distance had taken on a faint pink hue. The great, bronze-green mountains closer to her were turning a royal purple. Shadows crept down the valley. An eagle soared across the amber sky, heading home. Her mechanical gaze followed the graceful, majestic arcs as the bird descended to its nest in the wild depths of Pine Mountain, which stood tall, rugged, and sharply outlined against the crimson west. A cowbell jingled in the laurel.

"Old Suke's a-comin' home ez partic'lar an' percise ez ef she hed her calf thar yit. I hev traded Suke's calf ter my merried daughter M'ria,—her ez merried Amos Baker, in the Cove. The old brindle can't somehow onderstan' the natur' o' the bargain, an' kems up every night moo-ing, mighty disapp'inted. 'Twarn't much shakes of a calf, nohow, an' I stood toler'ble well arter the trade."

"Old Suke is coming home just as particular and precise as if her calf were still here. I traded Suke's calf to my married daughter M'ria—who is married to Amos Baker, in the Cove. The old brindle just can't seem to understand the nature of the deal and comes up every night mooing, really disappointed. It wasn't much of a calf anyway, and I managed pretty well after the trade."

She looked up at the young man with a leer of self-gratulation. He still lingered, but the unsophisticated mother in the mountains can be as much an obstacle to anything in the nature of love-making, when the youth is not approved, as the expert tactician of a drawing-room. He had only the poor consolation of helping Cynthia to carry in the load of stiff, dry clothes to the log cabin, ambushed behind the beech-trees, hard by in the gorge. The house had a very unconfiding aspect; all its belongings seemed huddled about it for safe-keeping. The beehives stood almost under the eaves; the ash-hopper was visible close in the rear; the rain-barrel affiliated with the damp wall; the chickens were going to roost in an althea bush beside the porch; the boughs of the cherry and plum and crab-apple trees were thickly interlaced above the path that led from the rickety rail fence, and among their roots flag-lilies, lark-spur, and devil-in-the-bush mingled in a floral mosaic. The old woman went through the gate first. But even this inadvertence could not profit the loitering young people. "Law, Cynthy," she exclaimed, pointing at a loose-jointed elderly mountaineer, who was seated beneath the hop vines on the little porch, while a gaunt gray mare, with the plow-gear still upon her, cropped the grass close by, "yander is yer daddy, ez empty ez a gourd, I 'll be bound! Hurry an' git supper, child. Time's a-wastin',—time's a-wastin'!"

She looked up at the young man with a smirk of self-satisfaction. He still hung around, but the naive mountain mother can be just as much of a hurdle to any kind of romance when the young man is not approved, as the skilled strategist in a drawing room. He only had the small consolation of helping Cynthia carry in the load of stiff, dry clothes to the log cabin, hidden behind the beech trees, not far from the gorge. The house had a very untrusting look; all its belongings seemed huddled around it for protection. The beehives were almost under the eaves; the ash hopper was visible right in the back; the rain barrel was by the damp wall; the chickens were settling down in a hibiscus bush next to the porch; the branches of the cherry, plum, and crab-apple trees tangled above the path that led from the rickety fence, and among their roots, flag lilies, larkspur, and devil-in-the-bush mingled in a beautiful patchwork. The old woman went through the gate first. But even this unintentional move didn’t help the lingering young people. "Well, Cynthy," she said, pointing at a loose-jointed elderly mountaineer who was sitting under the hop vines on the little porch, while a skinny gray mare, still harnessed, grazed nearby, "there's your daddy, as empty as a gourd, I bet! Hurry and get supper, child. Time's a-wasting—time's a-wasting!"

When Evander was half-way up the steep slope, he turned and looked down at the embowered little house, that itself turned its face upward, looking as it were to the mountain's summit. How it nestled there in the gorge! He had seen it often and often before, but whenever he thought of it afterward it was as it appeared to him now: the darkling valley below it, the mountains behind it, the sunset sky still flaring above it, though stars had blossomed out here and there, and the sweet June night seemed full of their fragrance. He could distinguish for a good while the gate, the rickety fence, the path beneath the trees. The vista ended in the open door, with the broad flare of the fire illumining the puncheon floor and the group of boisterous tow-headed children; in the midst was the girl, with her bright hair and light figure, with her round arms bare, and her deft hand stirring the batter for bread in a wooden bowl. She looked the very genius of home, and so he long remembered her.

When Evander was halfway up the steep slope, he turned and looked down at the cozy little house, which seemed to be looking up toward the mountain's peak. It was nestled there in the gorge! He had seen it many times before, but whenever he thought of it later, it was just like it appeared to him now: the dark valley below, the mountains behind, and the sunset sky still glowing above, even though stars had started to appear here and there, and the sweet June night felt full of their fragrance. For a while, he could make out the gate, the rickety fence, and the path beneath the trees. The view ended at the open door, with the glow of the fire lighting up the wooden floor and the group of noisy, tow-headed children; in the middle was the girl, with her bright hair and slender figure, her round arms bare, stirring the bread batter in a wooden bowl with her skillful hand. She looked like the very essence of home, and he remembered her for a long time.

The door closed at last, and he slowly resumed his way along the steep slope. The scene that had just vanished seemed yet vividly present before him. The gathering gloom made less impression. He took scant heed of external objects, and plodded on mechanically. He was very near the forge when his senses were roused by some inexplicable inward monition. He stood still to listen: only the insects droning in the chestnut-oaks, only the wind astir in the laurel. The night possessed the earth. The mountains were sunk in an indistinguishable gloom, save where the horizontal line of their summits asserted itself against an infinitely clear sky. But for a hunter's horn, faintly wound and faintly echoed in Lost Creek Valley, he might have seemed the only human creature in all the vast wilderness. He saw through the pine boughs the red moon rising. The needles caught the glister, and shone like a golden fringe. They overhung dusky, angular shadows that he knew was the little shanty of a blacksmith shop. In its dark recesses was a dull red point of light, where the forge fire still smouldered. Suddenly it was momentarily eclipsed. Something had passed before it.

The door finally shut, and he slowly made his way up the steep slope. The scene that had just disappeared felt vividly present in his mind. The growing darkness had less impact on him. He paid little attention to the things around him and trudged on mechanically. He was very close to the forge when an inexplicable feeling pulled him back to attention. He stopped to listen: just the insects buzzing in the chestnut oaks, and the wind rustling through the laurel. The night had taken over the earth. The mountains were covered in an indistinguishable darkness, except where the line of their peaks stood out against an incredibly clear sky. But for the faint sound of a hunter's horn echoing in Lost Creek Valley, he might have seemed like the only human being in the vast wilderness. Through the pine branches, he saw the red moon rising. The needles glistened and shimmered like a golden fringe, casting dark, angular shadows that he recognized as the small shed of a blacksmith's shop. In its dark corners, there was a dull red point of light where the forge fire still smoldered. Suddenly, that light was briefly blocked. Something had passed in front of it.

"'Lijah!" he called out, in vague alarm. There was no answer. The red spark now gleamed distinct.

"'Lijah!" he called out, somewhat alarmed. There was no response. The red spark now glowed clearly.

"Look-a-hyar, boy, what be you-uns a-doin' of thar?" he asked, beset with a strange anxiety and a growing fear of he knew not what.

"Hey there, kid, what are you doing over there?" he asked, filled with a strange anxiety and a growing fear of something he couldn't identify.

Still no answer.

Still no response.

It was a terrible weapon he had put into the idiot's hand that day,—that heavy sledge of his. He grew cold when he remembered poor Elijah's pleasure in useful work, in his great strength gone to waste, in the ponderous implement that he so lightly wielded. He might well have returned to-night, with some vague, distraught idea of handling it again. And what vague, distraught idea kept him skulking there with it?

It was a terrible weapon he had given to the fool that day—his heavy sledgehammer. He felt a chill when he thought about poor Elijah's joy in doing useful work, in his immense strength being wasted, in the heavy tool that he handled so effortlessly. He might have returned tonight, with some unclear, troubled thought of using it again. And what unclear, troubled thought kept him lurking there with it?

"Foolin' along o' that new straw-cutter ter-day will be my ruin, I'm afeard," Evander muttered ruefully. Then the sudden drops broke out on his brow. "I pray ter mercy," he exclaimed fervently, "the boy hain't been a-sp'ilin' o' that thar new straw-cutter!"

"Messing around with that new straw-cutter today is going to be the end of me, I’m afraid," Evander said with a sigh. Then, beads of sweat appeared on his forehead. "I really hope," he exclaimed passionately, "that the boy hasn’t ruined that new straw-cutter!"

This fear dominated all others. He strode hastily forward. "Come out o' thar, 'Lijah!" he cried roughly.

This fear overshadowed everything else. He quickly moved forward. "Come out of there, Elijah!" he shouted harshly.

There were moving shadows in the great barn-like door,—three—four—The moon was behind the forge, and he could not count them. They were advancing shadows. A hand was laid upon his arm. A drawling voice broke languidly on the night. "I'm up an' down sorry ter hev ter arrest you-uns, 'Vander, bein' ez we air neighbors an' mos'ly toler'ble friendly; but law is law, an' ye air my prisoner," and the constable of the district paused in the exercise of his functions to gnaw off a chew of tobacco with teeth which seemed to have grown blunt in years of that practice; then he leisurely resumed: "I war jes' sayin' ter the sheriff an' dep'ty hyar,"—indicating the figures in the door-way,—"ez we-uns hed better lay low till we seen how many o' you-uns war out hyar; else I wouldn't hev kep' ye waitin' so long."

There were moving shadows in the big barn-like door—three, maybe four. The moon was behind the forge, so he couldn't count them all. They were advancing shadows. A hand rested on his arm. A sluggish voice drifted through the night. "I'm really sorry to have to arrest you, 'Vander, since we're neighbors and usually pretty friendly; but the law is the law, and you're my prisoner," said the district constable, pausing to chew a piece of tobacco with teeth that seemed worn from years of use. Then he casually continued, "I was just telling the sheriff and deputy here,"—pointing to the figures in the doorway—"that we should wait until we could see how many of you were out here; otherwise, I wouldn’t have kept you waiting so long."

The young mountaineer's amazement at last expressed itself in words. "Ye hev surely los' yer senses, Jubal Tynes! What air ye arrestin' of me fur?"

The young mountaineer's amazement finally came out in words. "You've definitely lost your mind, Jubal Tynes! What are you arresting me for?"

"Fur receivin' of stolen goods,—the shed back yander air full of 'em. I dunno whether ye holped ter rob the cross-roads store or no; but yander's the goods in the shed o' the shop, an' Pete's been away two weeks, an' better; so 'twar obleeged ter be you-uns ez received 'em."

"Receiving stolen goods—the shed back there is full of them. I don't know if you helped to rob the store at the crossroads or not; but there are the goods in the shed of the shop, and Pete's been gone for two weeks or more, so it must be you guys who received them."

Evander, in a tumult of haste, told his story. The constable laughed lazily, with his quid between his teeth. "Mebbe so,—mebbe so; but that's fur the jedge an' jury ter study over. Them men never tuk thar kyart no furder. 'Twar never stuck in no quicksand in Lost Creek. They knowed the sheriff war on thar track, an' they stove up thar kyart, an' sent the spokes an' shafts an' sech a-driftin' down Lost Creek, thinkin' 'twould be swallered inter the mounting an' never be seen agin. But jes' whar Lost Creek sinks under the mounting the drift war cotched. We fund it thar, an' knowed ez all we hed ter do war ter trace 'em up Lost Creek. An' hyar we be! The goods hev been identified this very hour by the man ez owns 'em. I hope ye never holped ter burglarize the store, too; but 'tain't fur me ter say. Ye hev ter kem along o' we-uns, whether ye like it or no," and he laid a heavy hand on his prisoner's shoulder.

Evander, in a rush, shared his story. The constable chuckled lazily, with his tobacco in his mouth. "Maybe so—maybe so; but that’s for the judge and jury to figure out. Those guys never took their cart any further. It never got stuck in any quicksand in Lost Creek. They knew the sheriff was on their trail, so they smashed up their cart and let the pieces drift down Lost Creek, thinking it would be swallowed by the mountains and never seen again. But right where Lost Creek goes under the mountains, the debris was caught. We found it there, and we knew all we had to do was trace them up Lost Creek. And here we are! The goods have been identified just this hour by the guy who owns them. I hope you didn’t help rob the store too; but it’s not for me to say. You have to come along with us, whether you like it or not," and he put a heavy hand on his prisoner’s shoulder.

The next moment he was reeling from a powerful blow planted between the eyes. It even felled the stalwart constable, for it was so suddenly dealt. But Jubal Tynes was on his feet in an instant, rushing forward with a bull-like bellow. Once more he measured his length upon the ground,—close to the anvil this time, for the position of all the group had changed in the fracas. He did not rise again; the second blow was struck with the ponderous sledge. As the men hastened to lift him, they were much hindered by the ecstatic capers of the idiot brother, who seemed to have been concealed in the shop. The prisoner made no attempt at flight, although, in the confusion, he was forgotten for the time by the officers, and had some chance of escape. He appeared frightened and very meek; and when he saw that there was blood upon the sledge, and they said brains, too, he declared that he was sorry he had done it.

The next moment, he was staggering from a powerful punch right between the eyes. It even knocked down the tough constable because it was thrown so suddenly. But Jubal Tynes was back on his feet in an instant, charging forward with a roar. He hit the ground again—this time close to the anvil, since everyone's position had changed during the chaos. He didn’t get back up; the second hit came from the heavy sledge. As the men rushed to lift him, they were really slowed down by the wild antics of the idiot brother, who seemed to have been hiding in the shop. The prisoner didn’t try to run away, even though, in the confusion, the officers completely forgot about him and he had a chance to escape. He looked scared and very submissive; when he noticed there was blood on the sledge, and they mentioned brains too, he said he was sorry he had done it.

"I done it!" cried the idiot joyfully. "Jube sha'n't fight 'Vander! I done it!" and he was so boisterously grotesque and wild that the men lost their wits while he was about; so they turned him roughly out of the forge, and closed the doors upon him. At last he went away, although for a time he beat loudly upon the shutter, and called piteously for Evander.

"I did it!" shouted the fool happily. "Jube won't fight 'Vander! I did it!" He was so loudly strange and wild that the men lost their minds whenever he was around; so they pushed him out of the forge and closed the doors behind him. Eventually, he left, although for a while he banged loudly on the shutter and called desperately for Evander.

It was a great opportunity for old Dr. Patton, who lived six miles down the valley, and zealously he improved it. He often felt that in this healthful country, where he was born, and where bucolic taste and local attachment still kept him, he was rather a medical theorist than a medical practitioner, so few and slight were the demands upon the resources of his science. He was as one who has long pondered the unsuggestive details of the map of a region, and who suddenly sees before him its glowing, vivid landscape.

It was a great opportunity for old Dr. Patton, who lived six miles down the valley, and he made the most of it. He often felt that in this healthy area, where he was born and where his love for the land and community kept him, he was more of a medical theorist than a medical practitioner, as there were so few and minor demands on his skills. He was like someone who has long studied the unappealing details of a map and suddenly finds themselves in front of its vibrant, beautiful landscape.

"A beautiful fracture!" he protested with rapture,—"a beautiful fracture!"

"A stunning break!" he exclaimed with delight, —"a stunning break!"

Through all the country-side were circulated his cheerful accounts of patients who had survived fracture of the skull. Among the simple mountaineers his learned talk of the trephine gave rise to the startling report that he intended to put a linchpin into Jubal Tynes's head. It was rumored, too, that the unfortunate man's brains had "in an' about leaked haffen out;" and many freely prompted Providence by the suggestion that "ef Jube war ready ter die it war high time he war taken," as, having been known as a hasty and choleric man, it was predicted that he would "make a most survigrus idjit."

Throughout the countryside, his upbeat stories about patients who had survived skull fractures were widely shared. Among the simple mountain folks, his technical discussions about the trephine led to the startling rumor that he planned to put a linchpin in Jubal Tynes's head. There were also whispers that the poor man's brains had "leaked out half of what was inside;" and many eagerly suggested to Providence that "if Jube was ready to die, it was high time he was taken," as he had a reputation as a quick-tempered man, and it was expected that he would "make a really stupid decision."

"Cur'ous enough ter me ter find out ez Jube ever hed brains," commented Mrs. Ware. "'Twar well enough ter let some of 'em leak out ter prove it. He hev never showed he hed brains no other way, ez I knows on. Now," she added, "somebody oughter tap 'Vander's head, an' mebbe they'll find him pervided, too. Wonders will never cease! Nobody would hev accused Jube o' sech. Folks'll hev ter respec' them brains. 'Vander done him that favior in splitting his head open."

"Curious enough for me to find out that Jube ever had brains," Mrs. Ware commented. "It would have been nice to let some of them leak out to prove it. As far as I know, he’s never shown he has brains any other way. Now," she added, "someone ought to tap 'Vander's head, and maybe they'll find he’s got some too. Wonders will never cease! Nobody would have accused Jube of that. People will have to respect those brains. 'Vander did him that favor by splitting his head open."

"'Twarn't 'Vander's deed!" Cynthia declared passionately. She reiterated this phrase a hundred times a day, as she went about her household tasks. "'Twarn't 'Vander's deed!" How could she prove that it was not, she asked herself as often,—and prove that against his own word?

"'It wasn't Vander's doing!' Cynthia declared passionately. She repeated this phrase a hundred times a day as she went about her household chores. 'It wasn't Vander's doing!' How could she prove that it wasn't, she wondered often—and how could she prove it against his own word?"

For she herself had heard him acknowledge the crime. The new day had hardly broken when, driving her cow, she came by the blacksmith's shop, all unconscious as yet of the tragedy it had housed. A vague prescience of dawn was on the landscape; dim and spectral, it stood but half revealed in the doubtful light. The stars were gone; even the sidereal outline of the great Scorpio had crept away. But the gibbous moon still swung above the dark and melancholy forests of Pine Mountain, and its golden chalice spilled a dreamy glamour all adown the lustrous mists in Lost Creek Valley. Ever and anon the crags reverberated with the shrill clamor of a watch-dog at a cabin in the Cove; for there was an unwonted stir upon the mountain's brink. The tramp of horses, the roll of wheels, the voices of the officers at the forge, busily canvassing their preparations for departure, sounded along the steeps. The sight of the excited group was as phenomenal to old Suke as to Cynthia, and the cow stopped short in her shambling run, and turned aside into the blooming laurel with a muttered low and with crouching horns. Early wayfarers along the road had been attracted by the unusual commotion. A rude slide drawn by a yoke of oxen stood beneath the great pine that overhung the forge, while the driver was breathlessly listening to the story from the deputy sheriff. A lad, mounted on a lank gray mare, let the sorry brute crop, unrebuked, the sassafras leaves by the wayside, while he turned half round in his saddle, with a white horror on his face, to see the spot pointed out on which Jubal Tynes had fallen. The wounded man had been removed to the nearest house, but the ground was still dank with blood, and this heightened the dramatic effects of the recital. The sheriff's posse and their horses were picturesquely grouped about the open barn-like door, and the wagon laden with the plunder stood hard by. It had been discovered, when they were on the point of departure, that one of the animals had cast a shoe, and the prisoner was released that he might replace it.

For she herself had heard him admit to the crime. The new day had barely begun when, while guiding her cow, she passed the blacksmith's shop, still unaware of the tragedy that had occurred there. A vague sense of dawn hung over the landscape; dim and ghostly, it was only partially revealed in the uncertain light. The stars were gone; even the outline of the great Scorpio had faded away. But the gibbous moon still hung above the dark, somber forests of Pine Mountain, spilling its golden glow over the shimmering mists in Lost Creek Valley. From time to time, the crags echoed with the sharp barking of a watch-dog at a cabin in the Cove; there was unusual activity at the mountain's edge. The sound of horses' hooves, rolling wheels, and the officers' voices at the forge, busily discussing their plans for departure, echoed along the slopes. The sight of the excited group was astonishing to old Suke as it was to Cynthia, and the cow abruptly stopped in her lazy stroll, turning into the blooming laurel with a low grunt and crouching her horns. Early travelers on the road had been drawn to the unusual commotion. A rough cart pulled by a yoke of oxen stood beneath the large pine that shaded the forge, while the driver listened intently to the deputy sheriff recounting the story. A boy on a thin gray mare let the poor animal graze on the sassafras leaves by the road as he turned partially around in his saddle, a look of white horror on his face, to see the spot where Jubal Tynes had fallen. The injured man had been taken to the nearest house, but the ground was still soaked with blood, which intensified the dramatic impact of the story. The sheriff's posse and their horses were gathered around the open barn-like door, and the wagon filled with the stolen goods was nearby. They discovered just as they were about to leave that one of the horses had lost a shoe, and the prisoner was let go so he could replace it.

When Evander kindled the forge fire he felt that it was for the last time. The heavy sighing of the bellows burst forth, as if charged with a conscious grief. As the fire alternately flared and faded, it illumined with long, evanescent red rays the dusky interior of the shop: the horseshoes hanging upon a rod in the window, the plowshares and bars of iron ranged against the wall, the barrel of water in the corner, the smoky hood and the anvil, the dark spot on the ground, and the face of the blacksmith himself, as he worked the bellows with one hand, while the other held the tongs with the red-hot horseshoe in the fire. It was a pale face. Somehow, all the old spirit seemed spent. Its wonted suggestions of a dogged temper and latent fierceness were effaced. It bore marks of patient resignation, that might have been wrought by a life-time of self-sacrifice, rather than by one imperious impulse, as potent as it was irrevocable. The face appeared in some sort sublimated.

When Evander started the forge fire, he sensed it would be for the last time. The heavy sighing of the bellows seemed filled with a deep sadness. As the fire flickered and dimmed, it cast fleeting red glows throughout the dim workshop: the horseshoes hanging on a rod in the window, the plowshares and bars of iron lined against the wall, the barrel of water in the corner, the smoky hood and the anvil, the dark spot on the ground, and the face of the blacksmith himself, as he worked the bellows with one hand while the other held the tongs with the red-hot horseshoe in the fire. His face was pale. Somehow, all the old spirit seemed to have faded. Its usual hints of a stubborn temper and hidden fierceness were erased. Instead, it showed signs of patient acceptance, likely shaped by a lifetime of selflessness rather than by a single dominating impulse, as powerful as it was irreversible. The face appeared somewhat transcendent.

The bellows ceased to sigh, the anvil began to sing, the ringing staccato of the hammer punctuated the droning story of the deputy sheriff, still rehearsing the sensation of the hour to the increasing crowd about the door. The girl stood listening, half hidden in the blooming laurel. Her senses seemed strangely sharpened, despite the amazement, the incredulity, that possessed her. She even heard the old cow cropping the scanty grass at her feet, and saw every casual movement of the big brindled head. She was conscious of the splendid herald of a new day flaunting in the east. Against this gorgeous presence of crimson and gold, brightening and brightening till only the rising sun could outdazzle it, she noted the romantic outlines of the Cumberland crags and woody heights, and marveled how near they appeared. She was sensible of the fragrance of the dewy azaleas, and she heard the melancholy song of the pines, for the wind was astir. She marked the grimaces of the idiot, looking like a dim and ugly dream in the dark recesses of the forge. His face was filled now with strange, wild triumph, and now with partisan anger for his brother's sake; for Evander was more than once harshly upbraided.

The bellows stopped sighing, the anvil started to sing, and the sharp clang of the hammer broke up the deputy sheriff's story, which was still being retold to the growing crowd at the door. The girl stood listening, half-hidden in the blooming laurel. Her senses felt oddly heightened, despite the amazement and disbelief she felt. She could even hear the old cow nibbling on the sparse grass at her feet and noticed every casual movement of the big brindled head. She was aware of the stunning herald of a new day shining in the east. Against this beautiful display of red and gold, which grew brighter and brighter until only the rising sun could outshine it, she noticed the romantic shapes of the Cumberland crags and wooded heights and marveled at how close they seemed. She was aware of the sweet scent of the dewy azaleas and heard the sad song of the pines, as the wind stirred. She observed the grimaces of the idiot, appearing like a dim and ugly dream in the dark corners of the forge. His face was now filled with strange, wild triumph and now with partisan anger for his brother's sake, as Evander was harshly scolded more than once.

"An' so yer tantrums hev brung ye ter this eend, at last, 'Vander Price!" exclaimed an old man indignantly. "I misdoubted ye when I hearn how ye fit, that day, yander ter the mill; an' they do say ez even Pete Blenkins air plumb afeard ter jaw at ye, nowadays, on 'count o' yer fightin' an' quar'lin' ways. An' now ye hev gone an' bodaciously slaughtered pore Jubal Tynes! From what I hev hearn tell, I jedge he air obleeged ter die. Then nothin' kin save ye!"

"And so your tantrums have brought you to this end, at last, 'Vander Price!" exclaimed an old man indignantly. "I had my doubts about you when I heard how you fought that day over by the mill; and they say even Pete Blenkins is completely afraid to talk to you nowadays because of your fighting and quarreling ways. And now you've gone and boldly killed poor Jubal Tynes! From what I've heard, I judge he was destined to die. Then nothing can save you!"

The girl burst suddenly forth from the flowering splendors of the laurel. "'Twarn't 'Vander's deed!" she cried, perfect faith in every tone. "'Vander, 'Vander, who did it? Who did it?" she reiterated imperiously.

The girl suddenly emerged from the blooming laurel. "'It wasn't 'Vander's doing!" she shouted, complete conviction in her voice. "'Vander, 'Vander, who did it? Who did it?" she repeated insistently.

Her cheeks were aflame. An eager expectancy glittered in her wide brown eyes. Her auburn hair flaunted to the breeze as brilliantly as those golden harbingers of the sun. Her bonnet had fallen to the ground, and her milk-piggin was rolling away. The metallic staccato of the hammer was silenced. A vibratory echo trembled for an instant on the air. The group had turned in slow surprise. The blacksmith looked mutely at her. But the idiot was laughing triumphantly, almost sanely, and pointing at the sledge to call her attention to its significant stains. The sheriff had laid the implement carefully aside, that it might be produced in court in case Jubal Tynes should pass beyond the point of affording, for Dr. Patton's satisfaction, a gratifying instance of survival from fracture of the skull, and die in a commonplace fashion which is of no interest to the books or the profession.

Her cheeks were bright red. Excitement sparkled in her large brown eyes. Her auburn hair danced in the breeze as brilliantly as the golden rays of the sun. Her bonnet had fallen to the ground, and her milk bucket was rolling away. The sharp sound of the hammer stopped. A faint echo lingered for a moment in the air. The group turned in slow surprise. The blacksmith looked at her in silence. But the fool was laughing triumphantly, almost reasonably, and pointing at the sledge to draw her attention to its notable stains. The sheriff had set the tool aside carefully, so it could be presented in court if Jubal Tynes should go beyond the point of proving, for Dr. Patton's satisfaction, a satisfying example of surviving a skull fracture and die in a mundane way that’s not noteworthy for books or the profession.

"'Twarn't 'Vander's deed! It couldn't be!" she declared passionately.

"'It wasn't Vander's doing! It couldn't be!" she declared passionately.

For the first time he faltered. There was a pause. He could not speak.

For the first time, he hesitated. There was a pause. He couldn’t find the words.

"I done it!" cried the idiot, in shrill glee.

"I did it!" cried the fool, in high-pitched delight.

Then Evander regained his voice. "'Twar me ez done it," he said huskily, turning away to the anvil with a gesture of dull despair. "I done it!"

Then Evander found his voice again. "'It was me who did it," he said hoarsely, turning away to the anvil with a gesture of dull despair. "I did it!"

Fainting is not a common demonstration in the mountains. It seemed to the bewildered group as if the girl had suddenly dropped dead. She revived under the water and cinders dashed into her face from the barrel where the steel was tempered. But life returned enfeebled and vapid. That vivid consciousness and intensity of emotion had reached a climax of sensibility, and now she experienced the reaction. It was in a sort of lethargy that she watched their preparations to depart, while she sat upon a rock at the verge of the clearing. As the wagon trundled away down the road, laden with the stolen goods, one of the posse looked back at her with some compassion, and observed to a companion that she seemed to take it considerably to heart, and sagely opined that she and 'Vander "must hev been a-keepin' company tergether some. But then," he argued, "she's a downright good-lookin' gal, ef she do be so red-headed. An' thar air plenty likely boys left in the mountings yit; an' ef thar ain't, she can jes' send down the valley a piece fur me!" and he laughed, and went away quite cheerful, despite his compassion. The horsemen were in frantic impatience to be off, and presently they were speeding in single file along the sandy mountain road.

Fainting isn’t something you see often in the mountains. To the confused group, it looked like the girl had suddenly collapsed and died. She came to under the water, with cinders hitting her face from the barrel where the steel was tempered. But when she woke up, she felt weak and dull. Her vivid awareness and emotional intensity had hit a peak, and now she was experiencing the aftermath. In a kind of daze, she watched them get ready to leave while she sat on a rock at the edge of the clearing. As the wagon rolled away down the road, loaded with the stolen goods, one of the group glanced back at her with some sympathy and commented to a buddy that she seemed really affected by it, adding wisely that she and 'Vander "must have been seeing each other for a while. But then," he argued, "she's a really good-looking girl, even if she is kind of red-headed. And there are plenty of eligible guys still in the mountains; and if not, she can just send a message down the valley for me!" He laughed and walked away feeling quite cheerful despite his sympathy. The horseback riders were impatient to leave, and soon they were racing in a single line along the sandy mountain road.

Cynthia sat there until late in the day, wistfully gazing down the long green vista where they had disappeared. She could not believe that Evander had really gone. Something, she felt sure, would happen to bring them back. Once and again she thought she heard the beat of hoofs,—of distant hoofs. It was only the melancholy wind in the melancholy pines.

Cynthia sat there until late in the day, looking longingly down the long green path where they had vanished. She couldn't believe that Evander had really left. She was certain something would happen to bring them back. Again and again, she thought she heard the sound of hooves—distant hooves. It was just the sad wind in the sad pines.

They were laden with snow before she heard aught of him. Beneath them, instead of the dusky vistas the summer had explored, were long reaches of ghastly white undulations, whence the boles rose dark and drear. The Cumberland range, bleak and bare, with its leafless trees and frowning cliffs, stretched out long, parallel spurs, one above another, one beyond another, tier upon tier, till they appeared to meet in one distant level line somewhat grayer than the gray sky, somewhat more desolate of aspect than all the rest of the desolate world. When the wind rose, Pine Mountain mourned with a mighty voice. Cynthia had known that voice since her birth. But what new meaning in its threnody! Sometimes the forest was dumb; the sun glittered frigidly, and the pines, every tiny needle encased in ice, shone like a wilderness of gleaming rays. The crags were begirt with gigantic icicles; the air was crystalline and cold, and the only sound was the clinking of the hand-hammer and the clanking of the sledge from the forge on the mountain's brink. For there was a new striker there, of whom Pete Blenkins did not stand in awe. He felt peculiarly able to cope with the world in general since his experience had been enriched by a recent trip to Sparta. He had been subpoenaed by the prosecution in the case of the State of Tennessee versus Evander Price, to tell the jury all he knew of the violent temper of his quondam striker, which he did with much gusto and self-importance, and pocketed his fee with circumspect dignity.

They were covered in snow before she heard anything about him. Below them, instead of the dark views the summer had revealed, there were long stretches of ghastly, white hills, from which the tree trunks rose dark and gloomy. The Cumberland range, bleak and bare, with its leafless trees and grim cliffs, stretched out in long, parallel ridges, one above the other, tier upon tier, until they seemed to meet in a distant line that was slightly grayer than the gray sky and had a more desolate look than the rest of the barren world. When the wind picked up, Pine Mountain mourned with a loud voice. Cynthia had known that voice since she was born. But there was a new meaning in its sorrowful sound! Sometimes the forest was silent; the sun sparkled coldly, and the pines, with every tiny needle covered in ice, shone like a landscape of bright rays. The cliffs were surrounded by huge icicles; the air was clear and cold, and the only sounds were the clinking of the hand hammer and the clanking of the sledge from the forge on the edge of the mountain. There was a new striker there, someone Pete Blenkins didn’t fear. He felt unusually capable of handling the world since his experiences had been enriched by a recent trip to Sparta. He had been summoned by the prosecution in the case of the State of Tennessee versus Evander Price, to tell the jury everything he knew about the violent temper of his former striker, which he did with great enthusiasm and self-importance, and collected his fee with careful dignity.

"'Vander looks toler'ble skimpy an' jail-bleached,—so Pete Blenkins say," remarked Mrs. Ware, as she sat smoking her pipe in the chimney corner, while Cynthia stood before the warping bars, winding the party-colored yarn upon the equidistant pegs of the great frame. "Pete 'lowed ter me ez he hed tole you-uns ez 'Vander say he air powerful sorry he would never l'arn ter write, when he went ter the school at the Notch. 'Vander say he never knowed ez he would have a use for sech. But law! the critter hed better be studyin' 'bout the opportunities he hev wasted fur grace; fur they say now ez Jube Tynes air bound ter die. An' he will fur true, ef old Dr. Patton air the man I take him fur."

"'Vander looks pretty skinny and jail-bleached, you know," Mrs. Ware said as she sat smoking her pipe in the chimney corner, while Cynthia stood by the warped bars, winding the multicolored yarn onto the evenly spaced pegs of the big frame. "Pete told me that he had mentioned to you that 'Vander said he was really sorry he never learned to write when he was at the school at the Notch. 'Vander said he never thought he would have a use for it. But goodness! That guy should be thinking about the chances he has wasted for grace; because they say now that Jube Tynes is bound to die. And he will for sure if old Dr. Patton is the man I think he is."

"'T warn't 'Vander's deed," said Cynthia, her practiced hands still busily investing the warping bars with a homely rainbow of scarlet and blue and saffron yarn. It added an embellishment to the little room, which was already bright with the firelight and the sunset streaming in at the windows, and the festoons of red pepper and pop-corn and peltry swinging from the rafters.

"'It wasn't Vander's doing," said Cynthia, her skilled hands still busy wrapping the warping bars with a cozy mix of red, blue, and yellow yarn. It added a nice touch to the small room, which was already glowing with firelight and the sunset pouring in through the windows, along with the strings of red peppers, popcorn, and fur hanging from the rafters.

"Waal, waal, hev it so," said her mother, in acquiescent dissent,—"hev it so! But 't war his deed receivin' of the stolen goods; leastwise, the jury b'lieved so. Pete say, though, ez they wouldn't hev been so sure, ef it warn't fur 'Vander's resistin' arrest an' in an' about haffen killin' Jubal Tynes. Pete say ez 'Vander's name fur fightin' an' sech seemed ter hev sot the jury powerful agin him."

"Well, well, let it be," her mother said, agreeing but also disagreeing, "let it be! But it was his act of receiving the stolen goods; at least, that's what the jury believed. Pete said, though, that they wouldn't have been so sure if it wasn't for 'Vander's resisting arrest and nearly killing Jubal Tynes. Pete said 'Vander's reputation for fighting and things like that seemed to really turn the jury against him."

"An' thar war nobody thar ez would gin a good word fur him!" cried the girl, dropping her hands with a gesture of poignant despair.

"And there was no one there who would say a nice word about him!" cried the girl, dropping her hands in a gesture of deep despair.

"'T warn't in reason ez thar could be," said Mrs. Ware. "'Vander's lawyer never summonsed but a few of the slack-jawed boys from the Settlemint ter prove his good character, an' Pete said they 'peared awk'ard in thar minds an' flustrated, an' spoke more agin 'Vander 'n fur him. Pete 'lows ez they hed ter be paid thar witness-fee by the State, too, on account of 'Vander hevin' no money ter fetch witnesses an' sech ter Sparty. His dad an' mam air mighty shiftless—always war,—an' they hev got that hulking idjit ter eat 'em out'n house an' home. They hev been mightily put ter it this winter ter live along, 'thout 'Vander ter holp 'em, like he uster. But they war no ways anxious 'bout his trial, 'kase Squair Bates tole 'em ez the jedge would app'int a lawyer ter defend 'Vander, ez he hed no money ter hire a lawyer fur hisself. An' the jedge app'inted a young lawyer thar; an' Pete 'lowed ez that young lawyer made the trial the same ez a gander-pullin' fur the 'torney-gineral. Pete say ez that young lawyer's ways tickled the 'torney-gineral haffen ter death. Pete say the 'torney-gineral jes' sot out ter devil that young lawyer, an' he done it. Pete say the young lawyer hed never hed more 'n one or two cases afore, an' he acted so foolish that the 'torney-gineral kep' all the folks laffin' at him. The jury laffed, an' so did the jedge. I reckon 'Vander thought 'twar mighty pore fun. Pete say ez 'Vander's lawyer furgot a heap ez he oughter hev remembered, an' fairly ruined 'Vander's chances. Arter the trial the 'torney-gineral 'lowed ter Pete ez the State hed hed a mighty shaky case agin 'Vander. But I reckon he jes' said that ter make his own smartness in winnin' it seem more s'prisn'. 'Vander war powerful interrupted by thar laffin' an' the game they made o' his lawyer, an' said he didn't want no appeal. He 'lowed he hed seen enough o' jestice. He 'lowed ez he'd take the seven years in the pen'tiary that the jury gin him, fur fear at the nex' trial they'd gin him twenty-seven; though the 'torney-gineral say ef Jube dies they will fetch him out agin, an' try him fur that. The 'torney-gineral 'lowed ter Pete ez 'Vander war a fool not ter move fur a new trial an' appeal, an' sech. He 'lowed ez 'Vander war a derned ignorant man. An' all the folks round the court-house gin thar opinion ez 'Vander hev got less gumption 'bout'n the law o' the land than enny man they ever see, 'cept that young lawyer he hed ter defend him. Pete air powerful sati'fied with his performin' in Sparty. He ups an' 'lows ez they paid him a dollar a day fur a witness-fee, an' treated him mighty perlite,—the jedge an' jury too."

"'It wasn't reasonable at all,' said Mrs. Ware. 'Vander's lawyer only called a few of the slow-witted guys from the Settlement to prove his good character, and Pete said they seemed awkward and flustered, and talked more against Vander than for him. Pete mentioned that they had to be paid their witness fee by the State since Vander didn't have any money to bring witnesses and such to Sparty. His folks are pretty useless—always have been—and they have that big idiot to feed off them. They’ve really struggled this winter to get by without Vander to help them like he used to. But they weren't worried about his trial because Square Bates told them that the judge would appoint a lawyer to defend Vander since he couldn’t afford one. And the judge assigned a young lawyer there; and Pete said that young lawyer made the trial feel like a joke for the attorney general. Pete said that the attorney general found the young lawyer's antics hilarious. Pete said the attorney general just set out to make a fool of that young lawyer, and he succeeded. Pete said the young lawyer had only handled one or two cases before, and he acted so foolishly that the attorney general had everyone laughing at him. The jury laughed, and so did the judge. I guess Vander thought it was very poor entertainment. Pete said Vander's lawyer forgot a lot of things he should have remembered and completely ruined Vander's chances. After the trial, the attorney general told Pete that the State had a pretty shaky case against Vander. But I think he just said that to make his own cleverness in winning it seem more surprising. Vander was really bothered by all the laughing and the way they made fun of his lawyer, and he said he didn't want to appeal. He figured he had seen enough of justice. He said he’d accept the seven years in prison that the jury gave him for fear that at the next trial they’d give him twenty-seven; though the attorney general said if Jube dies, they will bring him back and try him for that. The attorney general told Pete that Vander was a fool not to seek a new trial and appeal, and all that. He said Vander was a derned ignorant man. And everyone around the courthouse shared their opinion that Vander had less sense about the law of the land than anyone they had ever seen, except for that young lawyer who had to defend him. Pete is pretty satisfied with his performance in Sparty. He got paid a dollar a day for a witness fee, and they treated him really politely—the judge and jury too."

How Cynthia lived through that winter of despair was a mystery to her afterward. Often, as she sat brooding over the midnight embers, she sought to picture to herself some detail of the life that Evander was leading so far away. The storm would beat heavily on the roof of the log cabin, the mountain wind sob through the sighing pines; ever and anon a wolf might howl in the sombre depths of Lost Creek Valley. But Evander had become a stranger to her imagination. She could not construct even a vague status that would answer for the problematic mode of life of the "valley folks" who dwelt in Nashville, or in the penitentiary hard by. She began to appreciate that it was a narrow existence within the limits of Lost Creek Valley, and that to its simple denizens the world beyond was a foreign world, full of strange habitudes and alien complications. Thus it came to pass that he was no longer even a vision. Because of this subtle bereavement she would fall to sobbing drearily beside the dreary, dying fire,—only because of this, for she never wondered if her image to him had also grown remote. How she pitied him, so lonely, so strange, so forlorn, as he must be! Did he yearn for the mountains? Could he see them in the spirit? Surely in his dreams, surely in some kindly illusion, he might still behold that fair land which touched the sky: the golden splendors of the sunshine sifting through the pines; flying shadows of clouds as fleet racing above the distant ranges; untrodden woodland nooks beside singing cascades; or some lonely pool, whence the gray deer bounded away through the red sumach leaves.

How Cynthia got through that winter of despair was a mystery to her afterward. Often, as she sat lost in thought by the midnight embers, she tried to picture some detail of the life that Evander was living so far away. The storm would pound on the roof of the log cabin, the mountain wind would moan through the swaying pines; now and then a wolf might howl in the dark depths of Lost Creek Valley. But Evander had become a stranger to her imagination. She couldn't even create a vague idea that would capture the complicated lifestyle of the "valley folks" who lived in Nashville or in the nearby penitentiary. She began to realize that it was a limited existence within the confines of Lost Creek Valley, and for its simple inhabitants, the world beyond was foreign, filled with strange habits and complicated issues. As a result, he was no longer even a vision. Because of this subtle loss, she would start sobbing gloomily beside the dying fire—only because of this, for she never wondered if she had also grown distant in his mind. How she pitied him, so lonely, so strange, so forlorn, as he must be! Did he long for the mountains? Could he still see them in his mind? Surely in his dreams, surely in some kind fantasy, he could still see that beautiful land that touched the sky: the golden rays of sunshine filtering through the pines; shadows of clouds swiftly racing above the distant ranges; untouched forest clearings beside singing waterfalls; or some quiet pool where the gray deer sprang away through the red sumac leaves.

Sombre though the present was, the future seemed darker still, clouded by the long and terrible suspense concerning the wounded officer's fate and the crime that Evander had acknowledged.

Solemn as the present was, the future looked even grimmer, overshadowed by the long and terrible uncertainty about the wounded officer's fate and the crime that Evander had admitted to.

"He couldn't hev done it," she argued futilely. "'Twarn't his deed."

"He couldn't have done it," she argued in vain. "It wasn't his doing."

She grew pale and thin, and her strength failed with her failing spirit, and her mother querulously commented on the change.

She became pale and thin, and her strength diminished along with her waning spirit, while her mother complained about the change.

"An' sech a hard winter ez we-uns air a-tus-slin' with; an' that thar ewe a-dyin' ez M'ria traded fur my little calf, ez war wuth forty sech dead critters; an' hyar be Cynthy lookin' like she hed fairly pegged out forty year ago, an' been raised from the grave,—an' all jes' 'kase 'Vander Price hev got ter be a evil man, an' air locked up in the pen'tiary. It beats my time! He never said nothin' 'bout marryin', nohow, ez I knows on. I never would hev b'lieved you-uns would hev turned off Jeemes Blake, ez hev got a good grist-mill o' his own an' a mighty desirable widder-woman fur a mother, jes' account of 'Vander Price. An' 'Vander will never kem back ter Pine Mounting no more'n Lost Creek will."

"And such a tough winter we are dealing with; and that ewe dying is what Maria traded for my little calf, which was worth forty of those dead animals; and here’s Cynthia looking like she died forty years ago and was raised from the grave,—all just because Vander Price has turned out to be an evil man and is locked up in prison. It beats me! He never mentioned anything about getting married, as far as I know. I never would have believed you all would have turned down James Blake, who has a good mill of his own and a very desirable widow for a mother, just because of Vander Price. And Vander will never come back to Pine Mountain any more than Lost Creek will."

Cynthia's color flared up for a moment. Then she sedately replied, "I hev tole Jeemes Blake, and I hev tole you-uns, ez I count on livin' single."

Cynthia's face turned red for a moment. Then she calmly replied, "I've told James Blake, and I've told you all, that I plan on living single."

"I'll be bound ye never tole 'Vander that word!" cried the astute old woman. "Waal, waal, waal!" she continued, in exclamatory disapproval, as she leaned to the fire and scooped up a live coal into the bowl of her pipe, "a gal is a aggervatin' contrivance, ennyhow, in the world! But I jes' up an' tole Jeemes ez ye hed got ter lookin' so peaked an' mournful, like some critter ez war shot an' creepin' away ter die somewhar, an' he hedn't los' much, arter all." She puffed vigorously at her pipe; then, with a change of tone, "An' Jeemes air mighty slack-jawed ter his elders, too! He tuk me up ez sharp. He 'lowed ez he hed no fault ter find with yer looks. He said ye war pritty enough fur him. Then my dander riz, an' I spoke up, an' says, 'Mebbe so, Jeemes, mebbe so, fur ye air in no wise pritty yerself.' An' then he gin me no more of his jaw, but arter he hed sot a while longer he said, 'Far'well,' toler'ble perlite, an' put out."

"I bet you never told Vander that word!" exclaimed the sharp old woman. "Well, well, well!" she continued, expressing her disapproval as she leaned toward the fire and picked up a live coal to fill her pipe, "Girls are really an annoying creation, anyway! But I just told James that you looked so pale and sad, like some creature that was shot and creeping away to die somewhere, and he hadn’t lost much after all." She puffed hard on her pipe; then, switching her tone, "And James is pretty disrespectful to his elders, too! He picked me up pretty quickly. He said he had no complaints about your looks. He said you were pretty enough for him. Then I got a bit riled up, and I said, 'Maybe so, James, maybe so, but you're in no way pretty yourself.' And then he didn’t say much more, but after sitting a while longer, he said, 'Farewell,' quite politely, and left."

After a long time the snow slipped gradually from the mountain top, and the drifts in the deep abysses melted, and heavy rains came on. The mists clung, shroud-like, to Pine Mountain. The distant ranges seemed to withdraw themselves into indefinite space, and for weeks Cynthia was bereft of their familiar presence. Myriads of streamlets, channeling the gullies and swirling among the bowlders, were flowing down the steeps to join Lost Creek, on its way to its mysterious sepulchre beneath the mountains.

After a long time, the snow slowly melted from the mountaintop, and the drifts in the deep valleys disappeared as heavy rains poured down. The mists wrapped around Pine Mountain like a shroud. The distant ranges appeared to fade away into the infinite, and for weeks, Cynthia felt the absence of their familiar presence. Countless small streams, carving through the gullies and swirling around the boulders, flowed down the slopes to join Lost Creek on its way to its mysterious resting place beneath the mountains.

And at last the spring opened. A vivid green tipped the sombre plumes of the pines. The dull gray mists etherealized to a silver gauze, and glistened above the mellowing landscape. The wild cherry was blooming far and near. From the summit of the mountain could be seen for many a mile the dirt-road in the valley,—a tawny streak of color on every hilltop, or winding by every fallow field and rocky slope. A wild, new hope was suddenly astir in Cynthia's heart; a new energy fired her blood. It may have been only the recuperative power of youth asserting itself. To her it was as if she had heard the voice of the Lord; and she arose and followed it.

And finally, spring arrived. Bright green tips adorned the dark pine trees. The dull gray mist transformed into a shimmering silver veil, glistening above the warming landscape. Wild cherry blossoms filled the area. From the top of the mountain, you could see the dirt road in the valley stretching for miles—a tawny line of color on every hilltop, winding past empty fields and rocky slopes. A wild, fresh hope suddenly stirred in Cynthia's heart; a new energy pulsed through her veins. It might have just been the rejuvenating power of youth making itself known. To her, it felt like she had heard the voice of God; she rose and followed it.

II.

II.

Following the voice of the Lord, Cynthia took her way along a sandy bridle-path that penetrates the dense forests of Pine Mountain. The soft spring wind, fluttering in beneath her sun-bonnet, found the first wild-rose blooming on her thin cheek. A new light shone like a steadfast star in her deep brown eyes. "I hev took a-holt," she said resolutely, "an' I'll never gin it up. 'Twarn't his deed, an' I'll prove that, agin his own word. I dunno how,—but I'll prove it."

Following the voice of the Lord, Cynthia made her way along a sandy bridle path that cut through the thick forests of Pine Mountain. The gentle spring breeze, slipping under her sun hat, brushed against her cheek, where the first wild rose was blooming. A new light sparkled like a constant star in her deep brown eyes. "I've got a hold," she said firmly, "and I won’t give it up. It wasn’t his doing, and I’ll prove that, against his own word. I don’t know how— but I’ll prove it."

The woods seemed to open at last, for the brink of the ridge was close at hand. As the trees were marshaled down the steep declivity, she could see above their heads the wide and splendid mountain landscape, with the benediction of the spring upon it, with the lofty peace of the unclouded sky above it, with an impressive silence pervading it that was akin to a holy solemnity.

The woods finally seemed to clear, as the edge of the ridge was nearby. As the trees lined the steep slope, she could see above them the vast and beautiful mountain scenery, blessed by spring, under the serene peace of the clear sky, with an incredible silence that felt almost sacred.

There was a rocky, barren slope to the left, and among the brambly ledges sheep were feeding. As the flock caught her attention she experienced a certain satisfaction. "They hed sheep in the Lord's life-time," she observed. "He gins a word 'bout'n them more'n enny other critter."

There was a rocky, barren slope to the left, and among the thorny ledges, sheep were grazing. When the flock caught her eye, she felt a sense of satisfaction. "They had sheep in the Lord's time," she remarked. "He says a word about them more than any other creature."

And she sat down on a rock, among the harmless creatures, and was less lonely and forlorn.

And she sat down on a rock, surrounded by the gentle creatures, and felt less lonely and abandoned.

A little log house surmounted the slope. It was quaintly awry, like most of the mountaineers' cabins, and the ridgepole, with its irregularly projecting clapboards serrating the sky behind it, described a negligently oblique line. Its clay chimney had a leaning tendency, and was propped to its duty by a long pole. There was a lofty martin-house, whence the birds whirled fitfully. The rail fence inclosing the dooryard was only a few steps from the porch. There rested the genial afternoon sunshine. It revealed the spinning-wheel that stood near the wall; the shelf close to the door, with a pail of water and a gourd for the incidentally thirsty; the idle churn, its dasher on another shelf to dry; a rooster strutting familiarly in at the open door; and a newly hatched brood picking about among the legs of the splint-bottomed chairs, under the guidance of a matronly old "Dominicky hen." In one of the chairs sat a man, emaciated, pallid, swathed in many gay-colored quilts, and piping querulously in a high, piercing key to a worn and weary woman, who came to the fence and looked down the hill as he feebly pointed.

A small log cabin sat at the top of the slope. It was charmingly askew, like most of the mountain dwellers' homes, and the ridgepole, with its uneven clapboards jutting out against the sky, formed a carelessly slanted line. The clay chimney had a slight lean and was supported by a long pole. A tall martin house stood nearby, where the birds flew around sporadically. The rail fence surrounding the yard was just a few steps away from the porch. The warm afternoon sun poured down. It highlighted the spinning wheel next to the wall, the shelf by the door with a pail of water and a gourd for anyone who might be thirsty, the idle churn with its dasher set aside to dry on another shelf, a rooster confidently walking through the open door, and a newly hatched brood pecking around the legs of the splint-bottom chairs, supervised by a matronly old "Dominick hen." In one of the chairs sat a thin, pale man wrapped in several brightly colored quilts, complaining in a high, sharp voice to a tired woman who came to the fence and looked down the hill as he weakly gestured.

"Cynthy—Cynthy Ware!" she called out, "air that you-uns?"

"Cynthy—Cynthy Ware!" she called out, "is that you all?"

Cynthia hesitated, then arose and went forward a few steps. "It be me," she said, as if making an admission.

Cynthia hesitated, then stood up and took a few steps forward. "It's me," she said, as if confessing.

"Kem up hyar. Jube's wantin' ter know why ye hain't been hyar ter inquire arter him." The woman waited at the gate, and opened it for her visitor. She looked hardly less worn and exhausted than the broken image of a man in the chair. "Jube counts up every critter in the mountings ez kems ter inquire arter him," she added, in a lower voice. "'Pears-like ter me ez it air about time fur worldly pride ter hev loosed a-holt on him; but Satan kin foster guile whar thar ain't enough life left fur nuthin' else, an' pore Jube hev never been so gin over ter the glory o' this world ez now."

"Come on over here. Jube wants to know why you haven't come by to check on him." The woman stood at the gate and opened it for her visitor. She looked almost as worn and exhausted as the broken man sitting in the chair. "Jube counts every person in the mountains who comes to ask about him," she added in a softer voice. "It seems to me it's about time for worldly pride to have let go of him; but the devil can cultivate deception where there's barely enough life left for anything else, and poor Jube has never been as caught up in the glory of this world as he is now."

"He 'pears ter be gittin' on some," said the girl, although she hardly recognized in the puny, pallid apparition among the muffling quilts the bluff and hale mountaineer she had known.

"He seems to be getting on some," said the girl, although she barely recognized in the weak, pale figure among the thick quilts the strong and healthy mountaineer she had known.

"Fust-rate!" weakly piped out the constable. "I eat a haffen pone o' bread fur dinner!" Then he turned querulously to his wife: "Jane Elmiry, ain't ye goin' ter git me that thar fraish aig ter whip up in whiskey, like the doctor said?"

"First-rate!" weakly called out the constable. "I had half a loaf of bread for dinner!" Then he turned grumpily to his wife: "Jane Elmiry, aren't you going to get me that fresh egg to whip up in whiskey, like the doctor said?"

"'T ain't time yit, Jube," replied the patient wife. "The doctor 'lowed ez the aig must be spang fraish; an' ez old Topknot lays ter the minit every day, I'm a-waitin' on her."

"'It's not time yet, Jube," replied the patient wife. "The doctor said that the egg has to be completely fresh; and since old Topknot lays every day at the same time, I'm waiting on her."

The wasted limbs under the quilts squirmed around vivaciously. "An' yander's the darned critter," he cried, spying old Topknot leisurely pecking about under a lilac bush, "a-feedin' around ez complacent an' sati'fied ez ef I warn't a-settin' hyar waitin' on her lazy bones! Cynthy, I'm jes' a-honing arter suthin' ter eat all the time, an' that's what makes me 'low ez I'm gittin' well; though Jane Elmiry"—he glared fiercely at his meek wife, "hev somehows los' her knack at cookin', an' sometimes I can't eat my vittles when they air fetched ter me."

The wasted limbs under the quilts squirmed around energetically. "And there’s that darn critter," he shouted, spotting old Topknot leisurely pecking around under a lilac bush, "feeding away like she couldn’t care less that I’m sitting here waiting on her lazy self! Cynthy, I’m just craving something to eat all the time, and that’s why I think I’m getting better; although Jane Elmiry"—he glared fiercely at his timid wife—"has somehow lost her cooking skills, and sometimes I just can’t eat the food when it’s brought to me."

He fell back in his chair, his tangled, over-grown hair hardly distinguishable from his tangled, over-grown beard. His eyes roved restlessly about the quiet landscape. A mist was gathering over the eastern ranges; shot with the sunlight, it was but a silken and filmy suggestion of vapor. A line of vivid green in the valley marked the course of Lost Creek by the willows and herbage fringing its banks. A gilded bee, with a languorous drone, drifted in and out of the little porch, and the shadow of the locust above it was beginning to lengthen. The tree was in bloom, and Cynthia picked up a fallen spray as she sat down on the step. He glanced casually at her; then, with the egotism of an invalid, his mind reverted to himself.

He leaned back in his chair, his messy, overgrown hair blending in with his untamed beard. His eyes wandered restlessly across the peaceful landscape. A mist was forming over the eastern hills; kissed by sunlight, it appeared like a soft, delicate vapor. A bright green line in the valley indicated the path of Lost Creek, lined with willows and plants along its edges. A golden bee, buzzing lazily, floated in and out of the small porch, and the shadow of the locust tree above it was starting to stretch longer. The tree was in bloom, and Cynthia picked up a fallen branch as she sat down on the step. He glanced at her casually; then, with the self-absorption of someone unwell, his thoughts shifted back to himself.

"Why hain't ye been hyar ter inquire arter me, Cynthy,—you-uns, or yer dad, or yer mam, or somebody? I hain't been lef' ter suffer, though, 'thout folkses axin' arter me, I tell ye! The miller hev been hyar day arter day. Baker Teal, what keeps the store yander ter the Settlemint, hev rid over reg'lar. Tom Peters kems ez sartain ez the sun. An' the jestice o' the peace"—he winked weakly in triumph, "Squair Bates—hev been hyar nigh on ter wunst a week. The sheriff or one o' the dep'ties hain't been sca'ce round hyar, nuther. An' some other folkses—I name no names—sends me all the liquor I kin drink from a still ez they say grows in a hollow rock round hyar somewhar. They sends me all I kin drink, an' Jane Elmiry, too. I don't want but a little, but Jane Elmiry air a tremenjious toper, ye know!" He laughed in a shrill falsetto at his joke, and his wife smiled, but faintly, for she realized the invalid's pleasant mood was brief. "Ef I hed a-knowed how pop'lar I be, I'd hev run fur jestice o' the peace stiddier constable. But nex' time thar'll be a differ; that hain't the las' election this world will ever see, Cynthy." Then, as his eyes fell upon her once more, he remembered his question. "Why n't ye been hyar ter inquire arter me?"

"Why haven't you been here to check on me, Cynthy—either you, your dad, your mom, or someone? I haven't been left to suffer without people asking about me, I tell you! The miller has been here day after day. Baker Teal, who runs the store over at the Settlement, has ridden over regularly. Tom Peters comes as surely as the sun. And the justice of the peace"—he winked weakly in triumph, "Squair Bates—has been here almost once a week. The sheriff or one of the deputies hasn't been scarce around here either. And some other people—I won't name names—send me all the liquor I can drink from a still that they say grows in a hollow rock around here somewhere. They send me all I can drink, and Jane Elmiry too. I don’t need much, but Jane Elmiry is a tremendous drinker, you know!" He laughed in a high pitch at his joke, and his wife smiled, but faintly, as she realized the invalid's pleasant mood wouldn't last long. "If I had known how popular I am, I would have run for justice of the peace instead of constable. But next time there will be a difference; this isn't the last election this world will ever see, Cynthy." Then, as he looked at her again, he remembered his question. "Why haven't you been here to check on me?"

The girl was confused by his changed aspect, his eager, restless talk, his fierce girding at his patient wife, and lost what scanty tact she might have otherwise claimed.

The girl was confused by his changed appearance, his eager, restless chatter, his fierce way of berating his patient wife, and lost whatever limited tact she might have had otherwise.

"The folkses ez rid by hyar tole us how ye be a-gittin' on. An' we-uns 'lowed ez mebbe ye wouldn't want ter see us, bein' ez we war always sech friends with 'Vander, an'"—

"The people who ride by here told us how you’re doing. And we thought that maybe you wouldn't want to see us, since we were always such good friends with 'Vander, and"

The woman stopped her by a hasty gesture and a look of terror. They did not escape the invalid's notice.

The woman stopped her with a quick hand gesture and a look of fear. The invalid noticed them.

"What ails ye, Jane Elmiry?" he cried, angrily. "Ye act like ye war destracted!"

"What’s wrong with you, Jane Elmiry?" he shouted, angrily. "You’re acting like you’re distracted!"

A sudden fit of coughing impeded his utterance, and gave his wife the opportunity for a whispered aside. "He ain't spoke 'Vander's name sence he war hurt. The doctor said he warn't ter talk about his a-gittin' hurt, an' the man ez done it. The doctor 'lowed 't would fever him an' put him out'n his head, an' he must jes' think 'bout'n gittin' well all the time, an' sech."

A sudden coughing fit interrupted him, giving his wife the chance to whisper to him, "He hasn’t mentioned Vander’s name since he got hurt. The doctor said he shouldn’t talk about how he got hurt or the man who did it. The doctor warned that it would upset him and drive him crazy, and he needs to focus on getting better all the time, and stuff like that."

Jubal Tynes had recovered his voice and his temper. "I hain't got no grudge agin' 'Vander," he declared, in his old, bluff way, "nur 'Vander's friends, nuther. It air jes' that dad-burned idjit, 'Lijah, ez I despise. Jane Elmiry, ain't that old Topknot ez I hear a-cack-lin'? Waal, waal, sir, dad-burn that thar lazy, idle poultry! Air she a-stalkin' round the yard yit? Go, Jane Elmiry, an' see whar she be. Ef she ain't got sense enough ter git on her nest an lay a aig when desirable, she hain't got sense enough ter keep out'n a chicken pie."

Jubal Tynes had regained his voice and his temper. "I don't have any grudge against 'Vander," he said, in his usual gruff way, "nor against 'Vander's friends, either. It's just that darned idiot, 'Lijah, that I can't stand. Jane Elmiry, isn't that old Topknot I hear cackling? Well, well, sir, damn that lazy, idle bird! Is she still wandering around the yard? Go, Jane Elmiry, and see where she is. If she doesn’t have enough sense to get on her nest and lay an egg when it’s needed, she doesn’t have enough sense to stay out of a chicken pie."

"I mought skeer her off'n her nest," his wife remonstrated.

"I might scare her away from her nest," his wife protested.

But the imperious invalid insisted. She rose reluctantly, and as she stepped off the porch she cast an imploring glance at Cynthia.

But the demanding invalid insisted. She got up reluctantly, and as she stepped off the porch, she gave an imploring look at Cynthia.

The girl was trembling. The mere mention of the deed to its victim had unnerved her. She felt it was perhaps a safe transition from the subject to talk about the idiot brother. "I hev hearn folks 'low ez 'Lijah oughter be locked up, but I dunno," she said.

The girl was shaking. Just mentioning what happened to the victim had rattled her. She thought it might be a good idea to switch subjects and talk about her foolish brother. "I've heard people say that Elijah should be locked up, but I don't know," she said.

The man fixed a concentrated gaze upon her. "Waal, ain't he?"

The man fixed a focused stare at her. "Well, isn't he?"

"'Lijah ain't locked up," she faltered, bewildered.

"'Lijah's not locked up," she said, confused.

His face fell. Unaccountably enough, his pride seemed grievously cut down.

His expression changed. For some reason, his pride felt seriously hurt.

"Waal, 'Lijah ain't 'sponsible, I know," he reasoned; "but bein' ez he treated me this way, an' me a important off'cer o' the law, 'pears-like 'twould a-been more respec'ful ef they hed committed him ter jail ez insane, or sent him ter the 'sylum,—fur they take some crazies at the State's expense." He paused thoughtfully. He was mortified, hurt. "But shucks!" he exclaimed presently, "let him treat haffen the county ez he done me, ef he wants ter. I ain't a-keerin'."

"Waal, 'Lijah isn't responsible, I know," he reasoned; "but since he treated me this way, and I'm an important officer of the law, it seems like it would have been more respectful if they had committed him to jail as insane, or sent him to the asylum—because they take some crazies at the State's expense." He paused thoughtfully. He was embarrassed, hurt. "But shucks!" he exclaimed after a moment, "let him treat half the county the way he treated me, if he wants to. I don't care."

Cynthia's head was awhirl. She could hardly credit her senses.

Cynthia's head was spinning. She could barely believe what she was experiencing.

"How war it that 'Lijah treated you-uns?" she gasped.

"How was it that 'Lijah treated you all?" she gasped.

In his turn he stared, amazed.

In turn, he stared in amazement.

"Cynthy, 'pears-like ye hev los' yer mind! How did 'Lijah treat me? Waal, 'Lijah whacked me on the head with his brother's sledge, an' split my skull, an' the folks say some o' my brains oozed out. I hev got more of 'em now, though, than ye hev. Ye look plumb bereft. What ails the gal?"

"Cynthy, it seems like you’ve lost your mind! How did Elijah treat me? Well, Elijah hit me on the head with his brother's sledgehammer and split my skull, and people say some of my brains leaked out. I've got more of them now, though, than you do. You look completely confused. What’s wrong with you?"

"Air ye sure—sure ez that war the happening of it?—kase 'Vander tells a differ. He 'lowed ez 't war him ez hit ye with the sledge. An' nobody suspicioned 'Lijah."

"Are you sure—sure as that was how it went?—because Vander says differently. He claimed it was him who hit you with the sledge. And nobody suspected 'Lijah."

Jubal Tynes looked very near death now. His pallid face was framed in long elf-locks; he thrust his head forward, till his emaciated throat and neck were distinctly visible; his lower jaw dropped in astonishment.

Jubal Tynes looked like he was on the brink of death now. His pale face was surrounded by long, wild hair; he leaned his head forward, making his thin throat and neck clearly visible; his lower jaw hung open in shock.

"God A'mighty!" he ejaculated, "why hev 'Vander tole sech a lie? Sure! Why, I seen 'Lijah! 'Vander never teched the sledge. An' 'Vander never teched me."

"God Almighty!" he exclaimed, "why has Vander told such a lie? Sure! I saw Elijah! Vander never touched the sledge. And Vander never touched me."

"Ye hev furgot, mebbe," she urged, feverishly. "'T war in the dark."

"You might have forgotten," she urged, anxiously. "It was in the dark."

"Listen at the gal argufyin' with me!" he exclaimed, angrily. "I seen 'Lijah, I tell ye, in the light o' the forge fire. 'T war n't more 'n a few coals, but ez 'Lijah swung his arm it fanned the fire, an' it lept up. I seen his face in the glow, an' the sledge in his hand. 'Lijah war hid a-hint the hood. 'Vander war t' other side o' the anvil. I gripped with 'Lijah. I seen him plain. He hit me twict. I never los' my senses till the second lick. Then I drapped. What ails 'Vander, ter tell sech a lie? Ef I hed a-died, stiddier gittin' well so powerful peart, they'd hev hung him, sure."

"Listen to that guy arguing with me!" he shouted, angrily. "I saw 'Lijah, I tell you, in the light of the forge fire. It wasn’t more than a few coals, but as 'Lijah swung his arm it fanned the fire, and it flared up. I saw his face in the glow, and the sledge in his hand. 'Lijah was hidden behind the hood. 'Vander was on the other side of the anvil. I fought back with 'Lijah. I saw him clearly. He hit me twice. I didn’t lose my senses until the second hit. Then I collapsed. What’s wrong with 'Vander, to tell such a lie? If I had died, instead of getting well so quickly, they would have hung him, for sure."

"Mebbe he thought they'd hang 'Lijah!" she gasped, appalled at the magnitude of the sacrifice.

"Maybe he thought they'd hang 'Lijah!" she gasped, shocked by the extent of the sacrifice.

"'Lijah ain't 'sponsible ter the law," said Jubal Tynes, with his magisterial aspect, "bein' ez he air a ravin' crazy, ez oughter be locked up."

"'Lijah isn't responsible to the law," said Jubal Tynes, with his authoritative demeanor, "since he’s a raving madman who should be locked up."

"I reckon 'Vander never knowed ez that war true," she rejoined, reflectively. "The 'torney-gineral tole Pete Blenkins, when 'Vander war convicted of receivin' of stolen goods, ez how 'Vander war toler'ble ignorant, an' knowed powerful little 'bout the law o' the land. He done it, I reckon, ter pertect the idjit."

"I guess 'Vander never really knew that war was true," she replied thoughtfully. "The attorney general told Pete Blenkins, when 'Vander was convicted of receiving stolen goods, that 'Vander was pretty ignorant and knew very little about the law of the land. He did it, I suppose, to protect the idiot."

Jubal Tynes made no rejoinder. He had fallen back in his chair, so frail, so exhausted by the unwonted excitement, that she was alarmed anew, realizing how brief his time might be.

Jubal Tynes didn't respond. He had leaned back in his chair, so frail and so worn out from the unusual excitement that she felt a new wave of worry, realizing how limited his time could be.

"Jubal Tynes," she said, leaning forward and looking up at him imploringly, "ef I war ter tell what ye hev tole me, nobody would believe me, 'kase—'kase 'Vander an' me hev kep' company some. Hedn't ye better tell it ter the Squair ez how 'Vander never hit ye, but said he did, ter git the blame shet o' the idjit 'Lijah, ez ain't 'sponsible, nohows? Ain't thar no way ter make it safe fur 'Vander? They 'lowed he wouldn't hev been convicted of receivin' of stolen goods 'ceptin' fur the way the jury thought he behaved 'bout resistin' arrest an' hittin' ye with the sledge."

"Jubal Tynes," she said, leaning forward and looking up at him earnestly, "if I were to tell what you’ve told me, no one would believe me, because—because 'Vander and I have been seeing each other for a while. Wouldn't it be better for you to tell the Square that 'Vander never hit you, but said he did to take the blame off that idiot 'Lijah, who isn't responsible at all? Is there any way to make it safe for 'Vander? They said he wouldn't have been convicted of receiving stolen goods except for the way the jury thought he acted about resisting arrest and hitting you with the sledge."

The sick man's eyes were aflame. "Ye 'low ez I'm goin' ter die, Cynthy Ware!" he cried, with sudden energy. "I'll gin ye ter onderstand ez I feel ez strong ez a ox! I won't do nuthin' fur 'Vander. Let him stand or fall by the lie he hev tole! I feel ez solid ez Pine Mounting! I won't do nuthin' ez ef I war a-goin' ter die,—like ez ef I war a chicken with the pip—an' whar air that ole hen ez war nominated ter lay a aig, ter whip up in whiskey, an' ain't done it?"

The sick man's eyes were blazing. "You think I'm going to die, Cynthy Ware!" he shouted, with sudden energy. "I'll make it clear that I feel as strong as an ox! I won't do anything for 'Vander. Let him stand or fall by the lie he's told! I feel as solid as Pine Mountain! I won't do anything like I'm about to die—like I’m a chicken with a disease—and where is that old hen who was supposed to lay an egg, to whip up in whiskey, and hasn’t done it?"

A sudden wild cackling broke upon the air. The red rooster, standing by the gate, stretched up his long neck to listen, and lifted his voice in jubilant sympathy. Jubal Tynes looked around at Cynthia with a laugh. Then his brow darkened, and his mind reverted to his refusal.

A sudden loud cackling pierced the air. The red rooster, perched by the gate, stretched his long neck to listen and raised his voice in joyful response. Jubal Tynes glanced at Cynthia with a laugh. Then his expression turned serious, and his thoughts returned to his refusal.

"Ye jes' onderstand," he reiterated, "ez I won't do nuthin' like ez ef I war goin' ter die."

"Just understand," he repeated, "that I wouldn't do anything like that even if I were going to die."

She got home as best she could, weeping and wringing her hands much of the way, feeling baffled and bruised, and aghast at the terrible perplexities that crowded about her.

She got home as best as she could, crying and wringing her hands most of the way, feeling confused and hurt, and shocked by the terrible challenges that surrounded her.

Jubal Tynes had a bad night. He was restless and fretful, and sometimes, when he had been still for a while, and seemed about to sink into slumber, he would start up abruptly, declaring that he could not "git shet of studying 'bout 'n 'Vander, an' 'Lijah, an' the sledge," and violently wishing that Cynthia Ware had died before she ever came interrupting him about 'Vander, and 'Lijah, and the sledge. Toward morning exhaustion prevailed. He sank into a deep, dreamless sleep, from which he woke refreshed and interested in the matter of breakfast.

Jubal Tynes had a rough night. He was restless and anxious, and sometimes, when he finally got still for a bit and seemed like he was about to fall asleep, he would suddenly sit up, insisting that he couldn’t stop thinking about ‘Vander, ‘Lijah, and the sledge, and he fiercely wished that Cynthia Ware had never come to interrupt him about ‘Vander, ‘Lijah, and the sledge. As morning approached, exhaustion took over. He fell into a deep, dreamless sleep, from which he woke feeling refreshed and eager for breakfast.

That day a report went the excited rounds of the mountain that he had made a sworn statement before Squire Bates, denying that Evander Price had resisted arrest, exonerating him of all connection with the injuries supposed to have been received at his hands, and inculpating only the idiot Elijah. This was supplemented by Dr. Patton's affidavit as to his patient's mental soundness and responsibility.

That day, news spread quickly through the mountains that he had given a sworn statement to Squire Bates, claiming that Evander Price hadn’t resisted arrest, clearing him of any involvement in the injuries believed to have been caused by him, and blaming only the idiot Elijah. This was backed up by Dr. Patton's statement regarding his patient's mental stability and accountability.

It roused Cynthia's flagging spirit to an ecstasy of energy. Her strength was as fictitious as the strength of delirium, but it sufficed. Opposition could not baffle it. Obstacles but multiplied its expedients. She remembered that the trained and astute attorney for the State had declared to Pete Blenkins, after the trial, that the prosecution had no case against Evander Price for receiving stolen goods, and must have failed but for the prejudice of the jury. It was proved to them by his own confession that he had resisted arrest and assaulted the officer of the law, and circumstantial evidence had a light task, with this auxiliary, to establish other charges. Now, she thought, if the jury that convicted him, the judge that sentenced him, and the governor of the State were cognizant of this stupendous self-sacrifice to fraternal affection, could they, would they, still take seven years of his life from him? At least, they should know of it,—she had resolved on that. She hardly appreciated the difficulty of the task before her. She was densely ignorant. She lived in a primitive community. Such a paper as a petition for executive clemency had never been drawn within its experience. She could not have discovered that this proceeding was practicable, except for the pride of office and legal lore of Jubal Tynes. He joyed in displaying his learning; but beyond the fact that such a paper was possible, and sometimes successful, and that she had better see the lawyer at the Settlement about it, he suggested nothing of value. And so she tramped a matter of ten miles along the heavy, sandy road, through the dense and lonely woods; and weary, but flushed with joyous hope, she came upon the surprised lawyer at the Settlement. This was a man who built the great structure of justice upon a foundation of fees. He listened to her, noted the poverty of her aspect, and recommended her to secure the coöperation of the convict's immediate relatives. And so, patiently back again, along the dank and darkening mountain road.

It lifted Cynthia's fading spirit to an intense level of energy. Her strength was as unreal as the strength of fever-induced delirium, but it was enough. Nothing could stand in her way. Challenges only made her more resourceful. She recalled how the sharp and skilled prosecutor had told Pete Blenkins, after the trial, that there was no case against Evander Price for receiving stolen goods and they would have lost if it weren't for the jury's bias. It was clear from Evander's own confession that he had resisted arrest and assaulted the police officer, and the circumstantial evidence did a quick job of backing up additional charges. Now, she thought, if the jury that convicted him, the judge that sentenced him, and the governor of the State knew about this massive act of self-sacrifice for brotherly love, could they really, would they really, still take seven years of his life away? They should at least hear about it—she was determined to make that happen. She barely understood the difficulty of the task ahead of her. She was completely uninformed. She lived in a basic community. A document like a petition for executive clemency had never been created in her experience. She wouldn't have known that this process was even possible without the pride in his position and legal knowledge of Jubal Tynes. He took pleasure in showcasing his expertise; but beyond pointing out that such a document was possible and sometimes successful, and that she should talk to the lawyer at the Settlement about it, he offered nothing useful. So, she trudged ten miles down the heavy, sandy road, through the thick and silent woods; and exhausted, but filled with hopeful excitement, she found the surprised lawyer at the Settlement. He was a man who built the great structure of justice on a foundation of fees. He listened to her, noticed her poor appearance, and advised her to get the support of the convict's immediate family. And so, patiently back again, along the damp and darkening mountain road.

The home of her lover was not an inviting abode. When she had turned from the thoroughfare into a vagrant, irresponsible-looking path, winding about in the depths of the forest, it might have seemed that in a group which presently met her eyes, the animals were the more emotional, alert, and intelligent element. The hounds came huddling over the rickety fence, and bounded about her in tumultuous recognition. An old sow, with a litter of shrill soprano pigs, started up from a clump of weeds, in maternal anxiety and doubt of the intruder's intentions. The calf peered between the rails in mild wonder at this break in the monotony. An old man sat motionless on the fence, with as sober and business-like an aspect as if he did it for a salary. The porch was occupied by an indiscriminate collection of household effects,—cooking utensils, garments, broken chairs,—and an untidy, disheveled woman. An old crone, visible within the door, was leisurely preparing the evening meal. Cynthia's heart warmed at the sight of the familiar place. The tears started to her sympathetic eyes. "I hev kem ter tell ye all 'bout'n 'Vander!" she cried impulsively, when she was welcomed to a chair and a view of the weed-grown "gyarden-spot."

The home of her lover wasn't exactly a welcoming place. When she turned off the main road onto a rugged, careless-looking path twisting through the forest, it almost seemed that the animals she encountered were more emotional, alert, and intelligent than the people. The dogs rushed over the rickety fence, bouncing around her in excited recognition. An old mama pig with a noisy group of piglets jumped up from a patch of weeds, worried about this stranger's intentions. A calf peeked through the rails, curiously wondering about this break in the usual routine. An old man sat still on the fence, looking serious and businesslike as if he were doing it for a paycheck. The porch was cluttered with a random assortment of household items—cooking tools, clothes, broken chairs—and a disheveled woman. An old woman could be seen inside the door, casually preparing dinner. Cynthia's heart warmed at the sight of this familiar place. Tears filled her sympathetic eyes. "I’ve come to tell you all about 'Vander!" she exclaimed impulsively when she was offered a chair and a view of the overgrown "garden spot."

But the disclosure of her scheme did not waken responsive enthusiasm. The old man, still dutifully riding the fence, conservatively declared that the law of the land was a "mighty tetchy contrivance," and he didn't feel called on to meddle with it. "They mought jail the whole fambly, ez fur ez I know, an' then who would work the gyarden-spot, ez air thrivin' now, an' the peas fullin' up cornsider'ble?"

But revealing her plan didn't spark any excitement. The old man, still playing it safe, cautiously stated that the law was a "pretty tricky situation," and he didn’t think it was his place to get involved. "They might jail the whole family, as far as I know, and then who would take care of the garden plot, which is doing well now, with the peas filling up nicely?"

Mrs. Price had "no call ter holp sot the law on 'Lijah agin 'Vander's word. I dunno what the folks would do ter 'Lijah ef Jube died, sence he hev swore ez he hev done afore Squair Bates. Some tole me ez 'Lijah air purtected by bein' a idjit but I ain't sati'fied 'bout'n that. 'Lijah war sane enough ter be toler'ble skeered when he hearn bout'n it all, an' hev tuk ter shettin' hisself up in the shed-room when strangers kem about." And indeed Cynthia had an unpleasant impression that the idiot was looking out suspiciously at her from a crack in the door, but he precipitately slammed it when she turned her head to make sure. The old crone paused in her preparations for supper, that she might apply all her faculties to argument. "It don't 'pear ter reason how the gov'nor will pardon 'Vander fur receivin' of stolen goods jes' 'kase 't warn't him ez bruk Jube Tynes's head," she declared. "Vander war jailed fur receivin' stolen goods,—nobody never keered nothin' fur Jube Tynes's head! I hev knowed the Tynes fambly time out'n mind," she continued, raising her voice in shrill contempt. "I knowed Jubal Tynes, an' his daddy afore him. An' now ter kem talkin' ter me 'bout the gov'nor o' Tennessee keerin' fur Jube Tynes's nicked head. I don't keer nothin' 'bout Jube Tynes's nicked head; an' let 'em tell the gov'nor that fur me, an' see what he will think then!"

Mrs. Price had "no reason to help set the law against 'Lijah just because of 'Vander's word. I don’t know what people would do to 'Lijah if Jube died, since he has sworn like he did before Square Bates. Some told me that 'Lijah is protected because he’s an idiot, but I’m not satisfied with that. 'Lijah was sane enough to be pretty scared when he heard about it all, and he has taken to locking himself up in the shed when strangers come around." And indeed, Cynthia had an uneasy feeling that the idiot was peeking at her suspiciously through a crack in the door, but he quickly slammed it when she turned her head to check. The old woman paused in her preparations for dinner to focus all her attention on the argument. "It doesn’t make sense how the governor will pardon 'Vander for receiving stolen goods just because it wasn’t him who broke Jube Tynes's head," she declared. "'Vander was jailed for receiving stolen goods,—nobody ever cared anything about Jube Tynes's head! I have known the Tynes family forever," she continued, raising her voice in sharp contempt. "I knew Jubal Tynes, and his father before him. And now to come talking to me about the governor of Tennessee caring for Jube Tynes's injured head. I don’t care anything about Jube Tynes's injured head; and let them tell the governor that for me, and see what he thinks then!"

Poor Cynthia! It had never occurred to her to account herself gifted beyond her fellows and her opportunities. The simple events of their primitive lives had never before elicited the contrast. It gave her no satisfaction. She only experienced a vague, miserable wonder that she should have perceptions beyond their range of vision, should be susceptible of emotions which they could never share. She realized that she could get no material aid here, and she went away at last without asking for it.

Poor Cynthia! She had never thought of herself as more gifted than her peers or her circumstances. The everyday happenings of their simple lives had never drawn a comparison before. It didn’t make her feel better. She only felt a vague, miserable wonder that she could see beyond their understanding and feel emotions that they would never experience. She understood that she wouldn’t find any practical help here, and in the end, she left without asking for it.

Her little all was indeed little,—a few chickens, some "spun-truck," a sheep that she had nursed from an orphaned lamb, a "cag" of apple-vinegar, and a bag of dried fruit,—but it had its value to the mountain lawyer; and when he realized that this was indeed "all" he drew the petition in consideration thereof, and appended the affidavits of Jubal Tynes and Dr. Patton.

Her little all was truly small—a few chickens, some spun yarn, a sheep she had raised from an orphaned lamb, a jug of apple vinegar, and a bag of dried fruit—but it had value for the mountain lawyer. When he realized this was indeed everything she had, he wrote up the petition based on that and included the affidavits of Jubal Tynes and Dr. Patton.

"She ain't got a red head on her for nothin'," he said to himself, in admiration of her astuteness in insisting that, as a part of his services, he should furnish her with a list of the jury that convicted Evander Price.

"She doesn’t have a redhead for nothing," he said to himself, admiring her cleverness in insisting that, as part of his services, he should provide her with a list of the jury that convicted Evander Price.

"For every man of 'em hev got ter sot his name ter that thar petition," she averred.

"For every one of them has to sign their name on that petition," she said.

He even offered, when his energy and interest were aroused, to take the paper with him to Sparta when he next attended circuit court. There, he promised, he would secure some influential signatures from the members of the bar and other prominent citizens.

He even offered that when he felt energized and interested, he would take the paper with him to Sparta the next time he went to circuit court. There, he promised, he would get some important signatures from the members of the bar and other notable citizens.

When she was fairly gone he forgot his energy and interest. He kept the paper three months. He did not once offer it for a signature. And when she demanded its return, it was mislaid, lost.

When she was mostly out of the picture, he lost his motivation and enthusiasm. He held onto the paper for three months. He never once suggested signing it. And when she asked for it back, it was misplaced, gone.

Oratory is a legal requisite in that region. He might have taken some fine points from her unconscious eloquence, inspired by love and grief and despair, her scathing arraignment of his selfish neglect, her upbraidings and alternate appeals. It overwhelmed him, in some sort, and yet he was roused into activity unusual enough to revive the lost document. She went away with it, leaving him in rueful meditation. "She hain't got a red head on her for nothin'," he said, remembering her pungent rhetoric.

Oratory is a legal requirement in that area. He might have picked up some nuances from her natural eloquence, fueled by love, grief, and despair, her sharp criticism of his selfish neglect, her reproaches, and her alternating pleas. It overwhelmed him in some way, yet it motivated him to take the unusual step of recovering the lost document. She left with it, leaving him in regretful thought. "She doesn't have a fiery personality for no reason," he said, recalling her pointed rhetoric.

But as he glanced out of the door, and saw her trudging down the road, all her grace and pliant swaying languor lost in convulsive, awkward haste and a feeble, jerky gait, he laughed.

But as he looked out the door and saw her trudging down the road, all her grace and smooth, relaxed movements replaced by a clumsy, frantic rush and a weak, unsteady walk, he laughed.

For poor Cynthia had become in some sort a grotesque figure. Only Time can pose a crusader to picturesque advantage. The man or woman with a great and noble purpose carries about with it a pitiful little personality that reflects none of its lustre. Cynthia's devotion, her courage, her endurance in righting this wrong, were not so readily apparent when, in the valley, she went tramping from one juror's house to another's as were her travel-stained garments, her wild, eager eye, her incoherent, anxious speech, her bare, swollen feet,—for sometimes she was fain to carry her coarse shoes in her hands for relief in the long journeyings. Her father had refused to aid "sech a fool yerrand," and locked up his mare in the barn. Without a qualm, he had beheld Cynthia set out resolutely on foot. "She'll be back afore the cows kem home," he said, with a laughing nod at his wife. But they came lowing home and clanking their mellow bells in many and many a red sunset before they again found Cynthia waiting for them on the banks of Lost Creek.

For poor Cynthia had turned into a bit of a bizarre figure. Only time can make a crusader look good. Someone with a great and noble cause often carries a sad little personality that doesn't shine with any of its brilliance. Cynthia's dedication, her bravery, her perseverance in fixing this injustice weren't as obvious when she marched through the valley from one juror's house to another as were her travel-worn clothes, her wild, eager eyes, her anxious, jumbled speech, and her bare, swollen feet—sometimes she would even carry her heavy shoes in her hands for relief on the long trek. Her father had refused to help with "such a foolish errand" and locked the mare in the barn. Without a second thought, he watched as Cynthia set out determinedly on foot. “She’ll be back before the cows come home,” he said, laughing as he nodded at his wife. But the cows came mooing home, their bells ringing softly in many a red sunset before they found Cynthia waiting for them by the banks of Lost Creek again.

The descent to a lower level was a painful experience to the little mountaineer. She was "sifflicated" by the denser atmosphere of the "valley country," and exhausted by the heat; but when she could think only of her mission she was hopeful, elated, and joyously kept on her thorny way. Sometimes, however, the dogs barked at her, and the children hooted after her, and the men and women she met looked askance upon her, and made her humbly conscious of her disheveled, dusty attire, her awkward, hobbling gait, her lean, hungry, worn aspect. Occasionally they asked for her story, and listened incredulously and with sarcastic comments. Once, as she started again down the road, she heard her late interlocutor call out to some one at the back of the house, "Becky, take them clothes in off 'n the line, an' take 'em in quick!"

The journey down to a lower level was a difficult experience for the young mountaineer. She struggled with the thick air of the "valley country" and felt worn out from the heat; but whenever she focused on her mission, she felt hopeful, happy, and continued along her challenging path. Sometimes, though, the dogs barked at her, and the kids jeered, while the adults she encountered looked at her with suspicion, making her acutely aware of her messy, dusty clothes, her awkward, limping walk, and her thin, hungry, tired appearance. Occasionally, they asked her to share her story, listening with disbelief and sarcasm. Once, as she began walking down the road again, she heard her previous conversation partner shout to someone at the back of the house, "Becky, get those clothes off the line, and do it quickly!"

And though her physical sufferings were great, she had some tears to shed for sorrow's sake.

And even though she was physically in a lot of pain, she still had some tears to cry for the sake of her sadness.

Always she got a night's lodging at the house of one or another of the twelve jurymen, whose names were gradually affixed to the petition. But they too had questions that were hard to answer. "Are you kin of his?" they would ask, impressed by her hardships and her self-immolation. And when she would answer, "No," she would fancy that the shelter they gave her was not in confidence, but for mere humanity. And she shrank sensitively from these supposititious suspicions. They were poor men, mostly, but one of them stopped his plowing to lend her his horse to the next house, and another gave her a lift of ten miles in his wagon, as it was on his way. He it was who told her, in rehearsing the country-side gossip, that the governor was canvassing the State for reëlection, and had made an appointment to speak at Sparta the following day.

She always found a place to stay for the night at the home of one or another of the twelve jurymen, whose names were slowly added to the petition. But they also had tough questions for her. "Are you related to him?" they would ask, moved by her struggles and her sacrifices. When she replied, "No," she felt that their hospitality was not out of trust, but simply out of kindness. This made her uncomfortable with their unspoken doubts. Most of them were poor, but one paused from his plowing to lend her his horse to the next house, and another gave her a ride for ten miles in his wagon, since it was on his way. He was the one who told her, while sharing local gossip, that the governor was campaigning for re-election and was scheduled to speak in Sparta the next day.

A new idea flashed into her mind. Her sudden resolution fairly frightened her. She cowered before it, as they drove along between the fields of yellowing corn, all in the gairish sunshine, spreading so broadly over the broad plain. That night she lay awake thinking of it, while the cold drops started upon her brow. Before daybreak she was up and trudging along the road to Sparta. It was still early when she entered the little town of the mountain bench, set in the flickering mists and chill, matutinal sunshine, and encompassed on every hand by the mighty ranges. A flag floated from the roof of the court-house, and there was an unusual stir in the streets. Excited groups were talking at every corner, and among a knot of men, standing near, one riveted her attention. He had been spoken of in her hearing as the governor of the State. Bold with the realization of the opportunity, she pushed through the staring crowd and thrust the much-thumbed petition into his hand. He cast a surprised glance upon her, then looked at the paper. "All right; I'll examine it," he said hastily, and folding it he turned away. In his political career he had studied many faces; unconsciously an adept, he may have deciphered those subtle hieroglyphics of character, and despite her ignorance, her poverty, and the low, criminal atmosphere of her mission, read in her eyes the dignity of her endeavor, the nobility of her nature, and the prosaic martyrdom of her toilsome experience. He turned suddenly back to reassure her. "Rely on it," he said heartily, "I'll do what I can."

A new idea suddenly popped into her head. The quick decision scared her. She felt small in its presence as they drove between the fields of yellowing corn, all under the bright sunshine spreading wide across the plain. That night, she lay awake thinking about it as cold sweat formed on her forehead. Before dawn, she got up and started walking to Sparta. It was still early when she entered the little town nestled in the flickering mist and chilly morning light, surrounded by towering mountains. A flag was flying from the courthouse roof, and there was a buzz in the streets. Excited groups were chatting at every corner, and among a group of men nearby, one caught her attention. She had heard him referred to as the governor of the State. Feeling bold with the chance in front of her, she pushed through the curious crowd and handed him the well-worn petition. He glanced at her in surprise, then looked at the paper. "Okay; I'll take a look," he said quickly, folding it before turning away. In his political career, he had studied many faces; unconsciously skilled, he might have picked up on those subtle signs of character, and despite her lack of knowledge, her poverty, and the rough atmosphere of her mission, he saw in her eyes the dignity of her effort, the nobility of her spirit, and the everyday struggle of her challenging life. He suddenly turned back to reassure her. "Trust me," he said warmly, "I'll do what I can."

Her pilgrimage was accomplished; there was nothing more but to turn her face to the mountains. It seemed to her at times as if she should never reach them. They were weary hours before she came upon Lost Creek, loitering down the sunlit valley to vanish in the grewsome caverns beneath the range. The sumach leaves were crimsoning along its banks. The scarlet-oak emblazoned the mountain side. Above the encompassing heights the sky was blue, and the mountain air tasted like wine. Never a crag or chasm so sombre but flaunted some swaying vine or long tendriled moss, gilded and gleaming yellow. Buckeyes were falling, and the ashy "Indian pipes" silvered the roots of the trees. In every marshy spot glowed the scarlet cardinal-flower, and the goldenrod had sceptred the season. Now and again the forest quiet was broken by the patter of acorns from the chestnut-oaks, and the mountain swine were abroad for the plenteous mast. Overhead she heard the faint, weird cry of wild geese winging southward. The whole aspect of the scene was changed, save only Pine Mountain. There it stood, solemn, majestic, mysterious, masked by its impenetrable growth, and hung about with duskier shadows wherever a ravine indented the slope. The spirit within it was chanting softly, softly. For the moment she felt the supreme exaltation of the mountains. It lifted her heart. And when a sudden fluctuating red glare shot out over the murky shades, and the dull sighing of the bellows reached her ear from the forge on the mountain's brink, and the air was presently vibrating with the clinking of the hand-hammer and the clanking of the sledge, and the crags clamored with the old familiar echoes, she realized that she had done all she had sought to do; that she had gone forth helpless but for her own brave spirit; that she had returned helpful, and hopeful, and that here was her home, and she loved it.

Her journey was complete; all that was left was to face the mountains. Sometimes it felt like she'd never reach them. It took a long time before she found Lost Creek, winding through the sunlit valley to disappear into the eerie caverns beneath the range. The sumac leaves were turning crimson along its banks. The scarlet oak lit up the mountainside. Above the surrounding heights, the sky was blue, and the mountain air felt like wine. There wasn’t a crag or chasm so dark that it didn’t show some swaying vine or long tendrils of moss, shining and bright yellow. Buckeyes were falling, and the ashy "Indian pipes" covered the roots of the trees. In every marshy area, the bright red cardinal flowers stood out, and the goldenrod ruled the season. Occasionally, the forest's stillness was interrupted by the sound of acorns dropping from the chestnut oaks, and the wild pigs were out for the abundant mast. Overhead, she heard the soft, strange call of wild geese flying south. The whole scene felt different, except for Pine Mountain. It stood there, solemn, majestic, and mysterious, covered in its thick growth, with darker shadows wherever a ravine cut into the slope. An inner spirit seemed to be softly chanting. In that moment, she felt the incredible power of the mountains. It lifted her spirits. And when a sudden flickering red light burst out over the dark shadows, and she heard the soft whooshing from the forge at the mountain's edge, and the air was filled with the sound of the hammer and the clanging of the sledge, and the crags echoed with familiar sounds, she realized she had accomplished everything she set out to do; that she had ventured out vulnerable except for her own brave spirit; that she had returned feeling useful and hopeful, and that this was her home, and she loved it.

This enabled her to better endure the anger and reproaches of her relatives and the curiosity and covert suspicion of the whole country-side.

This allowed her to better handle her relatives' anger and accusations, as well as the curiosity and hidden distrust of the entire countryside.

Evander's people regarded the situation with grave misgivings. "I hope ter the mercy-seat," quavered old man Price, "ez Cynthy Ware hain't gone an' actially sot the gov'nor o' Tennessee more' n ever agin that pore critter; but I misdoubts,"—he shook his head piteously, as he perched on the fence,—"I misdoubts."

Evander's people looked at the situation with serious concerns. "I hope for the best," trembled old man Price, "that Cynthy Ware hasn't really gone and gotten the governor of Tennessee against that poor creature again; but I have my doubts,"—he shook his head sadly while sitting on the fence,—"I have my doubts."

"An' the insurance o' that thar gal!" cried Mrs. Price. "She never had no call ter meddle with 'Vander."

"And the insurance for that girl!" shouted Mrs. Price. "She never had any reason to get involved with 'Vander."

Cynthia's mother entertained this view, also, but for a different reason. "'Twar no consarn o' Cynthy's, nohow," she said, advising with her daughter Maria. "Cynthy air neither kith nor kin o' 'Vander, who air safer an' likelier in the pen'tiary 'n ennywhar else, 'kase it leaves her no ch'ice but Jeemes Blake, ez she hed better take whilst he air in the mind fur it an' whilst she kin git him."

Cynthia's mother shared this opinion, but for another reason. "It's not Cynthia's problem at all," she said, consulting with her daughter Maria. "Cynthia isn't related to Vander, who’s better off in prison than anywhere else, since it doesn’t give her any choice but to take James Blake while he’s still interested and while she can get him."

Jubal Tynes wished he could have foreseen that she would meet the governor, for he could have told her exactly what to say; and this, he was confident, would have secured the pardon.

Jubal Tynes wished he could have predicted that she would meet the governor, because he could have told her exactly what to say; and he was sure this would have guaranteed the pardon.

And it was clearly the opinion of the "mounting," expressed in the choice coteries assembled at the mill, the blacksmith's shop, the Settlement, and the still-house, that a "young gal like Cynthy" had transcended all the bounds of propriety in this "wild junketing after gov'nors an' sech through all the valley country, whar she warn't knowed from a gate-post, nor her dad nuther."

And it was clearly the opinion of the "locals," expressed in the small groups gathered at the mill, the blacksmith's shop, the community center, and the distillery, that a "young girl like Cynthy" had crossed all boundaries of decency in this "wild partying after governors and such throughout the valley, where she wasn't known from a fence post, nor her dad either."

There were, however, doubters, who disparaged the whole account of the journey as a fable, and circulated a whisper that the petition had never been presented.

There were, however, skeptics who dismissed the entire story of the journey as a myth and spread a rumor that the petition had never been submitted.

This increased to open incredulity as time wore on, to ridicule, to taunts, for no word came of the petition for pardon and no word of the prisoner.

This turned into open disbelief as time passed, followed by mockery and insults, since there was no news about the plea for pardon and no word about the prisoner.

The bleak winter wore away; spring budded and bloomed into summer; summer was ripening into autumn, and every day, as the corn yellowed and thickly swathed ears hung far from the stalk, and the drone of the locust was loud in the grass, and the deep, slumberous glow of the sunshine suffused every open spot, Cynthia, with the return of the season, was vividly reminded of her weary ploddings, with bleeding feet and aching head, between such fields along the lengthening valley roads. And the physical anguish she remembered seemed light—seemed naught—to the anguish of suspense which racked her now. Sometimes she felt impelled to a new endeavor. Then her strong common sense checked the useless impulse. She had done all that could be done. She had planted the seed. She had worked and watched, and beheld it spring up and put forth and grow into fair proportions; only time might bring its full fruition.

The harsh winter faded away; spring bloomed into summer; summer was turning into autumn, and every day, as the corn turned golden and heavy ears hung low from the stalk, and the buzzing of the locusts filled the grass, and the warm, drowsy light of the sun spread across every open space, Cynthia, with the arrival of the season, was strongly reminded of her exhausting trudges, with sore feet and a pounding head, along those fields beside the winding valley roads. The physical pain she remembered felt light—almost nothing—compared to the tension of uncertainty that tormented her now. Sometimes she felt driven to take a new action. But then her practical common sense held back the unnecessary urge. She had done everything she could. She had planted the seed. She had worked and waited, and watched it sprout and grow into healthy plants; only time would bring its full harvest.

The autumn was waning; cold rains set in, and veined the rocky chasms with alien torrents; the birds had all flown, when suddenly the Indian summer, with its golden haze and its great red sun, its purple distances and its languorous joy, its balsamic perfumes and its vagrant day-dreams, slipped down upon the gorgeous crimson woods, and filled them with its glamour and its poetry.

The autumn was fading; cold rains arrived, streaming through the rocky gaps like foreign torrents; the birds had all left, when suddenly the Indian summer, with its golden haze and big red sun, its purple horizons and relaxed joy, its sweet scents and wandering daydreams, descended upon the stunning crimson woods, filling them with its charm and beauty.

One of these days—a perfect day—a great sensation pervaded Pine Mountain. Word went the rounds that a certain notorious horse thief, who had served out his term in the peni tentiary, had stopped at the blacksmith shop on his way home, glad enough of the prospect of being there once more; "an' ez pious in speech ez the rider, mighty nigh," said the dwellers about Pine Mountain, unfamiliar with his aspect as a penitent and discounting his repentance. It was a long story he had to tell about himself, and he enjoyed posing as the central figure in the curious crowd that had gathered about him. He seemed for the time less like a criminal than a great traveler, so strange and full of interest to the simple mountaineers were his experiences and the places he had seen. He stood leaning against the anvil, as he talked, looking out through the barn-like door upon the amplitude of the great landscape before him; its mountains so dimly, delicately blue in the distance, so deeply red and brown and yellow nearer at hand, and still closer shaded off by the dark plumy boughs of the pines on either side of the ravine above which the forge was perched. Deep in the valley, between them all, Lost Creek hied along, veining the purple haze with lines of palpitating silver. It was only when the material for personal narration was quite exhausted that he entered, though with less zest, on other themes.

One of these days—a perfect day—a great feeling spread through Pine Mountain. News traveled around that a certain infamous horse thief, who had finished his time in prison, had stopped at the blacksmith shop on his way home, happy to be back there again; "and as pious in speech as the rider, pretty much," said the people around Pine Mountain, not recognizing his appearance as a changed man and doubting his remorse. He had a long story to tell about himself, and he enjoyed being the center of attention in the curious crowd that had formed around him. For a moment, he seemed less like a criminal and more like a great traveler, so strange and fascinating were his experiences and the places he had visited to the simple mountaineers. He leaned against the anvil as he spoke, looking out through the barn-like door at the vast landscape before him—its mountains a faint, delicate blue in the distance, deeply red, brown, and yellow closer up, and even nearer shaded by the dark, feathery branches of the pines on either side of the ravine where the forge was perched. Deep in the valley, Lost Creek flowed along, tracing lines of shimmering silver through the purple haze. Only when he ran out of personal stories did he move on, though with less enthusiasm, to other subjects.

"Waal,—now, 'Vander Price," he drawled, shifting his great cowhide boots one above another. "I war 'stonished when I hearn ez 'Vander war in fur receivin' of stolen goods. Shucks!"—his little black eyes twinkled beneath the drooping brim of a white wool hat, and his wide, flat face seemed wider and flatter for a contemptuous grin,—"I can't onderstand how a man kin git his own cornsent ter go cornsortin' with them ez breaks inter stores and dwellin's an' sech, an' hankerin' arter store-fixin's an' store-truck. Live-stock air a differ. The beastis air temptin', partic'lar ef they air young an' hev got toler'ble paces." Perhaps a change in the faces of his audience admonished him, for he qualified: "The beastis air temptin'—ter the ungodly. I hev gin over sech doin's myself, 'kase we hed a toler'ble chaplain yander in the valley" (he alluded thus equivocally to his late abode), "an' I sot under the preachin' a good while. But store-truck!—shucks! Waal, the gyards 'lowed ez 'Vander war a turrible feller ter take keer on, when they war a-fetchin' him down ter Nashvul. He jes' seemed desolated. One minit he'd fairly cry ez ef every sob would take his life; an' the nex' he'd be squarin' off ez savage, an' tryin' ter hit the gyards in the head. He war ironed, hand an' foot."

"Waal,—now, 'Vander Price," he drawled, shifting his big cowhide boots one over the other. "I was surprised when I heard that 'Vander was in for receiving stolen goods. Shucks!"—his little black eyes twinkled under the drooping brim of a white wool hat, and his wide, flat face seemed even wider and flatter with a contemptuous grin,—"I can't understand how a man can give his own consent to hang out with those who break into stores and homes and such, and who are always after store goods and supplies. Livestock is different. The animals are tempting, especially if they’re young and have decent build." Perhaps a change in the faces of his audience warned him, so he added, "The animals are tempting—to the ungodly. I've given up such things myself, 'cause we had a pretty good chaplain there in the valley" (he referred to his recent home this way), "and I sat under the preaching for a good while. But store supplies!—shucks! Waal, the guards said that 'Vander was a terrible guy to deal with when they were bringing him down to Nashville. He just seemed devastated. One minute he’d cry like every sob would take his life; and the next he’d be puffing up all fierce, trying to hit the guards in the head. He was handcuffed, both hands and feet."

There was no murmur of sympathy. All listened with stolid curiosity, except Cynthia, who was leaning against the open door. The tears forced their way, and silently flowed, unheeded, down her cheeks. She fixed her brown eyes upon the man as he went on:—

There was no sign of sympathy. Everyone listened with steady curiosity, except for Cynthia, who was leaning against the open door. Tears struggled to escape and silently streamed down her cheeks, unnoticed. She focused her brown eyes on the man as he continued:—

"But when they struck the railroad, an' the critter seen the iron engine ez runs by steam, like I war a-tellin' ye about, he jes' stood rooted ter the spot in amaze; they could sca'cely git him budged away from thar. They 'lowed they hed never seen sech joy ez when he war travelin' on the steam-kyars a-hint it. When they went a-skeetin' along ez fast an' ez steady ez a tur-r-key-buzzard kin fly, 'Vander would jes' look fust at one o' the gyards an' then at the t'other, a-smilin' an' tickled nearly out 'n his senses. An' wunst he said, 'Ef this ain't the glory o' God revealed in the work o' man, what is?' The gyards 'lowed he acted so cur'ous they would hev b'lieved he war a plumb idjit, ef it hedn't a-been fur what happened arterward at the Pen."

"But when they reached the railroad, and the animal saw the iron engine that runs on steam, like I was telling you about, he just stood there in amazement; they could hardly get him to move from that spot. They said they had never seen such joy as when he was riding on the steam cars. When they went speeding along as fast and as steadily as a buzzard can fly, 'Vander would just look first at one of the conductors and then at the other, smiling and nearly beside himself with excitement. And once he said, 'If this isn't the glory of God revealed in the work of man, what is?' The conductors said he acted so strangely that they would have believed he was a complete fool if it hadn't been for what happened afterward at the Pen."

"Waal, what war it ez happened at the Pen?" demanded Pete Blenkins. His red face, suffused with the glow of the smouldering forge-fire, was a little wistful, as if he grudged his quondam striker these unique sensations.

"Waal, what was it that happened at the Pen?" asked Pete Blenkins. His flushed face, glowing from the heat of the smoldering forge, looked a bit nostalgic, as if he envied his former assistant those special feelings.

"They put him right inter the forge at the Pen, an' he tuk ter the work like a pig ter carrots." The ex-convict paused for a moment, and cast his eye disparagingly about the primitive smithy. "They do a power o' work thar, Pete, ez you-uns never drempt of."

"They put him right into the forge at the Pen, and he took to the work like a pig to carrots." The ex-convict paused for a moment and looked around disapprovingly at the basic smithy. "They do a lot of work there, Pete, that you never even dreamed of."

"Shucks!" rejoined Pete incredulously, yet a trifle ill at ease.

"Wow!" replied Pete, incredulous but feeling a bit uncomfortable.

"'Vander war a good blacksmith fur the mountings, but they sot him ter l'arnin' thar. They 'lowed, though, ez he war pearter'n the peartest. He got ter be powerful pop'lar with all the gyards an' authorities, an' sech. He war plumb welded ter his work—he sets more store by metal than by grace. He 'lowed ter me ez he wouldn't hev missed bein' thar fur nuthin'! 'Vander air a powerful cur'ous critter: he 'lowed ter me ez one year in the forge at the Pen war wuth a hundred years in the mountings ter him."

"'Vander was a great blacksmith for the mountains, but they had him learning there. They said he was smarter than the smartest. He became very popular with all the guards and officials, and such. He was totally committed to his work—he valued metal more than charm. He told me that he wouldn't have missed being there for anything! 'Vander is a really interesting guy: he told me that one year in the forge at the Pen was worth a hundred years in the mountains to him."

Poor Cynthia! Her eyes, large, luminous, and sweet, with the holy rapture of a listening saint, were fixed upon the speaker's evil, uncouth face. Evander had not then been so unhappy!

Poor Cynthia! Her eyes, big, bright, and kind, filled with the pure joy of a saint in deep contemplation, were focused on the speaker's wicked, rough face. Evander had not been so unhappy then!

"But when they hired out the convict labor ter some iron works' folks, 'Vander war glad ter go, 'kase he'd git ter l'arn more yit 'bout workin' in iron an' sech. An' he war powerful outed when he hed ter kem back, arter ten months, from them works. He hed tuk his stand in metal thar, too. An' he hed fixed some sort'n contrivance ter head rivets quicker'n cheaper'n it air ginerally done; an' he war afeard ter try ter git it 'patented,' ez he calls it, 'kase he b'lieved the Pen could claim it ez convict labor,—though some said not. Leastwise, he determinated ter hold on ter his idee till his term war out. But he war powerful interrupted in his mind fur fear somebody else would think up the idee, too, an' patent it fust. He war powerful irked by the Pen arter he kem back from the iron works. He 'lowed ter me ez he war fairly crazed ter git back ter 'em. He 'lowed ez he hed ruther see that thar big shed an' the red hot puddler's balls a-trundlin' about, an' all the wheels a-whurlin', an' the big shears a-bitin' the metal ez nip, an' the tremenjious hammer a-poundin' away, an' all the dark night around split with lines o' fire, than to see the hills o' heaven! It 'pears to me mo' like hell! But jes' when 'Vander war honing arter them works ez ef it would kill him ter bide away from thar, his pardon kem. He fairly lept an' shouted fur joy!"

"But when they sent the convict labor to some ironworks, Vander was glad to go because he’d get to learn even more about working with iron and stuff. He was really upset when he had to come back after ten months from those works. He had made his mark in metal there, too. He had created some sort of device to fasten rivets faster and cheaper than it's usually done. He was scared to try to get it patented, as he called it, because he thought the Pen could claim it as convict labor, though some disagreed. At the very least, he decided to hold on to his idea until his sentence was up. But he was constantly worried that someone else would come up with the idea too and patent it first. He was really annoyed with the Pen after he came back from the ironworks. He told me he was completely desperate to get back to them. He said he would rather see that big shed and the red-hot puddler’s balls rolling around, and all the wheels spinning, and the big shears cutting the metal like scissors, and the enormous hammer pounding away, with all the dark night lit up by lines of fire than to see the hills of heaven! It seemed more like hell to me! But just when Vander was longing for those works as if it would kill him to stay away from there, his pardon came. He practically jumped up and shouted for joy!"

"His pardon!" cried Cynthia.

"His pardon!" exclaimed Cynthia.

"Air 'Vander pardoned fur true?" exclaimed a chorus of mountaineers.

"Did Vander really grant a pardon?" exclaimed a group of mountaineers.

The ex-convict stared about him in surprise. "Ain't you-uns knowed that afore? 'Vander hev been out'n the Pen a year."

The ex-convict looked around in surprise. "Didn't you all know that before? I've been out of prison for a year."

A year! A vague, chilly premonition thrilled through Cynthia. "Whar be he now?" she asked.

A year! A vague, cold feeling rushed through Cynthia. "Where is he now?" she asked.

"Yander ter them iron works. He lit out straight. I seen him las' week, when I war travelin' from my cousin Jerry's house, whar I went ez soon ez I got out'n the Pen. The steam-kyars stopped at a station ez be nigh them iron works, an' I met up with 'Vander on the platform. That's how I fund out all I hev been a-tellin' ye, 'kase we didn't hev no time ter talk whilst we war in the Pen; they don't allow no chin-choppin' thar. When 'Vander war released, the folks at the iron works tuk him ter work on weges, an' gin him eighty dollars a month."

"Yander to the ironworks. He took off straight away. I saw him last week when I was traveling from my cousin Jerry's house, where I went as soon as I got out of prison. The steam trains stopped at a station close to the ironworks, and I ran into Vander on the platform. That's how I found out everything I've been telling you, because we didn’t have time to talk while we were in prison; they don’t allow any chatting there. When Vander was released, the people at the ironworks hired him to work on wedges and paid him eighty dollars a month."

There was an outburst of incredulity. "Waal, sir!" "Tim'thy, ye kerry that mouth o' yourn too wide open, an' it leaks out all sorts o' lies!" "We-uns know ye of old, Tim'thy!" "Pine Mounting haint furgot ye yit!"

There was an outburst of disbelief. "Well, sir!" "Timothy, you keep that mouth of yours wide open, and it spills all kinds of lies!" "We know you well, Timothy!" "Pine Mountain hasn't forgotten you yet!"

"I wouldn't gin eighty dollars fur 'Vander Price, hide, horns, an' tallow!" declared Pete Blenkins, folding his big arms over his leathern apron, and looking about with the air of a man who has placed his valuation at extremely liberal limits.

"I wouldn't give eighty dollars for 'Vander Price, hide, horns, and tallow!'" declared Pete Blenkins, folding his big arms over his leather apron and looking around with the attitude of a man who has set his value at very generous limits.

"I knowed ye wouldn't b'lieve that, but it air gospel-true," protested the ex-convict. "Thar is more money a-goin' in the valley 'n thar is in the mountings, an' folks pays more fur work. Besides that, 'Vander hev got a patent, ez he calls it, fur his rivet contrivance, an' he 'lows ez it hev paid him some a'ready. It'll sorter stiffen up the backbone o' that word ef I tell ye ez he 'lowed ez he hed jes' sent two hunderd dollars ter Squair Bates ter lift the mortgage off'n old man Price's house an' land, an' two hunderd dollars more ter be gin ter his dad ez a present. An' Squair Bates acted 'cordin' ter 'Vander's word, an' lifted the mortgage, an' handed old man Price the balance. An' what do ye s'pose old man Price done with the money? He went right out an' buried it in the woods, fur fear he'd be pulled out'n his bed fur it, some dark night, by lawless ones. He'll never find it agin, I reckon. The idjit hed more sense. I seen 'Lijah diggin' fur it, ez I rid by thar ter-day."

"I know you wouldn’t believe that, but it’s absolutely true," the ex-convict protested. "There’s more money flowing in the valley than there is in the mountains, and people pay more for work. Besides, Vander has a patent, as he calls it, for his rivet device, and he claims it has made him some money already. It would really strengthen my case if I told you that he just sent two hundred dollars to Square Bates to lift the mortgage off old man Price’s house and land, and another two hundred dollars as a gift for his dad. And Square Bates acted according to Vander’s instructions, lifted the mortgage, and gave old man Price the remaining money. What do you think old man Price did with the cash? He went right out and buried it in the woods, fearing that some lawless person would drag him out of bed for it one dark night. I doubt he’ll ever find it again. The idiot had more sense. I saw Elijah digging for it when I rode by there today."

"Did 'Vander 'low when he air comin' back ter Pine Mounting?" asked Pete Blenkins. "He hev been gone two year an' a half now."

"Did Vander show up when he was coming back to Pine Mountain?" asked Pete Blenkins. "He has been gone for two and a half years now."

"I axed him that word. An' he said he mought kem back ter see his folks nex' year, mebbe, or the year arter that. But I misdoubts. He air so powerful tuk up with metal an' iron, an' sech, an' so keen 'bout his 'ventions, ez he calls 'em, ez he seemed mighty glad ter git shet o' the mountings. 'Vander 'lows ez you-uns dunno nothin' 'bout iron up hyar, Pete."

"I asked him about it. And he said he might come back to see his family next year, maybe, or the year after that. But I doubt it. He’s so obsessed with metal and iron, and all that, and so focused on his 'inventions,' as he calls them, that he seemed really happy to get away from the mountains. 'Vander thinks you all don’t know anything about iron up here, Pete.'"

It was too plain. Cynthia could not deceive herself. He had forgotten her. His genius, once fairly evoked, possessed him, and faithfully his ambitions served it. His love, in comparison, was but a little thing, and he left it in the mountains,—the mountains that he did not regret, that had barred him so long from all he valued, that had freed him at last only through the prison doors. His love had been an unavowed love, and there was no duty broken. For the first time she wondered if he ever knew that she cared for him,—if he never remembered. And then she was suddenly moved to ask, "Did he 'low ter you-uns who got his pardon fur him?"

It was too simple. Cynthia couldn't fool herself. He had forgotten her. His brilliance, once fully unleashed, consumed him, and his ambitions followed it faithfully. His love, by comparison, was just a small thing, and he left it behind in the mountains—the mountains he didn't regret, which had kept him from everything he valued for so long, and that had finally set him free only through the prison doors. His love had been unspoken, and no commitment was broken. For the first time, she wondered if he ever realized that she cared for him—or if he even remembered. And then she was suddenly compelled to ask, "Did he tell you who got his pardon for him?"

"I axed that word when las' I seen him, an' the critter said he actially hed never tuk time ter think 'bout'n that. He 'lowed he war so tickled ter git away from the Pen'tiary right straight ter the iron works an' the consarn he hed made ter head rivets so peart, ez he never wondered 'bout'n it. He made sure, though, now he had kem ter study 'bout'n it, ez his dad hed done it, or it mought hev been gin him fur good conduc' an' sech."

"I dropped that word the last time I saw him, and the guy said he actually had never taken the time to think about it. He said he was so excited to get out of the Penitentiary and go straight to the ironworks that he hadn’t even wondered about it. He made sure, though, now that he had come to think about it, since his dad had done it, or it might have been given to him for good behavior and such."

"'Twar Cynthy hyar ez done some of it," explained Pete Blenkins, "though Jubal Tynes stirred himself right smart."

"'Twas Cynthy here who did some of it," explained Pete Blenkins, "although Jubal Tynes got himself moving pretty quickly."

As Cynthia walked slowly back to her home in the gorge, she did not feel that she had lavished a noble exaltation and a fine courage in vain; that the subtlest essence of a most ethereal elation was expended as the motive power of a result that was at last flat, and sordid, and most material. She did not murmur at the cruelty of fate that she should be grieving for his woes while he was so happy, so blithely busy. She did not regret her self-immolation. She did not grudge all that love had given him; she rejoiced that it was so sufficient, so nobly ample. She grudged only the wasted feeling, and she was humbled when she thought of it.

As Cynthia walked slowly back to her home in the gorge, she didn’t feel like she had wasted her noble enthusiasm and bravery; the most delicate essence of a heightened joy had been spent as the driving force for a result that turned out to be flat, disappointing, and very ordinary. She didn’t complain about the unfairness of fate, that she should be sad for his troubles while he was so happy and carefree. She didn’t regret her sacrifices for him. She didn’t resent everything love had given him; she was glad it was so fulfilling and generous. She only resented the wasted emotions, and she felt humbled when she thought about it.

The sun had gone down, but the light yet lingered. The evening star trembled above Pine Mountain. Massive and darkling it stood against the red west. How far, ah, how far, stretched that mellow crimson glow, all adown Lost Creek Valley, and over the vast mountain solitudes on either hand! Even the eastern ranges were rich with this legacy of the dead and gone day, and purple and splendid they lay beneath the rising moon. She looked at it with full and shining eyes.

The sun had set, but the light still hung around. The evening star flickered above Pine Mountain. It stood large and dark against the red sky in the west. How far, oh, how far, that soft crimson glow spread down Lost Creek Valley and across the massive mountain wilderness on each side! Even the eastern ranges were bathed in this gift from the day that had passed, lying beneath the rising moon in rich purples and splendor. She gazed at it with wide, shining eyes.

"I dunno how he kin make out ter furgit the mountings," she said; and then she went on, hearing the crisp leaves rustling beneath her tread, and the sharp bark of a fox in the silence of the night-shadowed valley.

"I don't know how he can forget the mountains," she said; and then she continued, listening to the crisp leaves rustling under her feet and the sharp bark of a fox in the quiet of the shadowy valley.

Mrs. Ware had predicted bitter things of Cynthia's future, more perhaps in anger than with discreet foresight. Now, when her prophecy was in some sort verified, she shrank from it, as if with the word she had conjured up the fact. And her pride was touched in that her daughter should have been given the "go-by," as she phrased it. All the mountain—nay, all the valley—would know of it. "Law, Cynthy," she exclaimed, aghast, when the girl had rehearsed the news, "what be ye a-goin' ter do?"

Mrs. Ware had predicted harsh things about Cynthia's future, possibly more out of anger than clear foresight. Now, as her prediction was somewhat coming true, she recoiled from it, as if she had somehow summoned the reality with her words. And she felt a sting to her pride that her daughter had been given the "go-by," as she put it. Everyone in the mountain and even the valley would know about it. "Goodness, Cynthy," she exclaimed in shock when the girl shared the news, "what are you going to do?"

"I'm a-goin' ter weavin'," said Cynthia. She already had the shuttle in her hand. It was a useful expression for a broken heart, as she was expert at the loom.

"I'm going to weave," said Cynthia. She already had the shuttle in her hand. It was a useful way to cope with a broken heart, as she was skilled at the loom.

She became so very skillful, with practice, that it was generally understood to be mere pastime when she would go to help a neighbor through the weaving of the cloth for the children's clothes. She went about much on this mission: for although there were children at home, the work was less than the industry, and she seemed "ter hev a craze fur stirrin' about, an' war a toler'ble oneasy critter." She was said to have "broken some sence 'Vander gin her the go-by, like he done," and was spoken of at the age of twenty-one as a "settled single woman;" for early marriages are the rule in the mountains. When first her father and then her mother died, she cared for all the household, and the world went on much the same. The monotony of her tragedy made it unobtrusive. Perhaps no one on Pine Mountain remembered aright how it had all come about, when after an absence of ten years Evander Price suddenly reappeared among them.

She became so skilled, with practice, that it was commonly seen as just a hobby when she would help a neighbor weave cloth for children's clothes. She spent a lot of time on this mission: even though there were children at home, the work was less than her energy, and she seemed to have a "thing for being active, and was a pretty restless person." People said she had "lost her mind like Evander did," and at twenty-one, she was described as a "settled single woman," since early marriages were the norm in the mountains. When her father and then her mother passed away, she took care of all the household tasks, and life continued pretty much the same. The monotony of her tragedy made it go unnoticed. Maybe no one on Pine Mountain truly remembered how it all unfolded when Evander Price suddenly came back after ten years.

Old man Price had, in the course of nature, ceased to sit upon the fence,—he could hardly be said to have lived. The fence itself was decrepit; the house was falling to decay. The money which Evander had sent from time to time, that it might be kept comfortable, had been safely buried in various localities and in separate installments, as the remittances had come. To this day the youth of Pine Mountain, when afflicted with spasms of industry and, as unaccustomed, the lust for gold, dig for it in likely spots as unavailingly as the idiot once sought it. Evander took the family with him to his valley home, and left the little hut for the owl and the gopher to hide within, for the red-berried vines to twine about the rotting logs, for the porch to fall in the wind, for silence to enter therein and make it a dwelling-place.

Old man Price had, over time, stopped sitting on the fence—he could hardly be said to have lived. The fence itself was falling apart; the house was in ruins. The money that Evander had sent periodically to keep things comfortable had been buried safely in various places and in separate parts as the payments came in. To this day, the young people of Pine Mountain, when they feel a sudden urge to work and, as if for the first time, the desire for wealth, dig for it in promising spots as hopelessly as the fool once did. Evander took his family to his valley home and left the little cabin for the owl and the gopher to take refuge in, for the red-berried vines to wind around the decaying logs, for the porch to collapse in the wind, and for silence to fill the place and make it a home.

"How will yer wife like ter put up with the idjit?" asked Pete Blenkins of his old striker.

"How will your wife feel about dealing with the idiot?" asked Pete Blenkins of his old striker.

"She'll be obleeged ter like it!" retorted Evander, with an angry flash in his eyes, presaging contest.

"She'll be obliged to like it!" Evander shot back, anger flashing in his eyes, hinting at a challenge.

It revealed the one dark point in his prospects. The mountaineers were not so slow-witted as to overlook it, but Evander had come to be the sort of man whom one hardly likes to question. He had a traveling companion, however, who hailed from the same neighborhood, and who talked learnedly of coal measures, and prodded and digged and bought leagues of land for a song,—much of it dearly bought. He let fall a hint that in marrying, Evander had contrived to handicap himself. "He would do wonders but for that woman!"

It showed the one negative aspect of his future. The mountaineers weren't so naive as to miss it, but Evander had become the kind of guy that people hesitate to question. He did have a travel buddy from the same area, though, who spoke knowledgeably about coal deposits, and pried open opportunities while snagging vast amounts of land at low prices—most of it actually expensive. He dropped a hint that by marrying, Evander had managed to put himself at a disadvantage. "He could achieve amazing things if it weren't for that woman!"

His mountain auditors could hardly grasp the finer points of the incompatibility; they could but dimly appreciate that the kindling scintilla of a discovery in mechanics, more delicately poised on practicability than a sunbeam on a cobweb, could have a tragic extinction in a woman's inopportune peevishness or selfish exactions.

His mountain listeners could barely understand the subtle details of the mismatch; they could only vaguely realize that the flicker of a breakthrough in mechanics, more delicately balanced on practicality than a sunbeam on a spiderweb, could be tragically snuffed out by a woman's untimely annoyance or selfish demands.

In Evander's admiration of knowledge and all its infinite radiations, he had been attracted by a woman far superior to himself in education and social position, although not in this world's goods. She was the telegraph operator at the station near the iron works. She had felt that there was a touch of romance and self-abnegation in her fancy for him, and this titillated her more tutored imagination. His genius was held in high repute at the iron works, and she had believed him a rough diamond. She did not realize how she could have appreciated polished facets and a brilliant lustre and a conventional setting until it was too late. Then she began to think this genius of hers uncouth, and she presently doubted if her jewel were genuine. For although of refined instincts, he had been rudely reared, while she was in some sort inured to table manners and toilet etiquette and English grammar. She could not be content with his intrinsic worth, but longed for him to prove his value to the world, that it might not think she had thrown herself away. In moments of disappointment and depression his prison record bore heavily upon her, and there was a breach when, in petulance, she had once asked, If he were indeed innocent in receiving the stolen goods, why had he not proved it? And she urged him to much striving to be rich; and she would fain travel the old beaten road to wealth in the iron business, and scorned experiments and new ideas and inventions, that took money out without the certainty of putting it in. And she had been taught, and was an adept in specious argument. He could not answer her; he could only keep doggedly on his own way; but obstinacy is a poor substitute for ardor. Though he had done much, he had done less than he had expected,—far, far less in financial results than she had expected. His ambitions were still hot within him, but they were worldly ambitions now. They scorched his more delicate sensibilities, and seared his freshest perceptions, and set his heart afire with sordid hopes. He was often harassed by a lurking doubt of his powers; he vaguely sought to measure them; and he began to fear that this in itself was a sign of the approach to their limits. He could still lift his eyes to great heights, but alas for the wings,—alas!

In Evander's admiration for knowledge and all its vast possibilities, he found himself attracted to a woman who was much more educated and socially higher than he was, though not wealthier. She worked as the telegraph operator at the station near the iron works. She sensed a hint of romance and selflessness in her attraction to him, which intrigued her more educated mind. His talent was well regarded at the iron works, and she believed he was a rough diamond. She didn't realize until it was too late that she could have appreciated polished edges, a brilliant shine, and a traditional setting. Then she began to see his genius as unrefined and soon doubted whether her jewel was genuine. Even though he had cultivated tastes, he had a rough upbringing, while she was somewhat accustomed to manners, etiquette, and proper grammar. She couldn't be satisfied with his inherent worth; she wanted him to demonstrate his value to the world so that it wouldn’t seem like she had wasted herself on him. In moments of disappointment and sadness, his prison record weighed heavily on her, and a rift appeared when, in frustration, she once asked, if he was truly innocent of receiving stolen goods, why hadn’t he proven it? She pressed him to strive to become wealthy, and she wished to follow the well-trodden path to riches in the iron business, dismissing experiments, new ideas, and inventions that took money out without guaranteed returns. She had been schooled in persuasive argumentation and excelled at it. He couldn’t respond; he could only stubbornly follow his own path. But stubbornness is a poor substitute for passion. Although he had accomplished much, it was still less than he had hoped for—far less in financial outcomes than she anticipated. His ambitions still burned within him, but they had turned into worldly ambitions. They overwhelmed his finer sensibilities, tarnished his fresh perspectives, and filled his heart with base hopes. He was often troubled by a lingering doubt about his abilities; he vaguely tried to gauge them and began to fear this might indicate he was nearing their limits. He could still look up to great heights, but alas for the wings—alas!

He had changed greatly: he had become nervous, anxious, concentrated, yet not less affectionate. He said much about his wife to his old friends, and never a word but loyal praise. "Em'ly air school-l'arned fur true, an' kin talk ekal ter the rider."

He had changed a lot: he had become nervous, anxious, focused, yet still affectionate. He talked a lot about his wife to his old friends, and never said anything but loyal praise. "Em'ly is truly educated, and can talk as well as anyone."

The idiot 'Lijah was welcome at his side, and the ancient yellow cur, that used to trot nimbly after him in the old days, rejoiced to limp feebly at his heels. He came over, one morning, and sat on the rickety little porch with Cynthia, and talked of her father and mother; but he had forgotten the mare, whose death she also mentioned, and the fact that old Suke's third calf was traded to M'ria Baker. His recollections were all vague, although at some reminiscence of hers he laughed jovially, and 'lowed that "in them days, Cynthy, ye an' me hed a right smart notion of keeping company tergether." He did not notice how pale she was, and that there was often a slight spasmodic contraction of her features. She was busy with her spinning-wheel, as she placidly replied, "Yes,—though I always 'lowed ez I counted on livin' single."

The idiot 'Lijah was glad to have him around, and the old yellow dog that used to run after him back in the day was happy to limply follow him now. One morning, he came over and sat on the rickety little porch with Cynthia, talking about her parents; but he had forgotten about the mare whose death she also mentioned, and that old Suke's third calf was traded to M'ria Baker. His memories were all hazy, although he laughed heartily at one of her stories and said, "Back in those days, Cynthy, you and I had a pretty good idea of keeping company together." He didn’t notice how pale she looked, or that her face sometimes twitched a bit. She was focused on her spinning wheel, calmly replying, "Yes—but I always thought I was planning on staying single."

It was only a fragmentary attention that he accorded her. He was full of his plans and anxious about rains, lest a rise in Caney Fork should detain him in the mountains; and he often turned and surveyed the vast landscape with a hard, callous glance of worldly utility. He saw only weather signs. The language of the mountains had become a dead language. Oh, how should he read the poem that the opalescent mist traced in an illuminated text along the dark, gigantic growths of Pine Mountain!

He only paid her incomplete attention. He was preoccupied with his plans and worried about the rain, fearing that a rise in Caney Fork might keep him stuck in the mountains. He frequently looked back at the vast landscape with a cold, practical gaze. He could only see weather patterns. The mountains' language had become a foreign tongue to him. Oh, how could he interpret the poem that the shimmering mist wrote in glowing letters along the dark, towering trees of Pine Mountain!

At length he was gone, and forever, and Cynthia's heart adjusted itself anew. Sometimes, to be sure, it seems to her that the years of her life are like the floating leaves drifting down Lost Creek, valueless and purposeless, and vaguely vanishing in the mountains. Then she remembers that the sequestered subterranean current is charged with its own inscrutable, imperative mission, and she ceases to question and regret, and bravely does the work nearest her hand, and has glimpses of its influence in the widening lives of others, and finds in these a placid content.

At last, he was gone for good, and Cynthia's heart found a new rhythm. Sometimes, she feels like the years of her life are like the floating leaves drifting down Lost Creek, without value or purpose, disappearing vaguely into the mountains. Then she reminds herself that the hidden underground current has its own mysterious, essential mission, and she stops questioning and regretting. Instead, she tackles the closest tasks with courage, seeing the impact of her efforts in the expanding lives of others, and finds a calm satisfaction in that.


A-PLAYIN' OF OLD SLEDGE AT THE SETTLEMINT.

"I hev hearn tell ez how them thar boys rides thar horses over hyar ter the Settlemint nigh on ter every night in the week ter play kyerds,—'Old Sledge' they calls it; an' thar goin's-on air jes' scandalous,—jes' a-drinkin' of apple-jack, an' a-bettin' of thar money."

"I've heard that those boys ride their horses over here to the Settlement almost every night of the week to play cards— they call it 'Old Sledge'—and their behavior is just shocking, just drinking apple jack and gambling their money."

It was a lonely place: a sheer precipice on one side of the road that curved to its verge; on the other, an ascent so abrupt that the tall stems of the pines seemed laid upon the ground as they were marshaled in serried columns up the slope. No broad landscape was to be seen from this great projecting ledge of the mountain; the valley was merely a little basin, walled in on every side by the meeting ranges that rose so high as to intercept all distant prospect, and narrow the world to the contracted area bounded by the sharp lines of their wooded summits, cut hard and clear against the blue sky. But for the road, it would have seemed impossible that these wild steeps should be the chosen haunt of aught save deer, or bear, or fox; and certainly the instinct of the eagle built that eyrie called the Settlement, still higher, far above the towering pine forest. It might be accounted a tribute to the enterprise of Old Sledge that mountain barriers proved neither let nor hindrance, and here in the fastnesses was held that vivacious sway, potent alike to fascinate and to scandalize.

It was a lonely place: a steep cliff on one side of the road that curved to its edge; on the other, a slope so steep that the tall trunks of the pines looked like they were lying on the ground as they stood in tight columns up the incline. No wide landscape could be seen from this prominent ledge of the mountain; the valley was just a small basin, surrounded on every side by the mountain ranges that rose so high they blocked any distant view, limiting the world to the narrow area defined by the sharp lines of their wooded peaks, standing out clearly against the blue sky. If it weren't for the road, it would have seemed impossible for anything other than deer, bears, or foxes to choose this wild place as a home; and surely the eagle instinctively built its nest at the Settlement, located even higher, far above the towering pine forest. It could be seen as a testament to Old Sledge's determination that these mountain barriers posed no obstacle, and here in the secluded area, there was a lively influence that could both attract and scandalize.

In the middle of the stony road stood a group of roughly clad mountaineers, each in an attitude of sluggish disinclination to the allotted task of mending the highway, leaning lazily upon a grubbing-hoe or sorry spade,—except, indeed, the overseer, who was upheld by the single crowbar furnished by the county, the only sound implement in use among the party. The provident dispensation of the law, leaving the care of the road to the tender mercies of its able-bodied neighbors over eighteen and under forty-five years of age, was a godsend to the Settlement and to the inhabitants of the tributary region, in that even if it failed of the immediate design of securing a tolerable passway through the woods, it served the far more important purpose of drawing together the diversely scattered settlers, and affording them unwonted conversational facilities. These meetings were well attended, although their results were often sadly inadequate. To-day the usual complement of laborers was on hand, except the three boys whose scandalous susceptibility to the mingled charms of Old Sledge and apple-jack had occasioned comment.

In the middle of the rocky road stood a group of poorly dressed mountaineers, each showing a lazy reluctance to tackle the job of repairing the highway, leaning lazily on either a digging hoe or a flimsy spade—except for the overseer, who was supported by the single crowbar provided by the county, the only decent tool in use among the group. The wise decision of the law to leave road maintenance to the not-so-gentle care of able-bodied neighbors aged eighteen to forty-five was a blessing for the Settlement and the residents of the surrounding area, as it not only aimed to create a decent path through the woods but also served a much more significant purpose by bringing together the widely scattered settlers and giving them a rare chance to chat. These gatherings were usually well attended, even though the outcomes were often disappointingly minimal. Today, the usual number of workers was present, except for three boys whose notorious weakness for the combined temptations of Old Sledge and apple-jack had drawn some attention.

"They'll hev ter be fined, ef they don't take keer an' come an' work," remarked the overseer of the road, one Tobe Rains, who reveled in a little brief authority.

"They'll have to be fined if they don't take care and come and work," remarked the road overseer, Tobe Rains, who enjoyed his brief moment of authority.

"From what I hev hearn tell 'bout thar go-in's-on, none of 'em is a-goin' ter hev nuthin' ter pay fines with, when they gits done with thar foolin' an' sech," said Abner Blake, a man of weight and importance, and the eldest of the party.

"From what I've heard about their activities, none of them will have anything to pay fines with when they’re finished with their foolishness and all that," said Abner Blake, a man of significance and the oldest of the group.

It did not seem to occur to any of the group that the losses among the three card-players served to enrich one of the number, and that the deplorable wholesale insolvency shadowed forth was not likely to ensue in substance. Perhaps their fatuity in this regard arose from the fact that fining the derelict was not an actuality, although sometimes of avail as a threat.

It didn't seem to cross any of the group's minds that the losses among the three card players actually benefited one of them, and that the overall financial ruin they hinted at was unlikely to happen for real. Maybe their foolishness stemmed from the idea that punishing the loser wasn't a real option, even though it sometimes worked as a threat.

"An' we hev ter leave everythink whar it fell down, an' come hyar ter do thar work fur 'em,—a-fixin' up of this hyar road fur them ter travel," exclaimed Tobe Rains, attempting to chafe himself into a rage. "It's got ter quit,—that's what I say; this hyar way of doin' hev got ter quit." By way of lending verisimilitude to the industrial figure of rhetoric, he lifted his hammer and dealt an ineffectual blow at a large bowlder. Then he picked up his crowbar, and, leaning heavily on the implement, resigned himself to the piquant interest of gossip. "An' thar's that Josiah Tait," he continued, "a settled married man, a-behavin' no better 'n them fool boys. He hain't struck a lick of work fur nigh on ter a month,—'ceptin' a-goin' huntin' with the t'others, every wunst in a while. He hev jes' pulled through at the little eend of the horn. I never sot much store by him, nohow, though when he war married ter Melindy Price, nigh 'bout a year ago, the folks all 'lowed ez she war a-doin' mighty well ter git him, ez he war toler'ble well off through his folks all bein' dead but him, an' he hed what he hed his own self."

"An' we have to leave everything where it fell, and come here to do their work for them—fixing up this road for them to travel," exclaimed Tobe Rains, trying to work himself up into a rage. "It's got to stop—I mean it; this way of doing things has got to change." To make his point more dramatic, he lifted his hammer and gave a weak blow to a large boulder. Then he picked up his crowbar, leaning heavily on it as he resigned himself to the tempting allure of gossip. "And there's that Josiah Tait," he continued, "a settled married man, behaving no better than those foolish boys. He hasn't done a lick of work for nearly a month—except for going hunting with the others every once in a while. He's just barely getting by. I never thought much of him anyway, although when he married Melindy Price almost a year ago, people claimed she was doing really well to get him since he was fairly well off, being the last one left in his family after everyone else had passed, and he had what he had on his own."

"I wouldn't let my darter marry no man ez plays kyerds," said a very young fellow, with great decision of manner, "no matter what he hed, nor how he hed it."

"I wouldn't let my daughter marry any man who plays cards," said a very young guy, with strong conviction, "no matter what he had, or how he got it."

As the lady referred to was only two weeks old, and this solicitude concerning her matrimonial disposition was somewhat premature, there was a good-natured guffaw at the young fellow's expense.

As the woman in question was only two weeks old, and this concern about her future marriage was a bit early, there was a good-natured laugh at the young man's expense.

"An' now," Tobe Rains resumed, "ef Josiah keeps on the way ez he hev started, he hain't a-goin' ter hev no more 'n the t'other boys round the mounting,—mebbe not ez much,—an' Melindy Price hed better hev a-tuken somebody what owned less but hed a harder grip."

"Now," Tobe Rains continued, "if Josiah keeps going the way he has started, he won't have any more than the other guys around the mountain—maybe not even as much—and Melindy Price should have chosen someone who owned less but had a stronger grip."

A long silence fell upon the party. Three of the twenty men assembled, in dearth of anything else to do, took heart of grace and fell to work; fifteen leaned upon their hoes in a variety of postures, all equally expressive of sloth, and with slow eyes followed the graceful sweep of a hawk, drifting on the wind, without a motion of its wings, across the blue sky to the opposite range. Two, one of whom was the overseer, searched their pockets for a plug of tobacco, and when it was found its possessor gave to him that lacked. At length, Abner Blake, who furnished all the items of news, and led the conversation, removed his eyes from the flight of the hawk, as the bird was absorbed in the variegated October foliage of the opposite mountain, and reopened the discussion. At the first word the three who were working paused in attentive quietude; the fifteen changed their position to one still more restful; the overseer sat down on a bowlder by the roadside, and placed his contemplative elbows on his knees and his chin in his hands.

A long silence fell over the gathering. Three of the twenty men present, with nothing else to occupy them, gathered their courage and got to work; fifteen leaned on their hoes in various lazy positions, all clearly showing their idleness, and slowly watched a hawk glide on the wind, wings tucked, across the blue sky to the distant mountains. Two others, one of whom was the overseer, rummaged through their pockets for a plug of tobacco, and when it was found, the owner shared it with the one who needed it. Finally, Abner Blake, who always had the latest news and steered the conversation, looked away from watching the hawk, which was now lost among the colorful October trees of the opposite mountain, and reopened the discussion. At the first word, the three working men paused to listen; the fifteen shifted into even more relaxed positions; the overseer sat down on a rock by the roadside, resting his elbows on his knees and cradling his chin in his hands.

"I hev hearn tell," said Abner Blake, with the pleasing consciousness of absorbing the attention of the company, and being able to meet high expectations, "ez how Josiah hev los' that thar brindled heifer ter Budd Wray, an' the main heft of his crap of corn. But mebbe he'll take a turn now an' win 'em back agin."

"I've heard," said Abner Blake, enjoying the attention of the group and feeling confident he would meet their expectations, "that Josiah lost that brindled heifer to Budd Wray, and most of his corn crop too. But maybe he'll turn things around and get them back again."

"'Tain't likely," remarked Tobe Rains.

"It’s probably not," remarked Tobe Rains.

"No, 'tain't," coincided the virtuous fifteen.

"No, it isn't," agreed the virtuous fifteen.

The industrious three, who might have done better in better company, went to work again for the space of a few minutes; but the next inarticulate gurgle, preliminary always to Blake's speech,—a sort of rising-bell to ring up somnolent attention,—brought them once more to a stand-still.

The hardworking trio, who could have thrived in the right company, got back to work for a few more minutes; however, the next indecipherable gurgle, always a precursor to Blake's speech—a kind of wake-up call to grab sleepy attention—stopped them dead in their tracks again.

"An' cornsiderin' ez how Budd Wray,—he it war ez won 'em; I seen the heifer along o' the cow ter his house yestiddy evenin', ez I war a-comin' from a-huntin' yander ter the sulphur spring,—an' cornsiderin' ez he is nuthin' but a single man, an' hain't got no wife, it do look mighty graspin' ter be a-takin' from a man ez hev got a wife an' a houseful of his wife's kinsfolks ter look arter. Mighty graspin', it 'pears like ter me."

"And considering that Budd Wray—he's the one who won them; I saw the heifer along with the cow at his place yesterday evening while I was coming back from hunting over by the sulfur spring—and considering that he's just a single guy and doesn't have a wife, it really seems pretty greedy to be taking from a man who has a wife and a house full of his wife's relatives to take care of. It seems

"I s'pose," said one of the three workers suggestively,—"I s'pose ez how Budd won it fair. 'Twarn't no onderhand job, war it?"

"I guess," said one of the three workers suggestively, "I guess that Budd won it fair and square. It wasn't some shady deal, was it?"

There was a portentous silence. The flight of the hawk, again floating above the mountains, now in the shadow of the resting clouds, now in the still sunshine, was the only motion in the landscape. The sudden bark of a fox in the woods near at hand smote the air shrilly.

There was an ominous silence. The hawk flew again above the mountains, sometimes in the shadow of the resting clouds, sometimes in the bright sunshine, and was the only movement in the landscape. The sudden bark of a fox in the nearby woods pierced the silence sharply.

"That thar ain't fur me ter say," Blake replied at last, with significant emphasis.

"That's not for me to say," Blake replied at last, with significant emphasis.

The suspicion fell upon the party like a revelation, with an auxiliary sense of surprise that it had not been earlier presented, so patent was the possibility.

The suspicion hit the group like a light bulb moment, with an added sense of surprise that it hadn’t come up sooner, since the possibility was so obvious.

Still that instinct of justice latent in the human heart kept the pause unbroken for a while. Then Blake, whose information on most points at issue entitled him to special consideration, proceeded to give his opinion on the subject: "I'm a perfessin' member of the church, an' I dunno one o' them thar kyerds from the t'other; an' what is more, I ain't a-wantin' ter know. I hev seen 'em a-playin' wunst, an' I hearn 'em a-talkin' that thar foolishness 'bout 'n 'high' an' 'low,' an' sech,—they'll all be low enough 'fore long. But what I say is, I dunno how come Josiah Tait, what's always been a peart, smart boy, an' his dad afore him always war a thrivin' man, an' Budd Wray war never nobody nor nuthin',—he war always mighty no-'count, him an' all his folks,—an' what I dunno is, how come he kin git the upper hand of Josiah Tait at these hyar kyerds, an' can't git it no other way. Ef he keeps on a-playin' of Old Sledge hyar at the Settlemint, he'll be wuth ez much ez anybody on the mounting what's done been a-workin' all thar days, an' hed a toler'ble start ter begin with. It don't look fair an' sensible ter me."

Still, that instinct for justice that lies dormant in the human heart kept the pause unbroken for a while. Then Blake, whose knowledge on most issues gave him special respect, began to share his thoughts on the matter: "I'm a member of the church, and I don't know one of those cards from the other; and what's more, I don't want to know. I've seen them play once, and I heard them talking that nonsense about 'high' and 'low' and such—they'll all be low enough pretty soon. But what I don't understand is how Josiah Tait, who has always been a smart, lively boy, and whose dad before him was always a successful man, can be outdone by Budd Wray, who has never amounted to much—he's always been pretty worthless, him and all his family—and what I don't get is how he can get the upper hand of Josiah Tait at these card games and not any other way. If he keeps playing Old Sledge here at the Settlement, he'll be worth as much as anyone in the mountains who has been working all their days and had a decent start to begin with. It doesn’t seem fair or sensible to me."

"'Pears like ter me," said the very young fellow, father of the very young daughter, "ef a man is old enough ter git married, he is old enough to take keer of hisself. I kin make out no good reason why Josiah Tait oughter be pertected agin Budd Wray. 'Pears ter me ef one of 'em kin larn ter play Old Sledge, the t'other kin. An' Josiah hev got toler'ble good sense."

"'Seems like to me," said the very young guy, father of the very young daughter, "if a man is old enough to get married, he's old enough to take care of himself. I can't see any good reason why Josiah Tait should be protected from Budd Wray. Seems to me if one of them can learn to play Old Sledge, the other can too. And Josiah has pretty decent sense."

"That's how come all ye young muskrats dunno nuthin'," retorted Blake in some heat. "Jes' let one of you-uns git turned twenty year old, an' ye think ye air ez wise an' ez settled as ef ye war sixty, an' ye can't l'arn nuthin' more."

"That's how come all you young muskrats don't know anything," Blake snapped with some irritation. "Just let one of you turn twenty years old, and you think you're as wise and as settled as if you were sixty, and you can't learn anything more."

"All the same, I don't see ez Josiah Tait needs a dry-nuss ter keep off Wray an' sech critters," was the response. And here this controversy ended.

"Still, I don't think Josiah Tait needs a dry nut to keep away Wray and those types," was the response. And this is where the argument ended.

"Somehow," said Tobe Rains, reflectively, "it don't look likely ter me ez he an' Josiah Tait hev enny call ter be sech frien'ly folks. I hev hearn ez how Budd Wray war a-follerin' round Melindy Price afore she war married, an' she liked him fust-rate till Josiah tuk ter comin' 'bout 'n the Scrub-Oak Ridge, whar she lived in them days. That thar ain't the stuff ter make frien's out'n. Thar is some sort 'n cur'ous doin's a-goin' on 'bout'n these hyar frien'ly kyerds."

"Somehow," said Tobe Rains thoughtfully, "it doesn’t seem likely to me that he and Josiah Tait have any reason to be such friendly folks. I’ve heard that Budd Wray was following Melindy Price around before she got married, and she really liked him until Josiah started showing up around Scrub-Oak Ridge, where she lived back then. That isn’t the kind of thing that makes friends. There’s something strange going on with these friendly gestures."

"I knowed that thar 'bout'n his a-follerin' round Melindy afore she war married. I 'lowed one time ez Melindy hed a mind ter marry Wray stiddier Josiah," said the young father, shaken in his partisanship. "An' it always 'peared like ter me ez it war mighty comical ez he an' Josiah tuk ter playin' of Old Sledge an' sech tergether."

"I knew that he was following Melindy around before she got married. I thought for a while that Melindy wanted to marry Wray instead of Josiah," said the young father, unsure in his loyalty. "And it always seemed pretty funny to me that he and Josiah started playing Old Sledge and such together."

These questions were not easy of solution. Many speculations were preferred concerning the suspicious circumstance of Budd Wray's singular proficiency in playing Old Sledge; but beyond disparaging innuendo and covert insinuation conjecture could not go. Everything was left doubtful, and so was the road.

These questions weren't easy to solve. Many theories were suggested about the strange situation surrounding Budd Wray's unusual skill in playing Old Sledge; however, speculation couldn't go further than negative comments and subtle hints. Everything remained uncertain, and so did the path ahead.

It was hardly four o'clock, but the languid work had ceased and the little band was dispersing. Some had far to go through the deep woods to their homes, and those who lived closer at hand were not disposed to atone for their comrades' defection by prolonging their stay. The echoes for a long time vibrated among the lonely heights with the metallic sound of their horses' hoofs, every moment becoming fainter, until at last all was hushed. Dusky shadows, which seemed to be exhaled from the ground, rose higher and higher up the mountain side from the reservoir of gloom that lay in the valley. The sky was a lustrous contrast to the darkling earth. The sun still lingered, large and red, above the western summits; the clouds about it were gorgeous in borrowed color; even those hovering in the east had caught the reflection of the sunset splendor, and among their gold and crimson flakes swung the silver globe of the hunter's moon. Now and then, at long intervals, the bark of the fox quivered on the air; once the laurel stirred with a faint rustle, and a deer stood in the midst of the ill-mended road, catching upon his spreading antlers the mingled light of sun and moon. For a moment he was motionless, his hoof uplifted; the next, with an elastic spring, as of a creature without weight, he was flying up the steep slope and disappearing amid the slumberous shades of the dark pines. A sudden sound comes from far along the curves of the road,—a sound foreign to woods and stream and sky; again, and yet again, growing constantly more distinct, the striking of iron against stone, the quick, regular beat of a horse's tread, and an equestrian figure, facing the moon and with the sun at his back, rides between the steep ascent and the precipice on his way to the Settlement and the enticements of Old Sledge.

It was barely four o'clock, but the slow work had come to an end and the small group was breaking up. Some had a long way to go through the dense woods to get home, and those who lived nearby didn't feel like making up for their friends leaving by sticking around longer. The echoes lingered for a long time among the lonely heights with the metallic sound of their horses' hooves, gradually fading until everything fell silent. Dark shadows, resembling wisps rising from the ground, climbed higher and higher up the mountainside from the pools of gloom in the valley. The sky was a shiny contrast to the darkening earth. The sun still hovered, large and red, above the western peaks; the clouds around it were stunning in vibrant colors; even those hanging in the east had caught the glow of the sunset, and among their gold and crimson hues swung the silver orb of the hunter's moon. Occasionally, at long intervals, the bark of a fox broke the stillness; once the laurel shifted with a soft rustle, and a deer stood in the middle of the rough road, catching the mixed light of the sun and moon on his wide antlers. For a moment, he was frozen, his hoof raised; then, with a powerful leap, as if he were weightless, he dashed up the steep slope, disappearing into the sleepy shadows of the dark pines. A sudden sound came from far down the winding road—a sound unfamiliar to the woods, stream, and sky; again and again, it grew steadily clearer, the clang of iron against stone, the quick, steady rhythm of a horse's hooves, and a rider, facing the moon with the sun at his back, rode between the steep incline and the cliff, heading toward the Settlement and the allure of Old Sledge.

He was not the conventional type of the roistering blade. There was an expression of settled melancholy on his face very usual with these mountaineers, reflected, perhaps, from the indefinable tinge of sadness that rests upon the Alleghany wilds, that hovers about the purpling mountain-tops, that broods over the silent woods, that sounds in the voice of the singing waters. Nor was he like the prosperous "perfessin' member" of the card-playing culte. His listless manner was that of stolidity, not of a studied calm; his brown jeans suit was old and worn and patched; his hat, which had seen many a drenching winter rain and scorching summer sun, had acquired sundry drooping curves undreamed of in its maker's philosophy. He rode a wiry gray mare without a saddle, and carried a heavy rifle. He was perhaps twenty-three years of age, a man of great strength and stature, and there were lines about his lips and chin which indicated a corresponding development of a firm will and tenacity of purpose. His slow brown eyes were fixed upon the horizon as he went around the ledge, and notwithstanding the languid monotony of the expression of his face he seemed absorbed in some definite train of thought, rather than lost in the vague, hazy reverie which is the habitual mental atmosphere of the quiescent mountaineer. The mare, left to herself, traveled along the rocky way in a debonair fashion implying a familiarity with worse roads, and soon was around the curve and beginning the sharp ascent which led to the Settlement. There was a rickety bridge to cross, that spanned a deep, narrow stream, which caught among its dark pools now a long, slender, polished lance of sunlight, and now a dart from the moon. As the rider went on upward the woods were dense as ever; no glimpse yet of the signet of civilization set upon the wilderness and called the Settlement. By the time he had reached the summit the last red rays of the day were fading from the tops of the trees, but the moon, full and high in the eastern heavens, shed so refulgent a light that it might be questioned whether the sun rose on a brighter world than that which he had left. A short distance along level ground, a turn to the right, and here, on the highest elevation of the range, was perched the little town. There was a clearing of ten acres, a blacksmith's shop, four log huts facing indiscriminately in any direction, a small store of one story and one room, and a new frame court-house, whitewashed and inclosed by a plank fence. In the last session of the legislature, the Settlement had been made the county-seat of a new county; the additional honor of a name had been conferred upon it, but as yet it was known among the population of the mountain by its time-honored and accustomed title.

He wasn't your typical party guy. There was a look of deep sadness on his face that’s common among these mountain folks, maybe reflecting the subtle sorrow that lingers over the Alleghany wilderness, hovering around the purple mountain peaks, brooding over the quiet woods, and echoing in the sound of flowing waters. He also didn’t resemble the successful "pious member" of the card-playing crowd. His relaxed demeanor showed not studied calmness but a sort of dullness; his brown jeans outfit was old, worn, and patched; his hat, which had endured many a soaking winter rain and blazing summer sun, had developed several drooping curves that its maker never imagined. He rode a wiry gray mare without a saddle and carried a heavy rifle. At about twenty-three years old, he was a man of great strength and size, with lines around his lips and chin that hinted at a strong will and determination. His slow brown eyes were focused on the horizon as he navigated the ledge, and despite the lazy monotony of his expression, he seemed deep in thought, not lost in the usual hazy daydreaming typical of a relaxed mountaineer. The mare, on her own, trotted along the rocky path with an easy grace, suggesting she was used to tougher trails, and soon she rounded the curve and started the steep climb leading to the Settlement. There was a rickety bridge to cross that spanned a deep, narrow stream, catching both sunlight and moonlight in its dark pools. As the rider continued upward, the woods remained thick, with no sign yet of the civilization marker known as the Settlement. By the time he reached the top, the last red rays of the day were disappearing from the tree tops, but the full moon, high in the eastern sky, cast such brilliant light that one might wonder if the sun had ever lit up a brighter world than the one he had just left. A short trip along flat ground, a turn to the right, and there, at the highest point of the range, sat the small town. There was a ten-acre clearing, a blacksmith's shop, four log cabins facing every which way, a small one-story store, and a newly built whitewashed courthouse surrounded by a wooden fence. In the latest legislative session, the Settlement was designated as the county seat for a new county, and while it received the additional honor of a name, the locals still referred to it by its longstanding, familiar title.

Wray dismounted in front of the store, hitched the mare to a laurel bush, and, entering, discovered his two boon companions drearily waiting, and shuffling the cards again and again to while away the time. An inverted splint-basket served as table; a tallow dip, a great extravagance in these parts, blinked on the head of a barrel near by, and gave a most flickering and ineffectual light, but the steady radiance of the moon poured in a wide, white flood through the open door, and kindly supplied all deficiencies. The two young mountaineers were of the usual sad-eyed type, and the impending festivities might have seemed to those of a wider range of experience than the Settlement could furnish to be clouded with a funereal aspect. Before the fire, burning low and sullenly in the deep chimney, were sitting two elderly men, who looked with disfavor upon Wray as he came in and placed his gun with a clatter in the corner.

Wray got off his horse in front of the store, tied the mare to a laurel bush, and stepped inside to find his two close friends waiting around, bored, shuffling the cards over and over to pass the time. An upside-down splint basket served as a table; a tallow candle, a significant luxury in these parts, flickered atop a barrel nearby, giving off a weak, ineffective light. However, the steady glow of the moon streamed in through the open door, generously illuminating the space. The two young mountaineers were the typical sad-eyed type, and the upcoming festivities might have seemed to those with more varied experiences than what the Settlement offered to have a somewhat gloomy feel. In front of the fire, which burned low and dimly in the deep chimney, sat two older men who looked at Wray disapprovingly as he entered and clattered his gun in the corner.

"Ye war a long time a-gittin' hyar, Budd," said one of the card-shufflers in a gentle voice, with curiously low-spirited cadences. He spoke slowly, too, and with a slight difficulty, as if he seldom had occasion to express himself in words and his organs were out of practice. He was the proprietor of the store, one Tom Scruggs, and this speech was by way of doing the honors. The other looked up with recognizing eyes, but said nothing.

"You're taking a long time getting here, Budd," said one of the card-shufflers in a gentle voice, with surprisingly low-spirited tones. He spoke slowly, too, and with a slight difficulty, as if he rarely had the chance to use words and his ability was a bit rusty. He was the owner of the store, one Tom Scruggs, and this was his way of being polite. The other person looked up with familiar eyes but said nothing.

"I war hendered some," replied Wray, seating himself in a rush-bottomed chair, and drawing close to the inverted basket. "Ez I war a-comin' along, 'bout haffen mile an' better from our house,—'twar nigh on ter three o'clock, I reckon,—I seen the bigges', fattes' buck I hev seen this year a-bouncin' through the laurel, an' I shot him. An' I hed to kerry him 'long home, 'kase suthin' mought hev got him ef I hed a-left him thar. An' it hendered me some."

"I was held up a bit," replied Wray, sitting down in a rush-bottomed chair and moving closer to the upside-down basket. "As I was coming along, about half a mile or so from our house— it was nearly three o'clock, I guess—I saw the biggest, fattest buck I've seen this year bouncing through the laurel, and I shot him. And I had to carry him back home because something might have gotten him if I had left him there. And it held me up a bit."

"An' we hev ter sit hyar a-wastin' away an' a-waitin' while ye goes a-huntin' of deer," said Josiah Tait, angrily, and speaking for the first time. "I could hev gone an' shot twenty deer ef I would hev tuk the time. Ye said ez how ye war a-goin' ter be hyar an hour by sun, an' jes' look a-yander," pointing to the lustrous disc of the moon.

"Then we have to sit here wasting time while you go hunting for deer," Josiah Tait said angrily, speaking up for the first time. "I could have gone and shot twenty deer if I had taken the time. You said you were going to be here an hour by sundown, and just look over there," he said, pointing to the shiny disc of the moon.

"That thar moon war high enough 'fore the sun war a-settin'," returned Wray. "Ef ye air in sech a hurry, whyn't yer cut them thar kyerds fur deal, an' stop that thar jowin' o' yourn. I hev hed ez much of that ez I am a-goin' ter swallow."

"That moon was high enough before the sun was setting," Wray replied. "If you're in such a hurry, why don't you shuffle those cards for the deal and stop that talking of yours? I've had as much of that as I'm going to put up with."

"I'll put it down ye with the ramrod o' that thar gun o' mine, ef ye don't take keer how ye talk," retorted the choleric Tait; "an' ef that don't set easy on yer stomach, I'll see how ye'll digest a bullet."

"I'll take you down with the ramrod of my gun if you don't watch how you talk," replied the angry Tait; "and if that doesn't sit well with you, I'll see how you handle a bullet."

"I'm a-waitin' fur yer ramrod," said Wray. "Jes' try that fust, an' see how it works."

"I'm waiting for your ramrod," said Wray. "Just try that first, and see how it works."

The melancholy-voiced store-keeper interrupted these amenities, not for the sake of peace,—white-winged angel,—but in the interests of Old Sledge. "Ef I hed a-knowed ez how ye two boys war a-goin' ter take ter quarrelin' an' a-fightin' round hyar, a-stiddier playin' of kyerds sensible-like, I wouldn't hev shet up shop so quick. I hed a good many little turns of work ter do, what I hev lef' ter play kyerds. An' ye two mought jow tergether some other day, it 'pears like ter me. Ye air a-wastin' more time a-jowin', Josiah, than Budd tuk up in comin' an' deer-huntin' tergether. Ye hev cut the lowest in the pack, so deal the kyerds, or give 'em ter them ez will."

The gloomy storekeeper interrupted the friendly banter, not for the sake of peace—like a white-winged angel—but to defend Old Sledge. "If I had known how you two boys were going to start arguing and fighting around here instead of playing cards like sensible people, I wouldn’t have closed up shop so quickly. I had quite a few little tasks to finish that I left to play cards. And it seems to me you two could chat some other day. You're wasting more time talking, Josiah, than Budd took getting here for deer hunting. You've drawn the lowest card in the deck, so deal the cards, or give them to those who will."

The suggestion to resign the deal touched Josiah in a tender spot. He protested that he was only too willing to play,—that was all he wanted. "But ter be kep' a-waitin' hyar while Budd comes a-snakin' through the woods, an' a-stoppin' ter shoot wild varmints an' sech, an' then a-goin' home ter kerry 'em, an' then a-snakin' agin through the woods, an' a-gittin' hyar nigh on ter night-time,—that's what riles me."

The suggestion to back out of the deal hit Josiah hard. He insisted that he was more than ready to play—that was all he cared about. "But to be left waiting here while Budd slithers through the woods, stopping to shoot wild animals and such, then going home to haul them back, and then slithering through the woods again, only to get here nearly at night—that’s what drives me crazy."

"Waal, go 'long, now!" exclaimed Wray, fairly roused out of his imperturbability. "Deal them kyerds, an' stop a-talkin'. That thar tongue o' yourn will git cut out some o' these hyar days. It jes' goes like a grist-mill, an' it's enough ter make a man deef fur life."

"Waal, go on now!" Wray exclaimed, clearly shaken out of his calm demeanor. "Deal the cards and quit talking. That mouth of yours is gonna get you in trouble one of these days. It just keeps going like a gristmill, and it's enough to make a man deaf for life."

Thus exhorted, Josiah dealt. In receiving their hands the players looked searchingly at every card, as if in doubtful recognition of an old acquaintance; but before the game was fairly begun another interruption occurred. One of the elderly men beside the fire rose and advanced upon the party.

Thus encouraged, Josiah dealt. As they received their cards, the players examined each one closely, as if they were unsure whether they recognized an old friend; but before the game could officially start, another interruption happened. One of the older men by the fire stood up and approached the group.

"Thar is a word ez we hev laid off ter ax ye, Budd Wray, which will be axed twict,—wunst right hyar, an' wunst at the Jedgmint Day. War it ye ez interjuced this hyar coal o' fire from hell, that ye call Old Sledge, up hyar ter the Settlemint?"

"There's a question we've been meaning to ask you, Budd Wray, and it will be asked twice—once right here, and once on Judgment Day. Were you the one who brought this coal of fire from hell that you call Old Sledge up here to the Settlement?"

The querist was a gaunt, forlorn-looking man, stoop-shouldered, and slow in his movements. There was, however, a distinct intimation of power in his lean, sinewy figure, and his face bore the scarlet scar of a wound torn by a furious fang, which, though healed long ago, was an ever-present reminder of a fierce encounter with a wild beast, in which he had come off victorious. The tones of his voice and the drift and rhetoric of his speech bespoke the loan of the circuit-rider.

The questioner was a thin, sad-looking man, with slumped shoulders and slow movements. However, there was a clear hint of strength in his lean, muscular build, and his face had a bright red scar from a wound inflicted by a fierce fang. Although it had healed long ago, it was a constant reminder of a tough battle with a wild animal, which he had survived. The sound of his voice and the way he expressed himself reflected the influence of the traveling preacher.

The card-players looked up, less in surprise than exasperation, and Josiah Tait, fretfully anticipating Wray, spoke in reply: "No, he never. I fotched this hyar coal o' fire myself, an' ef ye don't look out an' stand back out'n the way it'll flare up an' singe ye. I larnt how ter play when I went down yander ter the Cross-Roads, an' I brung it ter the Settlemint myself."

The card players looked up, not so much in surprise but in irritation, and Josiah Tait, anxiously waiting for Wray, responded: "No, he never did. I brought this coal of fire myself, and if you don't watch out and stand back, it'll flare up and burn you. I learned how to play when I went down to the Cross-Roads, and I brought it to the Settlement myself."

There was a mingled glow of the pride of the innovator and the disdainful superiority of the iconoclast kindling within Josiah Tait as he claimed the patent for Old Sledge. The catechistic terrors of the Last Day had less reality for him than the present honor and glory appertaining to the traveled importer of a new game. The Judgment Day seemed imminent over his dodging head only when beholding the masterly scene-painting of the circuit-rider, and the fire and brimstone out of sight were out of mind.

There was a mix of pride from being an innovator and a sense of superiority as a rebellious creator sparking within Josiah Tait as he claimed the patent for Old Sledge. The terrifying questions about the Last Day felt less real to him than the current honor and prestige that came with being the first to bring a new game to the market. The idea of Judgment Day only felt real for him when he saw the impressive performances of the circuit-rider, while the threats of hellfire faded from his thoughts.

"But ef ye air a-thinkin' of callin' me ter 'count fur sech," said Wray, nodding at the cards, "I'll hev ye ter know ez I kin stand up ter anything I does. I hev got no call ter be ashamed ov myself, an' I ain't afeard o' nuthin' an' nobody."

"But if you’re thinking about calling me to account for that," said Wray, nodding at the cards, "I want you to know that I can handle anything I do. I have nothing to be ashamed of, and I'm not afraid of anything or anyone."

"Ye gin me ter onderstand, then, ez Josiah l'arned ye ter play?" asked the self-constituted grand inquisitor. "How come, then, Budd Wray, ez ye wins all the truck from Josiah, ef ye air jes' a-l'arnin'?"

"Since you want me to understand, then, did Josiah teach you to play?" asked the self-appointed grand inquisitor. "How is it that you, Budd Wray, win all the stuff from Josiah, if you're just learning?"

There was an angry exclamation from Josiah, and Wray laughed out triumphantly. The walls caught the infrequent mirthful sound, and reverberated with a hollow repetition. From the dark forest just beyond the moon-flooded clearing the echo rang out. There was a subtle, weird influence in those exultant tones, rising and falling by fitful starts in that tangled, wooded desert; now loud and close at hand, now the faintest whisper of a sound. The men all turned their slow eyes toward the sombre shadows, so black beneath the silver moon, and then looked at each other.

There was an angry shout from Josiah, and Wray laughed triumphantly. The walls caught the rare sound of laughter and echoed it back hollowly. From the dark forest just beyond the moonlit clearing, the echo spread out. There was a strange, eerie vibe in those joyful tones, rising and falling in sudden bursts in that tangled, wooded wilderness; now loud and nearby, now barely a whisper. The men all slowly turned their eyes toward the dark shadows, so deep beneath the silver moon, and then looked at each other.

"It's 'bout time fur me ter be a-startin'," said the old hunter. "Whenever I hear them critters a-laffin' that thar way in them woods I puts out fur home an' bars up the door, fur I hev hearn tell ez how the sperits air a-prowlin' round then, an' some mischief is a-happenin'."

"It's about time for me to get going," said the old hunter. "Whenever I hear those creatures laughing like that in the woods, I head home and lock the door, because I've heard that the spirits are roaming around then, and some trouble is happening."

"'T ain't nuthin' but Budd Wray a-laffin'," said the store-keeper reassuringly. "I hev hearn them thar rocks an' things a-answerin' back every minute in the day, when anybody hollers right loud."

"'It's nothing but Budd Wray laughing," said the storekeeper reassuringly. "I've heard those rocks and things echoing back every minute of the day when anyone shouts really loud."

"They don't laff, though, like they war a-laffin' jes' a while ago."

"They don't laugh, though, like they were laughing just a little while ago."

"No, they don't," admitted the store-keeper reluctantly; "but mebbe it air 'kase thar is nobody round hyar ez hev got much call ter laff."

"No, they don't," the storekeeper admitted reluctantly; "but maybe it's because there isn't anyone around here who has much reason to laugh."

He was unaware of the lurking melancholy in this speech, and it passed unnoticed by the others.

He didn't realize the hidden sadness in his speech, and it went unnoticed by the others.

"It's this hyar a-foolin' along of Old Sledge an' sech ez calls the sperits up," said the old hunter. "An' ef ye knows what air good fur ye, ye'll light out from hyar an' go home. They air a-laffin' yit"—He interrupted himself, and glanced out of the door.

"It's this messing around with Old Sledge and things that call the spirits up," said the old hunter. "And if you know what's good for you, you'll get out of here and go home. They're still laughing"—He stopped mid-sentence and looked out the door.

The faintest staccato laugh thrilled from among the leaves. And then all was silent, not even the bark of a dog nor a tremulous whisper of the night-wind.

The faintest staccato laugh echoed through the leaves. And then everything went silent, not even the bark of a dog or a soft whisper of the night wind.

The other elderly man, who had not yet spoken, rose from his seat by the fire. "I'm a-goin', too," he said. "I kem hyar ter the Settlemint," he added, turning upon the gamblers, "'kase I hev been called ter warn ye o' the wickedness o' yer ways, ez Jonah afore me war tole ter go up ter Nineveh ter warn the folks thar."

The other old man, who hadn't spoken yet, got up from his seat by the fire. "I’m coming, too," he said. "I came here to the Settlement," he added, turning to the gamblers, "because I’ve been called to warn you about the wrongness of your ways, just like Jonah was told to go to Nineveh to warn the people there."

"Things turns out powerful cur'ous wunst in a while," retorted Wray. "He war swallowed by a whale arterward."

"Things turn out powerful curious once in a while," Wray replied. "He was swallowed by a whale afterward."

"'Kase he wouldn't do ez he war tole; but even thar Providence perfected him. He kem out'n the whale agin, what nobody kin do ez gits swallowed in the pit. They hev ter stay."

"'Cause he wouldn't do as he was told; but even there Providence perfected him. He came out of the whale again, which nobody can do if they get swallowed in the pit. They have to stay."

"It hain't me ez keeps up this hyar game," said Wray sullenly, but stung to a slight repentance by this allusion to the pit. "It air Josiah hyar ez is a-aimin' ter win back the truck he hev los'; an' so air Tom, hyar. I hev hed toler'ble luck along o' this Old Sledge, but they know, an' they hev got ter stand up ter it, ez I never axed none of 'em ter play. Ef they scorches tharselves with this hyar coal o' fire from hell, ez ye calls it, Josiah brung it, an' it air Tom an' him a-blowin' on it ez hev kep' it a-light."

"It isn't me who's keeping this game going," Wray said sullenly, but feeling a bit regretful from the reference to the pit. "It's Josiah here who is aiming to win back what he's lost; and so is Tom, here. I've had decent luck with this Old Sledge, but they know, and they have to face it, as I never asked any of them to play. If they burn themselves with this coal of fire from hell, as you call it, Josiah brought it, and it's Tom and him who have kept it going."

"I ain't a-goin' ter quit," said Josiah Tait angrily, the loser's desperate eagerness pulsing hot and quick through his veins,—"I ain't a-goin' ter quit till I gits back that thar brindled heifer an' that thar gray mare out yander, what Budd air a-ridin', an' them thar two wagon-loads o' corn."

"I’m not going to quit," said Josiah Tait angrily, the desperate eagerness of the loser pulsing hot and quick through his veins, "I’m not going to quit until I get back that brindle heifer and that gray mare out there that Budd is riding, and those two wagon-loads of corn."

"We hev said our say, an' we air a-goin'," remarked one of the unheeded counselors.

"We've said our piece, and we're leaving," remarked one of the ignored counselors.

"An' play on of yer kyerds!" cried Josiah to the others, in a louder, shriller voice than was his wont, as the two elderly men stepped out of the door. The woods caught the sound and gave it back in a higher key.

"Play your cards!" shouted Josiah to the others, in a louder, sharper tone than usual, as the two old men stepped out of the door. The woods echoed the sound back in a higher pitch.

"S'pose we stops fur ter-night," suggested the store-keeper; "them thar rocks do sound sort 'n cur'ous now."

"Suppose we stop for tonight," suggested the storekeeper; "those rocks do sound kind of strange now."

"I ain't a-goin' ter stop fur nuthin' an' nobody!" exclaimed Josiah, in a tremor of keen anxiety to be at the sport. "Dad-burn the sperits! Let 'em come in, an' I 'll deal 'em a hand. Thar! that trick is mine. Play ter this hyar queen o' trumps."

"I’m not going to stop for anything or anyone!" exclaimed Josiah, filled with eagerness to get to the game. "Darn the spirits! Let them come in, and I’ll give them a run for their money. There! That trick is mine. Play to this queen of trumps."

The royal lady was recklessly thrown upon the basket, with all her foes in ambush. Somehow, they did not present themselves. Tom was destitute, and Budd followed with the seven. Josiah again pocketed the trick with unction. This trifling success went disproportionately far in calming his agitation, and for a time he played more needfully. Tom Scruggs's caution made ample amends for his lack of experience. So slow was he, and so much time did he require for consideration, that more than once he roused his companions to wrath. The anxieties with which he was beset preponderated over the pleasure afforded by the sport, and the winning back of a half-bushel measure, which he had placed in jeopardy and lost, so satisfied this prudent soul that he announced at the end of the game that he would play no more for this evening. The others were welcome, though, to continue if they liked, and he would sit by and look on. He snuffed the blinking tallow dip, and reseated himself, an eager spectator of the play that followed.

The royal lady was carelessly tossed into the basket, with all her enemies lying in wait. Somehow, they didn’t show themselves. Tom was out of luck, and Budd came in with the seven. Josiah pocketed the win with satisfaction. This small victory did a lot to ease his anxiety, and for a while, he played more confidently. Tom Scruggs's caution made up for his lack of experience. He was so slow and took so long to think things through that he frustrated his friends more than once. The worries he faced overshadowed the enjoyment of the game, and when he managed to win back a half-bushel measure that he had risked and lost, it satisfied his cautious nature enough that he announced at the end of the game that he wouldn't play anymore for the night. However, he told the others they were welcome to keep playing if they wanted, and he would just sit back and watch. He trimmed the flickering candle and settled back in, eager to watch the game that followed.

Wray was a cool hand. Despite the awkward, unaccustomed clutch upon the cards and the doubtful recognition he bestowed on each as it fell upon the basket, he displayed an imperturbability and nerve that usually come only of long practice, and a singular pertinacity in pursuing the line of tactics he had marked out,—lying in wait and pouncing unerringly upon his prey in the nick of time. The brindled heifer's mother followed her offspring into his ownership; a yoke of oxen, a clay-bank filly, ten hogs,—every moment he was growing richer. But his success did not for an instant shake his stolid calm, quicken his blood, nor relax his vigilant attention; his exultation was held well in hand under the domination of a strong will and a settled purpose. Josiah Tait became almost maddened by these heavy losses; his hands trembled, his eager exclamations were incoherent, his dull eyes blazed at fever heat, and ever and anon the echo of his shrill, raised voice rang back from the untiring rocks.

Wray was composed. Even though he awkwardly gripped the cards and hesitated with each one as it landed in the basket, he showed a calmness and confidence that usually come from lots of experience, along with a remarkable determination to stick to the strategy he had chosen—waiting patiently and then striking flawlessly at just the right moment. The brindled heifer's mother also passed into his possession, along with a yoke of oxen, a clay-bank filly, and ten pigs—every moment made him wealthier. But his success didn’t affect his steady demeanor, speed up his pulse, or lessen his keen focus; he kept his excitement in check, controlled by a strong will and a clear goal. Josiah Tait was almost driven to madness by his heavy losses; his hands shook, his eager comments were jumbled, his dull eyes blazed with intensity, and every now and then the sound of his high-pitched, shouting voice echoed off the relentless rocks.

The single spectator of the game now and then, in the intervals of shuffling and dealing the cards, glanced over his shoulder at the dark trees whence the hidden mimic of the woods, with some strong suggestion of sinister intent, repeated the agitated tones. There was a silver line all along the summit of the foliage, along the roofs of the houses and the topmost rails of the fences; a sense of freshness and dew pervaded the air, and the grass was all a-sparkle. The shadows of the laurel about the door were beginning to fall on the step, every leaf distinctly defined in the moon's magical tracery. He knew without looking up that she had passed the meridian, and was swinging down the western sky.

The only spectator of the game occasionally glanced over his shoulder at the dark trees during the breaks of shuffling and dealing cards. From the woods, a hidden echo, hinting at something ominous, repeated the restless sounds. A silver line ran along the tops of the trees, the roofs of the houses, and the highest rails of the fences; the air was filled with a sense of freshness and dew, and the grass sparkled. The shadows of the laurel by the door were starting to stretch across the step, each leaf clearly defined in the moon's enchanting light. He knew without looking up that she had passed her peak and was moving down the western sky.

"Boys," he said, in a husky under-tone,—he dared not speak aloud, for the mocker in the woods,—"boys, I reckon it's 'bout time we war a-quittin' o' this hyar a-playin' of Old Sledge; it's midnight an' past, an' Budd hev tolerable fur ter go."

"Boys," he said in a low voice—he didn't dare speak out loud because of the taunter in the woods—"boys, I think it's about time we stop playing Old Sledge; it's after midnight, and Budd has quite a way to go."

The tallow dip, that had long been flickering near its end, suddenly went out, and the party suffered a partial eclipse. Josiah Tait dragged the inverted basket closer to the door and into the full brilliance of the moon, declaring that neither Wray nor he should leave the house till he had retrieved his misfortunes or lost every thing in the effort. The host, feeling that even hospitality has its limits, did not offer to light another expensive candle, but threw a quantity of pine-knots on the smouldering coals; presently a white blaze was streaming up the chimney, and in the mingled light of fire and moon the game went on.

The tallow candle, which had been flickering for a while, suddenly went out, and the group experienced a sort of darkness. Josiah Tait pulled the upside-down basket closer to the door and into the bright light of the moon, insisting that neither he nor Wray would leave the house until he either got back his luck or lost everything trying. The host, realizing that even hospitality has its limits, didn’t offer to light another pricey candle but tossed some pine knots onto the smoldering coals; soon, a bright flame was shooting up the chimney, and in the combined light of the fire and moon, the game continued.

"Ye oughter take keer, Josiah," remonstrated the sad-voiced store-keeper, as a deep groan and a deep curse emphasized the result of high, jack, and game for Wray, and low alone for Tait. "An' it's 'bout time ter quit."

"Hey, you should be careful, Josiah," the mournful storekeeper said, as a deep groan and a strong curse highlighted the outcome of high, jack, and game for Wray, and low only for Tait. "And it's about time to stop."

"Dad-burn the luck!" exclaimed Josiah, in a hard, strained voice, "I ain't a-goin' ter leave this hyar spot till I hev won back them thar critters o' mine what he hev tuk. An' I kin do it,—I kin do it in one more game. I'll bet—I'll bet"—he paused in bewildered excitement; he had already lost to Wray everything available as a stake. There was a sudden unaccountable gleam of malice on the lucky winner's face; the quick glance flashed in the moonlight into the distended hot eyes of his antagonist. Wray laughed silently, and began to push his chair away from the basket.

"Darn the luck!" Josiah exclaimed in a strained voice, "I’m not leaving this spot until I win back my animals that he took. And I can do it—I can do it in one more game. I’ll bet—I’ll bet”—he paused, caught up in bewildered excitement; he had already lost everything he had to Wray. There was a sudden, strange look of malice on the winner’s face; the quick glance flashed in the moonlight into the wide, heated eyes of his opponent. Wray laughed silently and started to push his chair away from the basket.

"Stop! stop!" cried Josiah, hoarsely. "I hev got a house,—a house an' fifty acres, nigh about. I'll bet the house an' land agin what ye hev won from me,—them two cows, an' the brindled heifer, an' the gray mare, an' the clay-bank filly, an' them ten hogs, an' the yoke o' steers, an' the wagon, an' the corn,—them two loads o' corn: that will 'bout make it even, won't it?" He leaned forward eagerly as he asked the question.

"Stop! Stop!" Josiah shouted hoarsely. "I've got a house—a house and about fifty acres. I’ll bet the house and land against what you’ve won from me—those two cows, the brindled heifer, the gray mare, the clay-bank filly, the ten hogs, the yoke of steers, the wagon, and those two loads of corn: that should make it even, right?" He leaned forward eagerly as he asked the question.

"Look a-hyar, Josiah," exclaimed the store-keeper, aghast, "this hyar is a-goin' too fur! Hain't ye los' enough a'ready but ye must be a-puttin' up the house what shelters ye? Look at me, now: I ain't done los' nothin' but the half-bushel measure, an' I hev got it back agin. An' it air a blessin' that I hev got it agin, for 'twould hev been mighty ill-convenient round hyar 'thout it."

"Look here, Josiah," the storekeeper exclaimed, shocked, "this is going too far! Haven't you already lost enough that you have to tear down the house that protects you? Just look at me: I haven't lost anything except the half-bushel measure, and I've got it back. And it's a blessing that I do have it back, because it would have been really inconvenient around here without it."

"Will ye take it?" said Josiah, almost pleadingly, persistently addressing himself to Wray, regardless of the remonstrant host. "Will ye put up the critters agin the house an' land?"

"Will you take it?" Josiah said, almost pleading, as he kept talking to Wray, ignoring the protesting host. "Will you put the animals against the house and land?"

Wray made a feint of hesitating. Then he signified his willingness by seating himself and beginning to deal the cards, saying before he looked at his hand, "That thar house an' land o' yourn agin the truck ez I hev won from ye?"

Wray pretended to hesitate for a moment. Then he showed he was on board by sitting down and starting to deal the cards, saying before he looked at his hand, "Your house and land against the stuff I've won from you?"

"Oh, Lord, boys, this must be sinful!" remonstrated the proprietor of the cherished half-bushel measure, appalled by the magnitude of the interests involved.

"Oh, man, guys, this has to be wrong!" protested the owner of the beloved half-bushel measure, shocked by the scale of the situation.

"Hold yer jaw! hold yer jaw!" said Josiah Tait. "I kin hardly make out one kyerd from another while ye're a-preachin' away, same ez the rider! I done tole ye, Budd," turning again to Wray, "I'll put up the house an' land agin the truck. I'll git a deed writ fur ye in the mornin', ef ye win it," he added, hastily, thinking he detected uncertainty still lurking in the expression of Wray's face. "The court air a-goin' tar sit hyar ter-morrer, an' the lawyers from the valley towns will be hyar toler'ble soon, I reckon. An' I'll git ye a deed writ fust thing in the mornin'."

"Shut your mouth! Shut your mouth!" said Josiah Tait. "I can hardly tell one card from another while you’re preaching away, just like the rider! I already told you, Budd," he said, turning back to Wray, "I'll put up the house and land against the stuff. I'll get a deed written for you in the morning if you win it," he added quickly, thinking he still saw some doubt in Wray's expression. "The court is going to sit here tomorrow, and the lawyers from the valley towns will be here pretty soon, I guess. And I'll get you a deed written first thing in the morning."

"Ye hearn him say it?" said Wray, turning to Tom Scruggs.

"Did you hear him say that?" Wray asked, turning to Tom Scruggs.

"I hearn him," was the reply.

"I heard him," was the reply.

And the game went on.

And the game continued.

"I beg," said Josiah, piteously, after carefully surveying his hand.

"I beg," said Josiah, sounding helpless, after carefully looking over his hand.

"I ain't a-goin' ter deal ye nare 'nother kyerd," said Wray. "Ye kin take a pint fust."

"I’m not going to deal you another card," said Wray. "You can take a drink first."

The point was scored by the faithful looker-on in Josiah's favor. High, low, and game were made by Wray, jack being in the pack. Thus the score was three to one. In the next deal, the trump, a spade, was allowed by Wray to stand. He led the king. "I'm low, anyhow," said Josiah, in momentary exultation, as he played the deuce to it. Wray next led the ace whisking for the jack, and caught it.

The point was scored by the loyal observer in Josiah's favor. High, low, and game were made by Wray, with the jack in the pack. So the score was three to one. In the next deal, Wray let the trump, a spade, stand. He played the king. "I'm low, anyway," said Josiah, feeling a brief moment of triumph as he played the deuce. Wray then played the ace, hoping to catch the jack, and he got it.

"Dad-burn the rotten luck!" cried Josiah.

"Darn the rotten luck!" shouted Josiah.

With the advantage of high and jack a foregone conclusion, Wray began to play warily for game. But despite his caution he lost the next trick. Josiah was in doubt how to follow up this advantage; after an anxious interval of cogitation he said, "I b'lieve I'll throw away fur a while," and laid that safe card, the five of diamonds, upon the basket. "Tom," he added, "put on some more o' them knots. I kin hardly tell what I'm a-doin' of. I hev got the shakes, an' somehow 'nother my eyes is cranky, and wobble so ez I can't see."

With the advantage of high and jack already secured, Wray started to play cautiously for the game. But despite his carefulness, he lost the next trick. Josiah wasn’t sure how to capitalize on this lead; after a tense moment of thought, he said, "I think I’ll just discard for a bit," and placed the safe card, the five of diamonds, onto the basket. "Tom," he added, "slap on some more of those knots. I can barely make out what I’m doing. I’ve got the shakes, and somehow my eyes are all over the place, wobbling so much I can’t see."

The white sheets of flame went whizzing merrily up the chimney, and the clear light fell full upon the basket as Wray laid upon the five the ten of diamonds.

The white flames shot cheerfully up the chimney, and the bright light illuminated the basket as Wray placed the ten of diamonds on top of the five.

"Lord! Josiah!" exclaimed Tom Scruggs, becoming wild, and even more ill judged than usual, beginning to feel as if he were assisting at his friend's obsequies, and to have a more decided conviction that this way of coming by house and land and cattle and goods was sinful. "Lord! Josiah! that thar kyerd he's done saved 'll count him ten fur game. Ye had better hev played that thar queen o' di'monds, an' dragged it out 'n him."

"Lord! Josiah!" Tom Scruggs shouted, losing control and acting even more recklessly than usual, starting to feel like he was attending his friend’s funeral and becoming more convinced that acquiring property and livestock this way was wrong. "Lord! Josiah! that card he’s saved will count him ten for the game. You should have played that queen of diamonds and pulled it out of him."

"Good Lord in heaven!" shrieked Josiah, in a frenzy at this unwarrantable disclosure.

"Good Lord in heaven!" screamed Josiah, in a frenzy at this outrageous revelation.

"Lord in heaven!" rang loud from the depths of the dark woods. "Heaven!" softly vibrated the distant heights. The crags close at hand clanged back the sound, and the air was filled with repetitions of the word, growing fainter and fainter, till they might have seemed the echo of a whisper.

"Lord in heaven!" echoed loudly from the depths of the dark woods. "Heaven!" softly resonated from the distant heights. The nearby cliffs bounced the sound back, and the air was filled with repeated mentions of the word, growing fainter and fainter, until they seemed like the echo of a whisper.

The men neither heard nor heeded. Tom Scruggs, although appreciating the depth of the infamy into which he had unwittingly plunged, was fully resolved to stand stoutly upon the defensive,—he even extended his hand to take down his gun, which was laid across a couple of nails on the wall.

The men neither heard nor paid attention. Tom Scruggs, while recognizing the seriousness of the mess he had stumbled into, was completely determined to hold his ground. He even reached for his gun, which was hanging on a couple of nails on the wall.

"Hold on, Josiah,—hold on!" cried Wray, as Tait drew his knife. "Tom never went fur ter tell, an' I'll give ye a ten ter make it fair. Thar's the ten o' hearts; an' a ten is the mos' ez that thar critter of a queen could hev made out ter hev tuk, anyhow."

"Wait, Josiah—wait!" shouted Wray as Tait pulled out his knife. "Tom never meant to report it, and I'll give you a ten to make it even. Here’s the ten of hearts; and a ten is the easiest that that queen could have managed to take, anyway."

Josiah hesitated.

Josiah paused.

"That thar is the mos' ez she could hev done," said the store-keeper, smoothing over the results of his carelessness. "The jacks don't count but fur one apiece, so that thar ten is the mos' ez she could hev made out ter git, even ef I hedn't a-forgot an' tole Budd she war in yer hand."

"That's the most she could have done," said the storekeeper, trying to cover up the consequences of his mistake. "The jacks only count for one each, so that ten is the most she could have managed to get, even if I hadn’t forgotten and told Budd she was in your hand."

Josiah was mollified by this very equitable proposal, and resuming his chair he went on with the play. The ten of hearts which he had thus secured was, however, of no great avail in counting for game. Wray had already high and jack, and game was added to these. The score therefore stood six to two in his favor.

Josiah was calmed by this fair proposal, and after sitting back down, he continued with the game. The ten of hearts he had just secured didn’t help much in scoring for the game. Wray already had a high card and a jack, and added game to those. The score was now six to two in his favor.

The perennial faith of the gambler in the next turn of the wheel was strong in Josiah Tait. Despite his long run of bad luck, he was still animated by the feverish delusion that the gracious moment was surely close at hand when success would smile upon him. Wray, it was true, needed to score only one point to turn him out of house and land, homeless and penniless. He was confident it would never be scored. If he could make the four chances he would be even with his antagonist, and then he could win back in a single point all that he had lost. His face wore a haggard, eager expectation, and the agitation of the moment thrilled through every nerve. He watched with fiery eyes the dealing of the cards, and after hastily scrutinizing his hand he glanced with keen interest to see the trump turned. It was a knave, counting one for the dealer. There was a moment of intense silence; he seemed petrified as his eyes met the triumphant gaze of his opponent. The next instant he was at Wray's throat.

The unshakeable faith of the gambler in the next spin of the wheel was strong in Josiah Tait. Even with his long streak of bad luck, he was still driven by the desperate belief that the lucky moment was just around the corner when success would finally come his way. It was true that Wray only needed to score one point to kick him out of his home, leaving him homeless and broke. He was sure that point would never be scored. If he could make all four chances, he would tie with his rival, and then he could reclaim in just one point everything he had lost. His face showed a worn but eager anticipation, and the tension of the moment raced through every nerve. He watched intently as the cards were dealt, and after quickly examining his hand, he looked eagerly to see what the trump card would be. It turned out to be a knave, giving one point to the dealer. There was a brief moment of heavy silence; he seemed frozen as his eyes locked onto his opponent's smug gaze. In the next instant, he was lunging at Wray.

The shadows of the swaying figures reeled across the floor, marring the exquisite arabesque of moonshine and laurel leaves,—quick, hard panting, a deep oath, and spasmodic efforts on the part of each to draw a sharp knife prevented by the strong intertwining arms of the other.

The shadows of the swaying figures danced across the floor, disturbing the beautiful patterns of moonlight and laurel leaves—quick, heavy breathing, a deep curse, and each struggling to pull out a sharp knife, all thwarted by the strong, intertwined arms of the other.

The store-keeper, at a safe distance, remonstrated with both, to no purpose, and as the struggle could end only in freeing a murderous hand he rushed into the clearing, shouting the magical word "Fight!" with all the strength of his lungs. There was no immediate response, save that the affrighted rocks rang with the frenzied cry, and the motionless woods and the white moonlight seemed pervaded with myriads of strange, uncanny voices. Then a cautious shutter of a glassless window was opened, and through the narrow chink there fell a bar of red light, on which was clearly defined an inquiring head, like an inquisitively expressive silhouette. "They air a-fightin' yander ter the store, whar they air a-playin' of Old Sledge," said the master of the shanty, for the enlightenment of the curious within. And then he closed the shutter, and like the law-abiding citizen that he was betook himself to his broken rest. This was the only expression of interest elicited.

The storekeeper, keeping a safe distance, tried to reason with both of them, but it was useless. Knowing that the struggle could only end with someone getting hurt, he rushed into the clearing, shouting the word "Fight!" as loud as he could. There was no immediate response, except for the terrified rocks echoing his frantic cry, and the still woods and bright moonlight seemed filled with countless strange, eerie voices. Then a cautious shutter of a glassless window opened, and through the narrow gap, a beam of red light fell, clearly outlining an inquisitive head, like an expressive silhouette. "They're fighting over there by the store, where they're playing Old Sledge," said the master of the shanty to explain to the curious inside. Then he closed the shutter and, like a law-abiding citizen, went back to his broken rest. This was the only sign of interest that was shown.

A dreadful anxiety was astir in the store-keeper's thoughts. One of the men would certainly be killed; but he cared not so much for the shedding of blood in the abstract as that the deed should be committed on his premises at the dead of night; and there might be such a concatenation of circumstances, through the malefactor's willful perversion of the facts, that suspicion would fall upon him. The first circuit court ever held in the new county would be in session to-morrow; and the terrors of the law, deadly to an unaccustomed mind, were close upon him. Finding no help from without, he rushed back into the store, determined to make one more appeal to the belligerents. "Budd," he cried, "I'll holp ye ter hold Josiah, ef ye'll promise ye won't tech him ter hurt. He air crazed, through a-losin' of his truck. Say ye won't tech him ter hurt, an' I'll holp ye ter hold him."

A terrible anxiety was brewing in the storekeeper's mind. One of the men was definitely going to get hurt; but he was less concerned about the violence itself and more about the fact that it would happen on his property in the dead of night. There could be such a series of events, due to the criminal's deliberate distortion of the facts, that suspicion would fall on him. The first circuit court ever held in the new county would be in session tomorrow, and the harsh realities of the law, frightening to someone unfamiliar with them, loomed over him. Finding no outside help, he rushed back into the store, determined to make one last attempt to appeal to the fighters. "Budd," he shouted, "I'll help you hold Josiah if you promise you won't let him get hurt. He’s gone crazy from losing his things. Just say you won't let him get hurt, and I'll help you hold him."

Josiah succumbed to their united efforts, and presently made no further show of resistance, but sank, still panting, into one of the chairs beside the inverted basket, and gazed blankly, with the eyes of a despairing, hunted creature, out at the sheen of the moonlight.

Josiah gave in to their combined efforts and stopped putting up any resistance. He sank, still catching his breath, into one of the chairs by the overturned basket, staring blankly out at the shimmering moonlight, looking like a hopeless, cornered animal.

"I ain't a-wantin' ter hurt nobody," said Wray, in a surly tone. "I never axed him ter play kyerds, nor ter bet, nor nuthin'. He l'arned me hisself, an' ef I hed los' stiddier of him he would be a-thinkin' now ez it's all right."

"I don't want to hurt anyone," Wray said grumpily. "I never asked him to play cards, or to bet, or anything. He taught me himself, and if I had lost to him, he'd be thinking now that it's all good."

"I'm a-goin' ter stand up ter what I done said, though," Josiah declared brokenly. "Ye needn't be afeard ez how I ain't a-goin' ter make my words true. Ef ye comes hyar at noon ter-morrer, ye'll git that thar deed, an' ye kin take the house an' land ez I an' my folks hev hed nigh on ter a hundred year. I ain't a-goin' ter fail o' my word, though."

"I'm going to stand up for what I said, though," Josiah declared brokenly. "You don't need to be afraid that I'm not going to keep my word. If you come here at noon tomorrow, you'll get that deed, and you can take the house and land that my family has owned for nearly a hundred years. I'm not going to go back on my word, though."

He rose suddenly, and stepped out of the door. His footfalls sounded with a sullen thud in the utter quietude of the place; a long shadow thrown by the sinking moon dogged him noiselessly as he went, until he plunged into the depths of the woods, and their gloom absorbed both him and his silent pursuer.

He got up quickly and walked out the door. His footsteps echoed with a dull thud in the complete silence of the area; a long shadow cast by the setting moon followed him quietly as he moved, until he disappeared into the depths of the woods, where their darkness swallowed both him and his silent shadow.

A dank, sunless morning dawned upon the house in which Josiah Tait and his fathers had lived for nearly a hundred years: it was a humble log cabin nestled in the dense forest, about four miles from the Settlement. Fifty cleared acres, in an irregular shape, lay behind it; the cornstalks, sole remnant of the crop lost at Old Sledge, were still standing, their sickly yellow tint blanched by contrast with the dark brown of the tall weeds in a neighboring field, that had grown up after the harvested wheat, and flourished in the summer sun, and died under the first fall of the frost. A heavy moisture lay upon them at noon, this dreary autumnal day; a wet cloud hung in the tree-tops; here and there among its gray vapors, a scarlet bough flamed with sharply accented intensity. There was no far-reaching perspective in the long aisles of the woods; the all-pervading mist had enwrapped the world, and here, close at hand, were bronze-green trees, and there spectre-like outlines of boles and branches, dimly seen in the haze, and beyond an opaque, colorless curtain. From the chimney of the house the smoke rose slowly; the doors were closed, and not a creature was visible save ten hogs prowling about in front of the dwelling among the fallen acorns, pausing and looking up with that odd, porcine expression of mingled impudence and malignity as Budd Wray appeared suddenly in the mist and made his way to the cabin.

A damp, cloudy morning arrived at the house where Josiah Tait and his family had lived for almost a hundred years. It was a simple log cabin tucked away in the thick forest, about four miles from the Settlement. Behind it lay fifty cleared acres in an irregular shape; the cornstalks, the only remnants of the crop lost at Old Sledge, stood weak and yellow, contrasting with the dark brown of the tall weeds in a nearby field that had grown up after the wheat harvest, thrived in the summer sun, and faded under the first frost. Heavy moisture clung to the ground this dreary autumn day; a wet cloud hovered in the treetops; here and there, among the gray mist, a scarlet branch stood out with sharp intensity. There was no wide view in the long aisles of the woods; the all-encompassing fog had wrapped the world, and here were bronze-green trees, while there were ghostly outlines of trunks and branches, faintly visible in the haze, and beyond was an opaque, colorless barrier. Smoke rose slowly from the chimney of the house; the doors were shut, and the only creatures visible were ten pigs wandering around the front of the cabin among the fallen acorns, stopping occasionally to look up with that strange combination of boldness and malice as Budd Wray suddenly appeared in the mist and made his way to the cabin.

He knocked; there was a low-toned response. After hesitating a moment, he lifted the latch and went in. He was evidently unexpected; the two occupants of the room looked at him with startled eyes, in which, however, the momentary surprise was presently merged in an expression of bitter dislike. The elder, a faded, careworn woman of fifty, turned back without a word to her employment of washing clothes. The younger, a pretty girl of eighteen, looked hard at him with fast-filling blue eyes, and rising from her low chair beside the fire said, in a voice broken by grief and resentment, "Ef this hyar house air yourn, Budd Wray, I wants ter git out 'n it."

He knocked; a low voice answered. After hesitating for a moment, he unlatched the door and entered. He clearly surprised them; the two people in the room stared at him with wide eyes, but their initial shock quickly turned into a look of intense dislike. The older woman, a worn-out, tired-looking fifty-year-old, returned silently to her task of washing clothes. The younger one, a pretty eighteen-year-old girl, gazed at him with tears welling up in her blue eyes. Rising from her small chair by the fire, she said in a voice filled with grief and anger, "If this house is yours, Budd Wray, I want to get out of it."

"I hev come hyar ter tell ye a word," said Budd Wray, meeting her tearful glance with a stern stolidity. He flung himself into a chair, and fixing his moody eyes on the fire went on: "A word ez I hev been a-aimin' an' a-contrivin' ter tell ye ever sence ye war married ter Josiah Tait, an' afore that,—ever sence ye tuk back the word ez ye hed gin me afore ye ever seen him, 'kase o' his hevin' a house, an' critters, an' sech like. He hain't got none now,—none of 'em. I hev been a-layin' off ter bring him ter this pass fur a long time, 'count of the scandalous way ye done treated me a year ago las' June. He hain't got no house, nor no critters, nor nuthin'. I done it, an' I come hyar with the deed in my pocket ter tell ye what I done it fur."

"I've come here to tell you something," said Budd Wray, meeting her tearful gaze with a serious expression. He threw himself into a chair and, fixing his dark mood on the fire, continued: "Something I've been planning to tell you ever since you married Josiah Tait, and even before that—ever since you took back the promise you made me before you ever met him, because of his having a house and animals and all that. He doesn’t have any of that now—not a single thing. I've been working to bring him to this point for a long time because of the awful way you treated me a year ago last June. He doesn’t have a house, or any animals, or anything. I did this, and I came here with the deed in my pocket to tell you why I did it."

Her tears flowed afresh, and she looked appealingly at him. He did not remove his indignant eyes from the blaze, stealing timidly up the smoky chimney. "I never hed nuthin' much," he continued, "an' I never said I hed nuthin' much, like Josiah; but I thought ez how ye an' me might make out toler'ble well, bein' ez we sot consider'ble store by each other in them days, afore he ever tuk ter comin' a-huntin' yander ter Scrub-Oak Ridge, whar ye war a-livin' then. I don't keer nuthin' 'bout 'n it now, 'ceptin' it riles me, an' I war bound ter spite ye fur it. I don't keer nuthin' more 'bout ye now than fur one o' them thar dead leaves. I want ye ter know I jes' done it ter spite ye,—ye is the one. I hain't got no grudge agin Josiah ter talk about. He done like any other man would."

Her tears flowed again, and she looked at him pleadingly. He kept his angry gaze fixed on the fire, rising timidly up the smoky chimney. "I never had much," he continued, "and I never claimed I had much, like Josiah; but I thought that you and I could manage pretty well, since we cared a lot about each other back then, before he started coming around to hunt over at Scrub-Oak Ridge, where you were living then. I don’t care about any of that now, except it gets me worked up, and I was determined to get back at you for it. I don’t care about you now any more than I do about one of those dead leaves. I just want you to know I did it to spite you—you are the one. I don’t have any grudge against Josiah to talk about. He acted like any other guy would."

The color flared into the drooping face, and there was a flash in the weeping blue eyes.

The color rushed into the sagging face, and there was a glint in the tearful blue eyes.

"I s'pose I hed a right ter make a ch'ice," she said, angrily, stung by these taunts.

"I suppose I had a right to make a choice," she said, angrily, hurt by these taunts.

"Jes' so," responded Wray, coolly; "ye hed a right ter make a ch'ice a-twixt two men, but no gal hev got a right ter put a man on one eend o' the beam, an' a lot o' senseless critters an' house an' land on the t'other. Ye never keered nuthin' fur me nor Josiah nuther, ef the truth war knowed; ye war all tuk up with the house an' land an' critters. An' they hev done lef ye, what nare one o' the men would hev done."

"Just so," Wray replied calmly, "you had the right to choose between two men, but no girl has the right to put a man on one end of the scale and a bunch of mindless critters, along with a house and land, on the other. You never cared about me or Josiah either, if the truth were known; you were all wrapped up in the house, land, and animals. And now that they’ve all left you, not one of the men would have stuck around."

The girl burst into convulsive sobs, but the sight of her distress had no softening influence upon Wray. "I hev done it ter pay ye back fur what ye hev done ter me, an' I reckon ye'll 'low now ez we air toler'ble even. Ye tuk all I keered fur away from me, an' now I hev tuk all ye keer fur away from ye. An' I'm a-goin' now yander ter the Settlemint ter hev this hyar deed recorded on the book ter the court-house, like Lawyer Green tole me ter do right straight. I laid off, though, ter come hyar fust, an' tell ye what I hev been aimin' ter be able ter tell ye fur a year an' better. An' now I'm a-goin' ter git this hyar deed recorded."

The girl broke down in tears, but her distress didn't affect Wray at all. "I did this to get back at you for what you did to me, and I guess you’ll agree we’re about even now. You took away everything I cared about, and now I’ve taken away everything you care about. And I'm heading over to the Settlement to get this deed recorded at the courthouse, just like Lawyer Green told me to do right away. I decided to come here first, though, to tell you what I’ve been wanting to say for over a year. And now I'm going to get this deed recorded."

He replaced the sheet of scrawled legal-cap in his pocket, and rose to go; then turned, and, leaning heavily on the back of his chair, looked at her with lowering eyes.

He put away the crumpled legal pad in his pocket and stood up to leave; then he turned, leaned heavily on the back of his chair, and looked at her with a frown.

"Ye're a pore little critter," he said, with scathing contempt. "I dunno what ails Josiah nor me nuther ter hev sot our hearts on sech a little stalk o' cheat."

"You're a poor little thing," he said with scorn. "I don't know what's wrong with Josiah or me either to have set our hearts on such a little piece of deceit."

He went out into the enveloping mountain mist with the sound of her weeping ringing in his ears. His eyes were hot, and his angry heart was heavy. He had schemed and waited for his revenge with persistent patience. Fortune had favored him, but now that it had fully come, strangely enough it failed to satisfy him. The deed in his breast-pocket weighed like a stone, and as he rode on through the clouds that lay upon the mountain top, the sense of its pressure became almost unendurable. And yet, with a perplexing contrariety of emotion, he felt more bitterly toward her than ever, and experienced a delight almost savage in holding the possessions for which she had been so willing to resign him. "Jes' kicked me out 'n the way like I war nuthin' more 'n that thar branch o' pisen-oak, fur a passel o' cattle an' sech like critters, an' a house an' land,—'kase I don't count Josiah in. 'Twar the house an' land an' sech she war a-studyin' 'bout." And every moment the weight of the deed grew heavier. He took scant notice of external objects as he went, keeping mechanically along the path, closed in twenty yards ahead of him by the opaque curtain of mist. The trees at the greatest distance visible stood shadow-like and colorless in their curious, unreal atmosphere; but now and then the faintest flake of a pale rose tint would appear in the pearly haze, deepening and deepening, till at the vanishing point of the perspective a gorgeous scarlet-oak tree would rise, red enough to make a respectable appearance on the planet Mars. There was an audible stir breaking upon the silence of the solemn woods, the leaves were rustling together, and drops of moisture began to patter down upon the ground. The perspective grew gradually longer and longer, as the rising wind cleared the forest aisles; and when he reached the road that ran between the precipice and the steep ascent above, the clouds were falling apart, the mist had broken into thousands of fleecy white wreaths, clinging to the fantastically tinted foliage, and the sunlight was striking deep into the valley. The woods about the Settlement were all aglow with color, and sparkling with the tremulous drops that shimmered in the sun.

He stepped out into the thick mountain mist, hearing her sobs echo in his ears. His eyes felt hot, and his heart, filled with anger, was heavy. He had plotted and waited for his revenge with unwavering patience. Luck had been on his side, but now that it had finally come, strangely, it didn’t satisfy him. The burden in his pocket felt like a rock, and as he rode through the clouds on the mountaintop, the weight was nearly unbearable. Yet, despite this conflicting mix of feelings, he felt angrier with her than ever. He experienced a fierce thrill in possessing the things she had so willingly given up: “She just kicked me out like I was nothing more than that poison oak branch, for a herd of cattle and all that stuff, plus the house and land—because I don’t count Josiah in. It was the house and land she was really thinking about.” With each passing moment, the burden grew heavier. He hardly noticed what was around him as he mechanically followed the path, which was shrouded by mist just twenty yards ahead. The trees in the far distance appeared shadowy and colorless in the strange, unreal atmosphere, but occasionally, a hint of pale rose would emerge in the hazy light, deepening until, at the horizon, a brilliant scarlet oak tree stood out, vibrant enough to fit right in on Mars. A gentle rustle broke the stillness of the somber woods, the leaves whispered together, and drops of moisture began to fall to the ground. The view became longer as the rising wind swept through the forest paths, and when he reached the road that ran between the cliff and the steep incline above, the clouds began to separate, the mist broke into thousands of fluffy white wreaths clinging to the oddly colored foliage, and sunlight poured into the valley. The woods around the Settlement were vibrant with color and sparkling with trembling drops that shimmered in the light.

There was an unwonted air of animation and activity pervading the place. To the court-house fence were hitched several lean, forlorn horses, with shabby old saddles, or sometimes merely blankets; two or three wagons were standing among the stumps in the clearing. The door of the store was occupied by a coterie of mountaineers, talking with unusual vivacity of the most startling event that had agitated the whole country-side for a score of years,—the winning of Josiah Tait's house and land at Old Sledge. The same subject was rife among the choice spirits congregated in the court-house yard and about the portal of that temple of justice, and Wray's approach was watched with the keenest interest.

There was an unusual buzz of energy and activity in the area. Several thin, lonely horses were tied to the courthouse fence, sporting ragged old saddles or sometimes just blankets; a few wagons were parked among the stumps in the clearing. A group of mountaineers gathered at the store's door, animatedly discussing the most shocking event that had stirred the entire countryside in twenty years—the acquisition of Josiah Tait's house and land at Old Sledge. This topic was also the talk of the more discerning crowd gathered in the courthouse yard and around the entrance of that temple of justice, and people watched Wray's approach with great interest.

He dismounted, and walked slowly to the door, paused, and turning as with a sudden thought threw himself hastily upon his horse; he dashed across the clearing, galloped heedlessly down the long, steep slope, and the astounded loiterers heard the thunder of the hoofs as they beat at a break-neck speed upon the frail, rotten timbers of the bridge below.

He got off his horse and walked slowly to the door, stopped for a moment, and then, as if he had a sudden idea, jumped back on his horse. He raced across the clearing and galloped down the long, steep slope without a care, and the amazed onlookers heard the thunder of hooves pounding at a dangerous speed on the weak, rotting timbers of the bridge below.

Josiah Tait had put his troubles in to soak at the still-house, and this circumstance did not tend to improve the cheerfulness of his little, home when he returned in the afternoon. The few necessities left to the victims of Old Sledge had been packed together, and were in readiness to be transported with him, his wife, and mother-in-law to Melinda's old home on Scrub-Oak Ridge, when her brother should drive his wagon over for them the next morning.

Josiah Tait had left his problems to stew at the distillery, and this didn’t help the mood of his small home when he got back in the afternoon. The few things left for the victims of Old Sledge had been gathered together and were ready to be taken with him, his wife, and mother-in-law to Melinda's old house on Scrub-Oak Ridge when her brother came to pick them up in his wagon the next morning.

They never knew how to account for it. While the forlorn family were sitting before the smoking fire, as the day waned, the door was suddenly burst open, and Budd Wray strode in impetuously. A brilliant flame shot up the chimney, and the deed which Josiah Tait had that day executed was a cinder among the logs. He went as he came, and the mystery was never explained.

They never figured it out. As the sad family sat in front of the smoking fire with the day winding down, the door suddenly swung open, and Budd Wray walked in boldly. A bright flame shot up the chimney, and the act that Josiah Tait had carried out that day turned to ashes among the logs. He left as quickly as he came, and the mystery remained unsolved.

There was, however, "a sayin' goin' 'bout the mounting ez how Josiah an' Melindy jes' 'ticed him, somehow 'nother, ter thar house, an' held him, an' tuk the deed away from him tergether. An' they made him send back the critters an' the corn what he done won away from 'em." This version came to his ears, and was never denied. He was more ashamed of relenting in his vengeance than of the wild legend that he had been worsted in a tussle with Melinda and Josiah.

There was, however, "a saying going around about how Josiah and Melindy somehow tricked him into their house, held him, and took the deed away from him together. And they made him return the animals and the corn he had won from them." This version reached him, and he never denied it. He felt more ashamed of backing down on his revenge than of the crazy story that he had lost a fight with Melinda and Josiah.

And since the night of Budd Wray's barren success the playing of Old Sledge has become a lost art at the Settlement.

And since the night of Budd Wray's disappointing win, playing Old Sledge has become a forgotten skill at the Settlement.


THE STAR IN THE VALLEY.

He first saw it in the twilight of a clear October evening. As the earliest planet sprang into the sky, an answering gleam shone red amid the glooms in the valley. A star too it seemed. And later, when the myriads of the fairer, whiter lights of a moonless night were all athrob in the great concave vault bending to the hills, there was something very impressive in that solitary star of earth, changeless and motionless beneath the ever-changing skies.

He first saw it in the soft light of a clear October evening. As the first planet appeared in the sky, a responding red glow shone in the shadows of the valley. It looked like a star too. Later, when the countless brighter, whiter lights of a moonless night were sparkling in the vast dome above the hills, there was something really striking about that lone star on earth, steady and unmoving beneath the constantly shifting skies.

Chevis never tired of looking at it. Somehow it broke the spell that draws all eyes heavenward on starry nights. He often strolled with his cigar at dusk down to the verge of the crag, and sat for hours gazing at it and vaguely speculating about it. That spark seemed to have kindled all the soul and imagination within him, although he knew well enough its prosaic source, for he had once questioned the gawky mountaineer whose services he had secured as guide through the forest solitudes during this hunting expedition.

Chevis never got tired of looking at it. Somehow it broke the spell that pulls everyone's eyes up to the stars on clear nights. He often took evening strolls with his cigar down to the edge of the cliff and sat there for hours, staring at it and idly pondering its meaning. That spark seemed to ignite all the soul and imagination inside him, even though he knew its everyday origin very well, since he had once asked the awkward mountaineer he hired as a guide through the quiet forest during this hunting trip.

"That thar spark in the valley?" Hi Bates had replied, removing the pipe from his lips and emitting a cloud of strong tobacco smoke. "'Tain't nuthin' but the light in Jerry Shaw's house, 'bout haffen mile from the foot of the mounting. Ye pass that thar house when ye goes on the Christel road, what leads down the mounting off the Backbone. That's Jerry Shaw's house,—that's what it is. He's a blacksmith, an' he kin shoe a horse toler'ble well when he ain't drunk, ez he mos'ly is."

"That spark in the valley?" Hi Bates said, taking the pipe out of his mouth and blowing out a cloud of thick tobacco smoke. "It's just the light in Jerry Shaw's house, about half a mile from the foot of the mountain. You pass that house when you take the Christel road, which goes down the mountain off the Backbone. That's Jerry Shaw's house—that’s what it is. He’s a blacksmith, and he can shoe a horse pretty well when he’s not drunk, which is most of the time."

"Perhaps that is the light from the forge," suggested Chevis.

"Maybe that's the light from the forge," suggested Chevis.

"That thar forge ain't run more 'n half the day, let 'lone o' nights. I hev never hearn tell on Jerry Shaw a-workin' o' nights,—nor in the daytime nuther, ef he kin git shet of it. No sech no 'count critter 'twixt hyar an' the Settlemint."

"That forge hasn’t been running more than half the day, let alone at night. I’ve never heard of Jerry Shaw working at night—or during the day either, if he can avoid it. No good-for-nothing around here between us and the Settlement."

So spake Chevis's astronomer. Seeing the star even through the prosaic lens of stern reality did not detract from its poetic aspect. Chevis never failed to watch for it. The first faint glinting in the azure evening sky sent his eyes to that red reflection suddenly aglow in the valley; even when the mists rose above it and hid it from him, he gazed at the spot where it had disappeared, feeling a calm satisfaction to know that it was still shining beneath the cloud-curtain. He encouraged himself in this bit of sentimentality. These unique eventide effects seemed a fitting sequel to the picturesque day, passed in hunting deer, with horn and hounds, through the gorgeous autumnal forest; or perchance in the more exciting sport in some rocky gorge with a bear at bay and the frenzied pack around him; or in the idyllic pleasures of bird-shooting with a thoroughly-trained dog; and coming back in the crimson sunset to a well-appointed tent and a smoking supper of venison or wild turkey,—the trophies of his skill. The vague dreaminess of his cigar and the charm of that bright bit of color in the night-shrouded valley added a sort of romantic zest to these primitive enjoyments, and ministered to that keen susceptibility of impressions which Reginald Chevis considered eminently characteristic of a highly wrought mind and nature.

So spoke Chevis's astronomer. Seeing the star, even through the straightforward lens of harsh reality, didn’t take away from its poetic nature. Chevis always looked out for it. The first faint glimmer in the blue evening sky sent his eyes to that red reflection suddenly shining in the valley; even when the mists rose above it and concealed it from view, he stared at the spot where it had vanished, feeling a sense of calm satisfaction knowing it was still glowing beneath the cloud cover. He reassured himself in this bit of sentimentality. These unique evening effects felt like a fitting end to the picturesque day spent hunting deer, with horns and hounds, through the stunning autumn forest; or perhaps in the more thrilling pursuit in a rocky gorge with a bear cornered and the frantic pack surrounding it; or in the simple pleasures of bird shooting with a well-trained dog; and returning in the crimson sunset to a well-furnished tent and a hot meal of venison or wild turkey—the trophies of his skill. The vague dreaminess of his cigar and the charm of that bright splash of color in the night-covered valley added a touch of romantic excitement to these basic pleasures and catered to that keen sensitivity to impressions that Reginald Chevis considered a defining trait of a finely tuned mind and nature.

He said nothing of his fancies, however, to his fellow sportsman, Ned Varney, nor to the mountaineer. Infinite as was the difference between these two in mind and cultivation, his observation of both had convinced him that they were alike incapable of appreciating and comprehending his delicate and dainty musings. Varney was essentially a man of this world; his mental and moral conclusions had been adopted in a calm, mercantile spirit, as giving the best return for the outlay, and the market was not liable to fluctuations. And the mountaineer could go no further than the prosaic fact of the light in Jerry Shaw's house. Thus Reginald Chevis was wont to sit in contemplative silence on the crag until his cigar was burnt out, and afterward to lie awake deep in the night, listening to the majestic lyric welling up from the thousand nocturnal voices of these mountain wilds.

He didn’t share any of his thoughts with his fellow sportsman, Ned Varney, or the mountaineer. Even though there was a huge difference between the two in intellect and education, he had realized that neither of them could appreciate or understand his subtle and refined ideas. Varney was fundamentally a practical man; his mental and moral beliefs were shaped in a straightforward, businesslike way, aiming for the best returns with minimal risk. On the other hand, the mountaineer could only see the plain reality of the light in Jerry Shaw's house. So, Reginald Chevis often found himself sitting quietly on the cliff until his cigar went out, and later lying awake late into the night, listening to the powerful melody rising from the myriad nighttime sounds of the mountain wilderness.

During the day, in place of the red light a gauzy little curl of smoke was barely visible, the only sign or suggestion of human habitation to be seen from the crag in all the many miles of long, narrow valley and parallel tiers of ranges. Sometimes Chevis and Varney caught sight of it from lower down on the mountain side, whence was faintly distinguishable the little log-house and certain vague lines marking a rectangular inclosure; near at hand, too, the forge, silent and smokeless. But it did not immediately occur to either of them to theorize concerning its inmates and their lives in this lonely place; for a time, not even to the speculative Chevis. As to Varney, he gave his whole mind to the matter in hand,—his gun, his dog, his game,—and his note-book was as systematic and as romantic as the ledger at home.

During the day, instead of the red light, a thin wisp of smoke was barely visible, the only hint of human presence to be seen from the cliff in all the many miles of long, narrow valley and parallel mountain ranges. Sometimes Chevis and Varney could spot it from lower down the mountainside, where they could faintly make out the little log cabin and some vague lines indicating a rectangular enclosure; nearby, too, was the forge, quiet and without smoke. But neither of them immediately thought about the people living there and their lives in this remote location; for a while, not even the curious Chevis. As for Varney, he focused entirely on what was at hand—his gun, his dog, his game—and his notebook was as organized and as adventurous as the ledger back home.

It might be accounted an event in the history of that log-hut when Reginald Chevis, after riding past it eighty yards or so, chanced one day to meet a country girl walking toward the house. She did not look up, and he caught only an indistinct glimpse of her face. She spoke to him, however, as she went by, which is the invariable custom with the inhabitants of the sequestered nooks among the encompassing mountains, whether meeting stranger or acquaintance. He lifted his hat in return, with that punctilious courtesy which he made a point of according to persons of low degree. In another moment she had passed down the narrow sandy road, overhung with gigantic trees, and, at a deft, even pace, hardly slackened as she traversed the great log extending across the rushing stream, she made her way up the opposite hill, and disappeared gradually over its brow.

It might be considered a notable moment in the history of that log cabin when Reginald Chevis, after riding about eighty yards past it, happened to encounter a country girl walking toward the house. She didn’t look up, and he only caught a brief glimpse of her face. However, she spoke to him as she passed by, which is the usual custom for people living in the secluded areas among the surrounding mountains, whether they are meeting a stranger or someone they know. He tipped his hat in response, with that polite formality he always showed to people of lower status. In a moment, she had walked down the narrow sandy road, shaded by enormous trees, and at a steady, even pace—barely slowing down as she crossed the large log spanning the rushing stream—she made her way up the opposite hill and gradually disappeared over its crest.

The expression of her face, half-seen though it was, had attracted his attention. He rode slowly along, meditating. "Did she go into Shaw's house, just around the curve of the road?" he wondered. "Is she Shaw's daughter, or some visiting neighbor?"

The look on her face, even though it was only partly visible, caught his eye. He rode slowly, deep in thought. "Did she go into Shaw's house, right around the bend?" he wondered. "Is she Shaw's daughter, or just a visiting neighbor?"

That night he looked with a new interest at the red star, set like a jewel in the floating mists of the valley.

That night, he gazed at the red star with fresh curiosity, its brilliance shining like a jewel in the misty valley.

"Do you know," he asked of Hi Bates, when the three men were seated, after supper, around the camp-fire, which sent lurid tongues of flame and a thousand bright sparks leaping high in the darkness, and illumined the vistas of the woods on every side, save where the sudden crag jutted over the valley,—"Do you know whether Jerry Shaw has a daughter,—a young girl?"

"Do you know," he asked Hi Bates, while the three men were sitting around the campfire after dinner, which sent bright flames and a thousand sparks shooting up into the darkness, lighting up the trees all around, except where the steep rock towered over the valley, "Do you know if Jerry Shaw has a daughter—a young girl?"

"Ye-es," drawled Hi Bates, disparagingly, "he hev."

"Yeah," Hi Bates said with a dismissive tone, "he has."

A pause ensued. The star in the valley was blotted from sight; the rising mists had crept to the verge of the crag; nay, in the undergrowth fringing the mountain's brink, there were softly clinging white wreaths.

A pause followed. The star in the valley was hidden from view; the rising mist had reached the edge of the cliff; indeed, in the bushes near the mountain's edge, there were gently hanging white wreaths.

"Is she pretty?" asked Chevis.

"Is she pretty?" Chevis asked.

"Waal, no, she ain't," said Hi Bates, decisively. "She's a pore, no 'count critter." Then he added, as if he were afraid of being misapprehended, "Not ez thar is any harm in the gal, ye onderstand. She's a mighty good, saft-spoken, quiet sort o' gal, but she's a pore, white-faced, slim little critter. She looks like she hain't got no sort'n grit in her. She makes me think o' one o' them slim little slips o' willow every time nor I sees her. She hain't got long ter live, I reckon," he concluded, dismally.

"Waal, no, she isn't," said Hi Bates, firmly. "She's a poor, worthless person." Then he added, as if he was worried about being misunderstood, "Not that there's anything wrong with the girl, you understand. She's a really nice, soft-spoken, quiet kind of girl, but she's a poor, pale-faced, slender little thing. She looks like she doesn't have any kind of strength in her. Every time I see her, she reminds me of one of those slender little willow branches. I don't think she's got long to live, I guess," he finished, gloomily.

Reginald Chevis asked him no more questions about Jerry Shaw's daughter.

Reginald Chevis didn’t ask him any more questions about Jerry Shaw's daughter.

Not long afterward, when Chevis was hunting through the deep woods about the base of the mountain near the Christel road, his horse happened to cast a shoe. He congratulated himself upon his proximity to the forge, for there was a possibility that the blacksmith might be at work; according to the account which Hi Bates had given of Jerry Shaw's habits, there were half a dozen chances against it. But the shop was at no great distance, and he set out to find his way back to the Christel road, guided by sundry well-known landmarks on the mountain side: certain great crags hanging above the tree-tops, showing in grander sublimity through the thinning foliage, or beetling bare and grim; a dismantled and deserted hovel, the red-berried vines twining amongst the rotting logs; the full flow of a tumultuous stream making its last leap down a precipice eighty feet high, with yeasty, maddening waves below and a rainbow-crowned crystal sheet above. And here again the curves of the woodland road. As the sound of the falling water grew softer and softer in the distance, till it was hardly more than a drowsy murmur, the faint vibrations of a far-off anvil rang upon the air. Welcome indeed to Chevis, for however enticing might be the long rambles through the redolent October woods with dog and gun, he had no mind to tramp up the mountain to his tent, five miles distant, leading the resisting horse all the way. The afternoon was so clear and so still that the metallic sound penetrated far through the quiet forest. At every curve of the road he expected to see the log-cabin with its rail fence, and beyond the low-hanging chestnut-tree, half its branches resting upon the roof of the little shanty of a blacksmith's shop. After many windings a sharp turn brought him full upon the humble dwelling, with its background of primeval woods and the purpling splendors of the western hills. The chickens were going to roost in a stunted cedar-tree just without the door; an incredibly old man, feeble and bent, sat dozing in the lingering sunshine on the porch; a girl, with a pail on her head, was crossing the road and going down a declivity toward a spring which bubbled up in a cleft of the gigantic rocks that were piled one above another, rising to a great height. A mingled breath of cool, dripping water, sweet-scented fern, and pungent mint greeted him as he passed it. He did not see the girl's face, for she had left the road before he went by, but he recognized the slight figure, with that graceful poise acquired by the prosaic habit of carrying weights upon the head, and its lithe, swaying beauty reminded him of the mountaineer's comparison,—a slip of willow.

Not long after, when Chevis was exploring the dense woods at the base of the mountain near the Christel road, his horse happened to lose a shoe. He felt fortunate to be close to the blacksmith's shop, hoping the smith might be working; according to Hi Bates, there was a good chance he would not be. But the shop wasn't too far away, so he started making his way back to the Christel road, guided by familiar landmarks on the mountainside: certain massive rocks towering above the treetops, appearing even more majestic through the thinning foliage, or rugged and bare; a rundown and abandoned hut, with red-berried vines wrapped around the rotting logs; the rushing stream making its final drop down an eighty-foot cliff, creating churning, frothy waves below and a shimmering rainbow crown above. Once again, he navigated the twists of the woodland path. As the sound of the waterfall faded into a soft murmur in the distance, he heard the faint clang of a far-off anvil. This was certainly welcome news for Chevis because, as enticing as long walks through the fragrant October woods with his dog and gun would be, he didn't want to hike up the mountain to his tent, five miles away, dragging along a stubborn horse. The afternoon was so clear and still that the metallic sound could be heard far into the peaceful forest. At every bend in the path, he expected to see the log cabin with its rail fence, and beyond the low-hanging chestnut tree, with half its branches resting on the roof of the blacksmith's little shop. After several twists and turns, a sharp curve finally revealed the humble home, set against the backdrop of ancient woods and the purple glow of the western hills. Chickens were settling in for the night on a stunted cedar tree just outside the door; an incredibly old man, frail and hunched, was dozing in the fading sunshine on the porch; a girl balancing a pail on her head was crossing the road and heading down a slope toward a spring bubbling in a crevice of the towering rocks stacked high above. A mix of cool, dripping water, sweet fern, and fragrant mint greeted him as he passed. He didn’t see the girl’s face because she had stepped off the road before he approached, but he recognized her slender figure, with that graceful stance formed by the everyday task of carrying things on her head, and her lithe, swaying beauty reminded him of how mountaineers compare her to a willow branch.

And now, under the chestnut-tree, in anxious converse with Jerry Shaw, who came out hammer in hand from the anvil, concerning the shoe to be put on Strathspey's left fore-foot, and the problematic damage sustained since the accident. Chevis's own theory occupied some minutes in expounding, and so absorbed his attention that he did not observe, until the horse was fairly under the blacksmith's hands, that, despite Jerry Shaw's unaccustomed industry, this was by no means a red-letter day in his habitual dissipation. He trembled for Strathspey, but it was too late now to interfere. Jerry Shaw was in that stage of drunkenness which is greatly accented by an elaborate affectation of sobriety. His desire that Chevis should consider him perfectly sober was abundantly manifest in his rigidly steady gait, the preternatural gravity in his bloodshot eyes, his sparingness of speech, and the earnestness with which he enunciated the acquiescent formulæ which had constituted his share of the conversation. Now and then, controlling his faculties by a great effort, he looked hard at Chevis to discover what doubts might be expressed in his face concerning the genuineness of this staid deportment; and Chevis presently found it best to affect too. Believing that the blacksmith's histrionic attempts in the rôle of sober artisan were occupying his attention more than the paring of Strathspey's hoof, which he held between his knees on his leather apron, while the horse danced an animated measure on the other three feet, Chevis assumed an appearance of indifference, and strolled away into the shop. He looked about him, carelessly, at the horseshoes hanging on a rod in the rude aperture that served as window, at the wagon-tires, the plowshares, the glowing fire of the forge. The air within was unpleasantly close, and he soon found himself again in the door-way.

And now, under the chestnut tree, in anxious conversation with Jerry Shaw, who came out with a hammer in hand from the anvil, they discussed the shoe to be put on Strathspey's left forefoot and the damage incurred since the accident. Chevis explained his own theory for several minutes, so absorbed in his thoughts that he didn’t notice, until the horse was already in the blacksmith's care, that despite Jerry Shaw's unusual effort, this was definitely not a good day for his usual drunkenness. He worried for Strathspey, but it was too late to intervene. Jerry Shaw was at that stage of drunkenness that’s emphasized by a forced attempt at appearing sober. He clearly wanted Chevis to see him as completely sober, as shown by his rigidly steady walk, the unnatural seriousness in his bloodshot eyes, his minimal speech, and the earnestness with which he repeated the agreeable phrases that made up his part of the conversation. Occasionally, struggling to keep himself in check, he stared hard at Chevis to gauge if any doubts about his sincerity showed on Chevis's face, and Chevis soon figured it was best to play along. Believing that the blacksmith's exaggerated efforts to act as a sober craftsman were taking his attention away from the hoof trimming he was doing on Strathspey, who was shifting restlessly on the other three feet, Chevis pretended to be indifferent and wandered into the shop. He looked around casually at the horseshoes hanging on a bar in the makeshift window, at the wagon wheels, the plowshares, and the glowing fire in the forge. The air inside was uncomfortably stuffy, and he quickly found himself back in the doorway.

"Can I get some water here?" he asked, as Jerry Shaw reëntered, and began hammering vigorously at the shoe destined for Strathspey.

"Can I get some water here?" he asked as Jerry Shaw came back in and started hammering hard on the shoe meant for Strathspey.

The resonant music ceased for a moment. The solemn, drunken eyes were slowly turned upon the visitor, and the elaborate affectation of sobriety was again obtrusively apparent in the blacksmith's manner. He rolled up more closely the blue-checked homespun sleeve from his corded hammer-arm, twitched nervously at the single suspender that supported his copper-colored jeans trousers, readjusted his leather apron hanging about his neck, and, casting upon Chevis another glance, replete with a challenging gravity, fell to work upon the anvil, every heavy and well-directed blow telling with the precision of machinery.

The resonant music paused for a moment. The serious, slightly tipsy eyes slowly focused on the visitor, and the overly dramatic attempt at sobriety became clearly evident in the blacksmith's manner. He rolled up the blue-checked homespun sleeve from his strong, calloused arm, fidgeted with the single suspender holding up his copper-colored jeans, adjusted his leather apron around his neck, and, casting another glance at Chevis, filled with a serious challenge, got to work on the anvil, each heavy, well-aimed strike hitting with the precision of machinery.

The question had hardly been heard before forgotten. At the next interval, when he was going out to fit the horse, Chevis repeated his request.

The question was barely noticed before it was forgotten. At the next opportunity, when he was heading out to harness the horse, Chevis brought up his request again.

"Water, did ye say?" asked Jerry Shaw, looking at him with narrowing eyelids, as if to shut out all other contemplation that he might grapple with this problem. "Thar's no fraish water hyar, but ye kin go yander ter the house and ax fur some; or," he added, shading his eyes from the sunlight with his broad, blackened hand, and looking at the huge wall of stone beyond the road, "ye kin go down yander ter the spring, an' ax that thar gal fur a drink."

"Water, did you say?" asked Jerry Shaw, narrowing his eyes as if to block out everything else so he could focus on this issue. "There's no fresh water here, but you can go over to the house and ask for some; or," he added, shielding his eyes from the sunlight with his big, darkened hand and glancing at the large stone wall across the road, "you can go down to the spring and ask that girl for a drink."

Chevis took his way, in the last rays of sunshine, across the road and down the declivity in the direction indicated by the blacksmith. A cool gray shadow fell upon him from the heights of the great rocks, as he neared them; the narrow path leading from the road grew dank and moist, and presently his feet were sunk in the still green and odorous water-loving weeds, the clumps of fern, and the pungent mint. He did not notice the soft verdure; he did not even see the beautiful vines that hung from earth-filled niches among the rocks, and lent to their forbidding aspect something of a smiling grace; their picturesque grouping, where they had fallen apart to show this sparkling fountain of bright up-springing water, was all lost upon his artistic perceptions. His eyes were fixed on the girl standing beside the spring, her pail filled, but waiting, with a calm, expectant look on her face, as she saw him approaching.

Chevis made his way, in the last rays of sunlight, across the road and down the slope pointed out by the blacksmith. A cool gray shadow fell on him from the heights of the massive rocks as he got closer; the narrow path leading from the road became damp and moist, and soon his feet were sunk in the still green and fragrant water-loving weeds, the patches of fern, and the strong-smelling mint. He didn’t notice the soft greenery; he didn’t even see the beautiful vines that hung from earth-filled niches in the rocks, giving their harsh appearance a touch of cheerful elegance; their picturesque arrangement, where they had separated to reveal the sparkling fountain of bright, springing water, was completely lost on his artistic sensibilities. His eyes were focused on the girl standing beside the spring, her pail filled, but waiting with a calm, expectant look on her face as she saw him coming.

No creature could have been more coarsely habited: a green cotton dress, faded to the faintest hue; rough shoes, just visible beneath her skirts; a dappled gray and brown calico sun-bonnet, thrown aside on a moss-grown bowlder near at hand. But it seemed as if the wild nature about her had been generous to this being toward whom life and fortune had played the niggard. There were opaline lights in her dreamy eyes which one sees nowhere save in sunset clouds that brood above dark hills; the golden sunbeams, all faded from the landscape, had left a perpetual reflection in her bronze hair; there was a subtle affinity between her and other pliant, swaying, graceful young things, waving in the mountain breezes, fed by the rain and the dew. She was hardly more human to Chevis than certain lissome little woodland flowers, the very names of which he did not know,—pure white, star-shaped, with a faint green line threading its way through each of the five delicate petals; he had seen them embellishing the banks of lonely pools, or growing in dank, marshy places in the middle of the unfrequented road, where perhaps it had been mended in a primitive way with a few rotting rails.

No creature could have looked more roughly dressed: a green cotton dress, faded to the lightest shade; worn shoes, barely noticeable beneath her skirts; a dappled gray and brown calico sunbonnet, tossed aside on a moss-covered rock nearby. But it seemed as if the wild nature around her had been generous to this person whom life and fortune had shortchanged. There were shimmering lights in her dreamy eyes that one sees only in the sunset clouds hovering over dark hills; the golden sunlight, all faded from the landscape, had left a lasting glow in her bronze hair; there was a subtle connection between her and other delicate, swaying, graceful young things, dancing in the mountain breezes, nourished by the rain and dew. To Chevis, she was hardly more human than certain flexible little woodland flowers, whose names he didn’t even know—pure white, star-shaped, with a faint green line running through each of the five delicate petals; he had seen them decorating the edges of lonely pools or growing in damp, marshy spots in the middle of a seldom-used road, where it may have been patched up in a basic way with a few rotting rails.

"May I trouble you to give me some water?" asked Chevis, prosaically enough. She neither smiled nor replied. She took the gourd from the pail, dipped it into the lucent depths of the spring, handed it to him, and stood awaiting its return when he should have finished. The cool, delicious water was drained, and he gave the gourd back. "I am much obliged," he said.

"Could you please get me some water?" Chevis asked, rather plainly. She didn’t smile or respond. She took the gourd from the bucket, dipped it into the clear water of the spring, handed it to him, and stood there waiting for it back once he was done. He drained the cool, refreshing water and handed the gourd back. "Thank you very much," he said.

"Ye're welcome," she replied, in a slow, singing monotone. Had the autumn winds taught her voice that melancholy cadence?

"You're welcome," she replied, in a slow, melodic tone. Had the autumn winds taught her voice that sad rhythm?

Chevis would have liked to hear her speak again, but the gulf between his station and hers—so undreamed of by her (for the differences of caste are absolutely unknown to the independent mountaineers), so patent to him—could be bridged by few ideas. They had so little in common that for a moment he could think of nothing to say. His cogitation suggested only the inquiry, "Do you live here?" indicating the little house on the other side of the road.

Chevis would have liked to hear her speak again, but the gap between his station and hers—completely unrecognized by her (because the differences in social class are totally unknown to the independent mountaineers), so obvious to him—could be crossed by only a few thoughts. They had so little in common that for a moment he struggled to think of anything to say. All he could come up with was, "Do you live here?" pointing to the little house on the other side of the road.

"Yes," she chanted in the same monotone, "I lives hyar."

"Yeah," she said in the same flat voice, "I live here."

She turned to lift the brimming pail. Chevis spoke again: "Do you always stay at home? Do you never go anywhere?"

She turned to pick up the full bucket. Chevis spoke again: "Do you always stay at home? Do you never go out anywhere?"

Her eyes rested upon him, with a slight surprise looking out from among their changing lights. "No," she said, after a pause; "I hev no call to go nowhar ez I knows on."

Her eyes were fixed on him, with a hint of surprise shining through their shifting colors. "No," she said after a moment; "I have no reason to go anywhere that I know of."

She placed the pail on her head, took the dappled sun-bonnet in her hand, and went along the path with the assured, steady gait and the graceful backward poise of the figure that precluded the possibility of spilling a drop from the vessel.

She put the bucket on her head, grabbed the patterned sun hat in her hand, and walked down the path with a confident, steady stride and the elegant backward tilt of her body that made it impossible to spill a drop from the container.

He had been touched in a highly romantic way by the sweet beauty of this little woodland flower. It seemed hard that so perfect a thing of its kind should be wasted here, unseen by more appreciative eyes than those of bird, or rabbit, or the equally uncultured human beings about her; and it gave him a baffling sense of the mysterious injustice of life to reflect upon the difference in her lot and that of others of her age in higher spheres. He went thoughtfully through the closing shadows to the shop, mounted the re-shod Strathspey, and rode along the rugged ascent of the mountain, gravely pondering on worldly inequalities.

He had been deeply moved by the sweet beauty of this little woodland flower. It seemed unfair that such a perfect thing should be wasted here, unnoticed by anyone more appreciative than the birds, rabbits, or the equally unrefined humans around her; and it left him with a confusing sense of the unfairness of life when he thought about how different her situation was compared to others her age in better circumstances. He walked thoughtfully through the fading light to the shop, got onto the newly shod Strathspey, and rode up the rough slope of the mountain, seriously contemplating the inequalities of the world.

He saw her often afterward, although he spoke to her again but once. He sometimes stopped as he came and went on the Christel road, and sat chatting with the old man, her grandfather, on the porch, sunshiny days, or lounged in the barn-like door of Jerry Shaw's shop talking to the half-drunken blacksmith. He piqued himself on the readiness with which he became interested in these people, entered into their thoughts and feelings, obtained a comprehensive idea of the machinery of life in this wilderness,—more complicated than one could readily believe, looking upon the changeless face of the wide, unpopulated expanse of mountain ranges stretching so far beneath that infinite sky. They appealed to him from the basis of their common humanity, he thought, and the pleasure of watching the development of the common human attributes in this peculiar and primitive state of society never palled upon him. He regarded with contempt Varney's frivolous displeasure and annoyance because of Hi Bates's utter insensibility to the difference in their social position, and the necessity of either acquiescing in the supposititious equality or dispensing with the invaluable services of the proud and independent mountaineer; because of the patois of the untutored people, to hear which, Varney was wont to declare, set his teeth on edge; because of their narrow prejudices, their mental poverty, their idle shiftlessness, their uncouth dress and appearance. Chevis flattered himself that he entertained a broader view. He had not even a subacute idea that he looked upon these people and their inner life only as picturesque bits of the mental and moral landscape; that it was an æsthetic and theoretical pleasure their contemplation afforded him; that he was as far as ever from the basis of common humanity.

He often saw her afterward, though he only spoke to her one more time. He would sometimes stop on the Christel road and sit chatting with her grandfather, the old man, on sunny days, or hang around in the doorway of Jerry Shaw's shop talking to the half-drunk blacksmith. He took pride in how easily he became interested in these people, understanding their thoughts and feelings, and getting a clear sense of the complex reality of life in this wilderness—more complicated than one would think when looking at the unchanged expanse of mountain ranges beneath that endless sky. He felt a connection with them rooted in their shared humanity, and he never got tired of seeing how common human traits developed in this unique and primitive society. He looked down on Varney's petty displeasure and irritation over Hi Bates's complete indifference to the differences in their social status, and the need to either accept the imagined equality or forgo the valuable help of the proud and independent mountaineer; he dismissed Varney's complaints about the way the uneducated people spoke, which he claimed grated on his nerves; and he disregarded their narrow-mindedness, lack of education, laziness, and awkward appearance. Chevis convinced himself that he had a broader perspective. He didn’t realize that he viewed these people and their inner lives only as colorful pieces of a mental and moral landscape; that his enjoyment of observing them was purely aesthetic and theoretical; that he was still far from truly understanding their shared humanity.

Sometimes while he talked to the old man on the sunlit porch, the "slip o' willow" sat in the door-way, listening too, but never speaking. Sometimes he would find her with her father at the forge, her fair, ethereal face illumined with an alien and fluctuating brilliancy, shining and fading as the breath of the fire rose and fell. He came to remember that face so well that in a sorry sketch-book, where nothing else was finished, there were several laborious pages lighted up with a faint reflection of its beauty. But he was as much interested perhaps, though less poetically, in that massive figure, the idle blacksmith. He looked at it all from an ideal point of view. The star in the valley was only a brilliant, set in the night landscape, and suggested a unique and pleasing experience.

Sometimes, while he chatted with the old man on the sunlit porch, the "slip o' willow" sat in the doorway, listening too, but never speaking. Occasionally, he would find her with her father at the forge, her delicate, otherworldly face glowing with a strange, shifting brightness, shining and fading as the fire's breath rose and fell. He came to remember that face so well that in a worn sketchbook, where nothing else was finished, there were several painstaking pages illuminated by a faint reflection of its beauty. But he was just as intrigued, perhaps less romantically, by that solid figure of the idle blacksmith. He viewed it all from an ideal perspective. The star in the valley was just a brilliant gem in the night landscape, suggesting a unique and enjoyable experience.

How should he imagine what luminous and wistful eyes were turned upward to where another star burned,—the light of his camp-fire on the crag; what pathetic, beautiful eyes had learned to watch and wait for that red gleam high on the mountain's brow,—hardly below the stars in heaven it seemed! How could he dream of the strange, vague, unreasoning trouble with which his idle comings and goings had clouded that young life, a trouble as strange, as vague, as vast, as the limitless sky above her.

How should he picture the bright and yearning eyes looking up to where another star shone—reflecting the light of his campfire on the rock; what sad, beautiful eyes had learned to watch and wait for that red glow high on the mountain's edge—barely below the stars in the sky! How could he conceive of the strange, vague, unexplainable turmoil that his aimless arrivals and departures had cast over that young life, a turmoil as strange, as vague, as immense as the endless sky above her.

She understood him as little. As she sat in the open door-way, with the flare of the fire behind her, and gazed at the red light shining on the crag, she had no idea of the heights of worldly differences that divided them, more insurmountable than precipices and flying chutes of mountain torrents, and chasms and fissures of the wild ravine: she knew nothing of the life he had left, and of its rigorous artificialities and gradations of wealth and estimation. And with a heart full of pitiable unrealities she looked up at the glittering simulacrum of a star on the crag, while he gazed down on the ideal star in the valley.

She understood him just as little. As she sat in the open doorway, with the glow of the fire behind her, and looked at the red light shining on the rock, she had no idea of the deep divides in their worlds that separated them, more impossible to cross than cliffs and rushing streams and gaps in the wild ravine. She knew nothing of the life he had left behind, with its strict superficialities and layers of wealth and status. With a heart full of sad illusions, she looked up at the shining fake star on the rock, while he looked down at the real star in the valley.

The weeks had worn deep into November. Chevis and Varney were thinking of going home; indeed, they talked of breaking camp day after to-morrow, and saying a long adieu to wood and mountain and stream. They had had an abundance of good sport and a surfeit of roughing it. They would go back to town and town avocations invigorated by their holiday, and taking with them a fresh and exhilarating recollection of the forest life left so far behind.

The weeks had moved deep into November. Chevis and Varney were considering going home; in fact, they talked about breaking camp the day after tomorrow and saying a long goodbye to the woods, mountains, and streams. They had enjoyed plenty of good times and had enough roughing it. They would return to the city and their usual routines refreshed by their holiday, taking with them a fresh and exciting memory of the forest life they had left behind.

It was near dusk, on a dull, cold evening, when Chevis dismounted before the door of the blacksmith's little log-cabin. The chestnut-tree hung desolate and bare on the eaves of the forge; the stream rushed by in swift gray whirlpools under a sullen gray sky; the gigantic wall of broken rocks loomed gloomy and sinister on the opposite side of the road,—not so much as a withered leaf of all their vines clung to their rugged surfaces. The mountains had changed color: the nearest ranges were black with the myriads of the grim black branches of the denuded forest; far away they stretched in parallel lines, rising tier above tier, and showing numberless gradations of a dreary, neutral tint, which grew ever fainter in the distance, till merged in the uniform tone of the sombre sky.

It was close to dusk on a dull, cold evening when Chevis got off his horse in front of the blacksmith's little log cabin. The chestnut tree stood bare and desolate above the forge; the stream rushed by in swift gray whirlpools beneath a gloomy gray sky. The massive wall of broken rocks loomed dark and menacing on the other side of the road, with not a single withered leaf from their vines clinging to their rough surfaces. The mountains had changed color: the nearest ranges were black with the countless grim branches of the bare forest; they stretched far away in parallel lines, rising tier upon tier, displaying countless shades of a dreary, neutral color that faded further into the distance until it blended into the uniform tone of the dark sky.

Indoors it was certainly more cheerful. A hickory fire dispensed alike warmth and light. The musical whir of a spinning-wheel added its unique charm. From the rafters depended numberless strings of bright red pepper-pods and ears of pop-corn; hanks of woolen and cotton yarn; bunches of medicinal herbs; brown gourds and little bags of seeds. On rude shelves against the wall were ranged cooking utensils, drinking vessels, etc., all distinguished by that scrupulous cleanliness which is a marked feature of the poor hovels of these mountaineers, and in striking contrast to the poor hovels of lowlanders. The rush-bottomed chairs, drawn in a semicircle before the rough, ill-adjusted stones which did duty as hearth, were occupied by several men, who seemed to be making the blacksmith a prolonged visit; various members of the family were humbly seated on sundry inverted domestic articles, such as wash-tubs, and splint-baskets made of white oak. There was circulating among Jerry Shaw's friends a flat bottle, facetiously denominated "tickler," readily emptied, but as readily replenished from a keg in the corner. Like the widow's cruse of oil, that keg was miraculously never empty. The fact of a still near by in the wild ravine might suggest a reason for its perennial flow. It was a good strong article of apple-brandy, and its effects were beginning to be distinctly visible.

Indoors, it was definitely cheerier. A hickory fire provided both warmth and light. The musical hum of a spinning wheel added its own charm. From the rafters hung countless strings of bright red pepper pods and ears of popcorn, hanks of wool and cotton yarn, bundles of medicinal herbs, brown gourds, and little bags of seeds. On rough shelves against the wall were cooking utensils, drinking vessels, and more, all marked by the scrupulous cleanliness that is a notable feature of the modest homes of these mountaineers, in sharp contrast to the poor homes of the lowlanders. The rush-bottomed chairs were arranged in a semicircle around the rough, poorly fitted stones that served as a hearth, occupied by several men who seemed to be making a long visit to the blacksmith; various family members were seated on makeshift chairs like upside-down wash tubs and splint baskets made of white oak. A flat bottle, humorously called "tickler," was passed around among Jerry Shaw's friends, easily emptied but just as quickly refilled from a keg in the corner. Like the widow's cruse of oil, that keg never seemed to run dry. The presence of a still nearby in the wild ravine might explain its endless supply. It was a strong apple brandy, and its effects were starting to become quite noticeable.

Truly the ethereal woodland flower seemed strangely incongruous with these brutal and uncouth conditions of her life, as she stood at a little distance from this group, spinning at her wheel. Chevis felt a sudden sharp pang of pity for her when he glanced toward her; the next instant he had forgotten it in his interest in her work. It was altogether at variance with the ideas which he had hitherto entertained concerning that humble handicraft. There came across him a vague recollection from his city life that the peasant girls of art galleries and of the lyric stage were wont to sit at the wheel. "But perhaps they were spinning flax," he reflected. This spinning was a matter of walking back and forth with smooth, measured steps and graceful, undulatory motion; a matter, too, of much pretty gesticulation,—the thread in one hand, the other regulating the whirl of the wheel. He thought he had never seen attitudes so charming.

Truly, the delicate woodland flower seemed oddly out of place with the harsh and crude conditions of her life as she stood a little distance away from this group, spinning at her wheel. Chevis felt a sudden, sharp pang of pity for her when he glanced over; the next moment, he forgot it as he became interested in her work. It was completely different from what he had thought about that simple craft. He had a vague memory from his city life that the peasant girls in art galleries and on stage usually sat at the wheel. "But maybe they were spinning flax," he thought. This spinning involved walking back and forth with smooth, measured steps and graceful, flowing movements; it also required a lot of pretty gestures—the thread in one hand while the other controlled the wheel's spin. He realized he had never seen such charming poses.

Jerry Shaw hastened to abdicate and offer one of the rush-bottomed chairs with the eager hospitality characteristic of these mountaineers,—a a hospitality that meets a stranger on the threshold of every hut, presses upon him, ungrudgingly, its best, and follows him on his departure with protestations of regret out to the rickety fence. Chevis was more or less known to all of the visitors, and after a little, under the sense of familiarity and the impetus of the apple-brandy, the talk flowed on as freely as before his entrance. It was wilder and more antagonistic to his principles and prejudices than anything he had hitherto heard among these people, and he looked on and listened, interested in this new development of a phase of life which he had thought he had sounded from its lowest note to the top of its compass. He was glad to remain; the scene had impressed his cultivated perceptions as an interior by Teniers might have done, and the vehemence and lawlessness of the conversation and the threats of violence had little reality for him; if he thought about the subject under discussion at all, it was with a reassuring conviction that before the plans could be carried out the already intoxicated mountaineers would he helplessly drunk. Nevertheless, he glanced ever and anon at the young girl, loath that she should hear it, lest its virulent, angry bitterness should startle her. She was evidently listening, too, but her fair face was as calm and untroubled as one of the pure white faces of those flower-stars of his early stay in the mountains.

Jerry Shaw quickly stepped aside and offered one of the rush-bottomed chairs with the eager hospitality typical of these mountaineers—a hospitality that welcomes a stranger at the door of every hut, generously offers him the best, and follows him out to the rickety fence with expressions of regret. Chevis was somewhat familiar to all the guests, and soon, bolstered by the sense of familiarity and the apple-brandy, the conversation flowed as freely as before he arrived. It was wilder and more opposed to his principles and prejudices than anything he had heard from these people before, and he watched and listened, intrigued by this new aspect of life that he thought he had explored from its lowest point to its highest. He was glad to stay; the scene struck his refined sensibilities like an interior by Teniers, and the intensity and chaos of the conversation, along with threats of violence, felt somewhat distant to him; if he engaged with the topic at all, it was with a comforting certainty that before any plans could be executed, the already intoxicated mountaineers would be hopelessly drunk. Nevertheless, he glanced occasionally at the young girl, not wanting her to hear it, fearing the harsh, angry bitterness might shock her. She was clearly listening too, but her fair face remained as calm and untroubled as one of the pure white faces of those flower-stars from his early time in the mountains.

"Them Peels oughtn't ter be let live!" exclaimed Elijah Burr, a gigantic fellow, arrayed in brown jeans, with the accompaniments of knife, powder-horn, etc., usual with the hunters of the range; his gun stood, with those of the other guests, against the wall in a corner of the room. "They oughtn't ter be let live, an' I'd top off all three of 'em fur the skin an' horns of a deer."

"Them Peels shouldn't be allowed to live!" shouted Elijah Burr, a huge guy dressed in brown jeans, with the usual gear of a hunter, like a knife and powder-horn. His gun was leaning against the wall in the corner of the room along with those of the other guests. "They shouldn't be allowed to live, and I’d take out all three of them for the hide and horns of a deer."

"That thar is a true word," assented Jerry Shaw. "They oughter be run down an' kilt,—all three o' them Peels."

"That's a true statement," agreed Jerry Shaw. "They should be caught and killed—all three of those Peels."

Chevis could not forbear a question. Always on the alert to add to his stock of knowledge of men and minds, always analyzing his own inner life and the inner life of those about him, he said, turning to his intoxicated host, "Who are the Peels, Mr. Shaw,—if I may ask?"

Chevis couldn't help but ask a question. Always eager to expand his understanding of people and their thoughts, and constantly reflecting on his own feelings and those of others around him, he turned to his drunken host and said, "Who are the Peels, Mr. Shaw, if I may ask?"

"Who air the Peels?" repeated Jerry Shaw, making a point of seizing the question. "They air the meanest men in these hyar mountings. Ye might hunt from Copperhead Ridge ter Clinch River, an' the whole spread o' the valley, an' never hear tell o' no sech no 'count critters."

"Who are the Peels?" repeated Jerry Shaw, making sure to emphasize the question. "They're the nastiest people in these mountains. You could search from Copperhead Ridge to Clinch River, and through the entire valley, and never hear about any such worthless creatures."

"They oughtn't ter be let live!" again urged Elijah Burr. "No man ez treats his wife like that dad-burned scoundrel Ike Peel do oughter be let live. That thar woman is my sister an' Jerry Shaw's cousin,—an' I shot him down in his own door year afore las'. I shot him ter kill; but somehow 'nother I war that shaky, an' the cussed gun hung fire a-fust, an' that thar pore wife o' his'n screamed an' hollered so, that I never done nuthin' arter all but lay him up for four month an' better for that thar pore critter ter nuss. He'll see a mighty differ nex' time I gits my chance. An' 'tain't fur off," he added threateningly.

"They shouldn't be allowed to live!" Elijah Burr insisted again. "No man who treats his wife like that damn scoundrel Ike Peel should be allowed to live. That woman is my sister and Jerry Shaw's cousin— I shot him down right at his own door a year ago. I shot to kill, but for some reason I was so shaky, and the damn gun misfired at first, and that poor wife of his screamed and yelled so much that all I did was put him out of commission for four months or more while that poor creature had to take care of him. He'll see a big difference next time I get the chance. And it’s not far off," he added threateningly.

"Wouldn't it be better to persuade her to leave him?" suggested Chevis pacifically, without, however, any wild idea of playing peace-maker between fire and tow.

"Wouldn't it be better to convince her to leave him?" suggested Chevis calmly, without any crazy idea of trying to mediate between fire and tow.

Burr growled a fierce oath, and then was silent.

Burr let out a fierce curse and then fell silent.

A slow fellow on the opposite side of the fire-place explained: "Thar's whar all the trouble kem from. She wouldn't leave him, fur all he treated her awful. She said ez how he war mighty good ter her when he warn't drunk. So 'Lijah shot him."

A slow guy on the other side of the fireplace explained, "That’s where all the trouble came from. She wouldn’t leave him, even though he treated her badly. She said he was really good to her when he wasn’t drunk. So, Elijah shot him."

This way of cutting the Gordian knot of domestic difficulties might have proved efficacious but for the shakiness induced by the thrill of fraternal sentiment, the infusion of apple-brandy, the protest of the bone of contention, and the hanging fire of the treacherous gun. Elijah Burr could remember no other failure of aim for twenty years.

This approach to solving domestic issues could have been effective if it weren't for the excitement from brotherly feelings, the influence of apple brandy, the argument over the main issue, and the lingering danger of the unreliable gun. Elijah Burr couldn't recall any other missed shots for the past twenty years.

"He won't git shet of me that easy agin!" Burr declared, with another pull at the flat tickler. "But ef it hedn't hev been fur what happened las' week, I mought hev let him off fur awhile," he continued, evidently actuated by some curiously distorted sense of duty in the premises. "I oughter hev kilt him afore. But now the cussed critter is a gone coon. Dad-burn the whole tribe!"

"He won't get rid of me that easily again!" Burr declared, tugging at the flat tickler again. "But if it hadn't been for what happened last week, I might have let him go for a while," he continued, clearly driven by some strangely twisted sense of duty regarding the situation. "I should have killed him before. But now the damn critter is a lost cause. Damn the whole lot!"

Chevis was desirous of knowing what had happened last week. He did not, however, feel justified in asking more questions. But apple-brandy is a potent tongue-loosener, and the unwonted communicativeness of the stolid and silent mountaineers attested its strength in this regard. Jerry Shaw, without inquiry, enlightened him.

Chevis wanted to know what had happened last week. However, he didn’t feel right about asking too many questions. But apple brandy is a powerful conversation starter, and the unusual openness of the usually quiet mountaineers showed its effectiveness in this way. Jerry Shaw, without being asked, filled him in.

"Ye see," he said, turning to Chevis, "'Lijah he thought ez how ef he could git that fool woman ter come ter his house, he could shoot Ike fur his meanness 'thout botherin' of her, an' things would all git easy agin. Waal, he went thar one day when all them Peels, the whole lay-out, war gone down ter the Settlemint ter hear the rider preach, an' he jes' run away with two of the brats,—the littlest ones, ye onderstand,—a-thinkin' he mought tole her off from Ike that thar way. We hearn ez how the pore critter war nigh onter distracted 'bout 'em, but Ike never let her come arter 'em. Leastways, she never kem. Las' week Ike kem fur 'em hisself,—him an' them two cussed brothers o' his'n. All 'Lijah's folks war out'n the way; him an' his boys war off a-huntin', an' his wife hed gone down ter the spring, a haffen mile an' better, a-washin' clothes; nobody war ter the house 'ceptin' them two chillen o' Ike's. An' Ike and his brothers jes' tuk the chillen away, an' set fire ter the house; an' time 'Lijah's wife got thar, 'twar nuthin' but a pile o' ashes. So we've determinated ter go up yander ter Laurel Notch, twenty mile along the ridge of the mounting, ter-night, an' wipe out them Peels,—'kase they air a-goin' ter move away. That thar wife o' Ike's, what made all the trouble, hev fretted an' fretted at Ike till he hev determinated ter break up an' wagon across the range ter Kaintucky, whar his uncle lives in the hills thar. Ike hev gin his cornsent ter go jes' ter pleasure her, 'kase she air mos' crazed ter git Ike away whar 'Lijah can't kill him. Ike's brothers is a-goin', too. I hearn ez how they'll make a start at noon ter-morrer."

"Listen," he said, turning to Chevis, "Elijah thought that if he could get that foolish woman to come to his house, he could deal with Ike for his meanness without bothering her, and everything would get back to normal. Well, he went there one day when all the Peels—everyone—had gone down to the Settlement to hear the preacher, and he just ran off with two of the kids—the youngest ones, you know—thinking he could keep her away from Ike that way. We heard the poor woman was almost beside herself with worry about them, but Ike never let her come after them. At least, she never did. Last week, Ike came for them himself—him and those two cursed brothers of his. All of Elijah's family was out of the way; he and his boys were off hunting, and his wife had gone down to the spring, half a mile away or more, to wash clothes; no one was home except for those two kids of Ike's. And Ike and his brothers just took the kids away and set fire to the house; by the time Elijah's wife got there, it was nothing but a pile of ashes. So we’ve decided to head up to Laurel Notch, twenty miles along the ridge of the mountain, tonight and take out those Peels—because they're planning to move away. That wife of Ike’s, who stirred up all the trouble, has been nagging at Ike until he decided to pack up and head across the range to Kentucky, where his uncle lives in the hills. Ike has agreed to go just to please her, since she’s almost crazy to get Ike away where Elijah can’t kill him. Ike's brothers are going too. I heard they’ll make a start tomorrow at noon."

"They'll never start ter Kaintucky ter-morrer," said Burr, grimly. "They'll git off, afore that, fur hell, stiddier Kaintucky. I hev been a-tryin' ter make out ter shoot that thar man ever sence that thar gal war married ter him, seven year ago,—seven year an' better. But what with her a-foolin' round, an' a-talkin', an' a-goin' on like she war distracted—she run right 'twixt him an' the muzzle of my gun wunst, or I would hev hed him that time fur sure—an' somehow 'nother that critter makes me so shaky with her ways of goin' on that I feel like I hain't got good sense, an' can't git no good aim at nuthin'. Nex' time, though, thar'll be a differ. She ain't a-goin' ter Kaintucky along of him ter be beat fur nuthin' when he's drunk."

"They're never going to head to Kentucky tomorrow," Burr said grimly. "They'll leave before then, for sure, instead of Kentucky. I've been trying to figure out how to shoot that guy ever since that girl married him seven years ago—more than seven years. But with her messing around, talking, and acting like she’s out of her mind—she once ran right between him and the muzzle of my gun, or I would have definitely gotten him that time—and somehow that guy makes me so jittery with her antics that I feel like I don’t have any sense and can’t aim at anything properly. Next time, though, it’ll be different. She’s not going to Kentucky with him just to get beaten for nothing when he’s drunk."

It was a pitiable picture presented to Chevis's open-eyed imagination,—this woman standing for years between the two men she loved: holding back her brother from his vengeance of her wrongs by that subtle influence that shook his aim; and going into exile with her brute of a husband when that influence had waned and failed, and her wrongs were supplemented by deep and irreparable injuries to her brother. And the curious moral attitude of the man: the strong fraternal feeling that alternately nerved and weakened his revengeful hand.

It was a sad sight in Chevis's mind—this woman who had stood for years between the two men she loved: keeping her brother from seeking vengeance for her wrongs with that subtle influence that wavered his aim; and going into exile with her cruel husband when that influence had faded and her wrongs were compounded by serious and irreversible harms to her brother. And the strange moral stance of the man: the strong brotherly bond that both fueled and weakened his vengeful hand.

"We air goin' thar 'bout two o'clock ter-night," said Jerry Shaw, "and wipe out all three o' them Peels,—Ike an' his two brothers."

"We're heading there around two o'clock tonight," said Jerry Shaw, "and we're going to take out all three of those Peels—Ike and his two brothers."

"They oughtn't ter be let live," reiterated Elijah Burr, moodily. Did he speak to his faintly stirring conscience, or to a woful premonition of his sister's grief?

"They shouldn't be allowed to live," Elijah Burr repeated gloomily. Was he speaking to his slightly stirring conscience, or to a sad foreboding of his sister's sorrow?

"They'll all three be stiff an' stark afore daybreak," resumed Jerry Shaw. "We air all kin ter 'Lijah, an' we air goin' ter holp him top off them Peels. Thar's ten of us an' three o' them, an' we won't hev no trouble 'bout it. An' we'll bring that pore critter, Ike's wife, an' her chillen hyar ter stay. She's welcome ter live along of us till 'Lijah kin fix some sort'n place fur her an' the little chillen. Thar won't be no trouble a-gittin' rid of the men folks, ez thar is ten of us an' three o' them, an' we air goin' ter take 'em in the night."

"They’ll all be stiff and cold before dawn," Jerry Shaw continued. "We’re all related to Elijah, and we’re going to help him take care of those Peels. There are ten of us and three of them, so it won’t be a problem. We’ll also bring that poor woman, Ike’s wife, and her kids here to stay. She’s welcome to live with us until Elijah can find a place for her and the little ones. There won't be any trouble getting rid of the men since there are ten of us and three of them, and we’re going to deal with them at night."

There was a protest from an unexpected quarter. The whir of the spinning-wheel was abruptly silenced. "I don't see no sense," said Celia Shaw, her singing monotone vibrating in the sudden lull,—"I don't see no sense in shootin' folks down like they war nuthin' better nor bear, nor deer, nor suthin' wild. I don't see no sense in it. An' I never did see none."

There was a protest from an unexpected source. The whir of the spinning wheel suddenly stopped. "I don't see any sense," said Celia Shaw, her singing monotone ringing out in the sudden silence, "I don't see any sense in shooting people down like they're nothing better than bears, or deer, or something wild. I don't see any sense in it. And I never have."

There was an astonished pause.

There was a stunned pause.

"Shet up, Cely! Shet up!" exclaimed Jerry Shaw, in mingled anger and surprise. "Them folks ain't no better nor bear, nor sech. They hain't got no right ter live,—them Peels."

"S shut up, Cely! Shut up!" Jerry Shaw exclaimed, feeling both angry and surprised. "Those people are no better than bears or anything like that. They have no right to live — those Peels."

"No, that they hain't!" said Burr.

"No, they're not!" said Burr.

"They is powerful no 'count critters, I know," replied the little woodland flower, the firelight bright in her opaline eyes and on the flakes of burnished gold gleaming in the dark masses of her hair. "They is always a-hangin' round the still an' a-gittin' drunk; but I don't see no sense in a-huntin' 'em down an' a-killin' 'em off. 'Pears ter me like they air better nor the dumb ones. I don't see no sense in shootin' 'em."

"They're powerful worthless creatures, I know," replied the little woodland flower, the firelight shining brightly in her opaline eyes and reflecting off the flakes of burnished gold in her dark hair. "They're always hanging around the still and getting drunk; but I don't see any point in hunting them down and killing them off. Seems to me like they're better than the stupid ones. I don't see any sense in shooting them."

"Shet up, Cely! Shet up!" reiterated Shaw.

"Shet up, Cely! Shet up!" Shaw repeated.

Celia said no more. Reginald Chevis was pleased with this indication of her sensibility; the other women—her mother and grandmother—had heard the whole recital with the utmost indifference, as they sat by the fire monotonously carding cotton. She was beyond her station in sentiment, he thought. However, he was disposed to recant this favorable estimate of her higher nature when, twice afterward, she stopped her work, and, filling the bottle from the keg, pressed it upon her father, despite her unfavorable criticism of the hangers-on of stills. Nay, she insisted. "Drink some more," she said. "Ye hain't got half enough yit." Had the girl no pity for the already drunken creature? She seemed systematically trying to make him even more helpless than he was.

Celia said nothing more. Reginald Chevis felt pleased by her sensitivity; the other women—her mother and grandmother—listened to the whole story with complete indifference as they sat by the fire monotonously carding cotton. He thought she was more emotionally aware than her background warranted. However, he began to doubt this positive view of her character when, two times later, she paused her work, filled the bottle from the keg, and offered it to her father, despite her negative opinions about people who hung around stills. In fact, she insisted. "Drink some more," she said. "You haven’t had enough yet." Did the girl have no compassion for the already drunken man? She seemed to be deliberately trying to make him even more helpless than he already was.

He had fallen into a deep sleep before Chevis left the house, and the bottle was circulating among the other men with a rapidity that boded little harm to the unconscious Ike Peel and his brothers at Laurel Notch, twenty miles away. As Chevis mounted Strathspey he saw the horses of Jerry Shaw's friends standing partly within and partly without the blacksmith's shop They would stand there all night, he thought It was darker when he commenced the ascent of the mountain than he had anticipated. And what was this driving against his face,—rain? No, it was snow. He had not started a moment too soon. But Strathspey, by reason of frequent travel, knew every foot of the way, and perhaps there would only be a flurry. And so he went on steadily up and up the wild, winding road among the great, bare, black trees and the grim heights and chasms. The snow fell fast,—so fast and so silently, before he was half-way to the summit he had lost the vague companionship of the sound of his horse's hoofs, now muffled in the thick carpet so suddenly flung upon the ground. Still the snow fell, and when he had reached the mountain's brow the ground was deeply covered, and the whole aspect of the scene was strange. But though obscured by the fast-flying flakes, he knew that down in the bosom of the white valley there glittered still that changeless star.

He had fallen into a deep sleep before Chevis left the house, and the bottle was passing rapidly among the other men, which didn’t bode well for the unconscious Ike Peel and his brothers at Laurel Notch, twenty miles away. As Chevis mounted Strathspey, he saw the horses of Jerry Shaw's friends standing partly inside and partly outside the blacksmith's shop. They would be there all night, he thought. It was darker when he started up the mountain than he had expected. And what was this hitting his face—rain? No, it was snow. He hadn’t left a moment too soon. But Strathspey, having traveled frequently, knew every inch of the path, and maybe it would just be a light flurry. So he continued steadily up the winding road through the great, bare, black trees and the steep heights and gorges. The snow fell heavily—so fast and so quietly that by the time he was halfway to the summit, he had lost even the faint sound of his horse’s hooves, now muffled by the thick blanket that had suddenly appeared on the ground. Still, the snow fell, and when he reached the top of the mountain, the ground was deeply covered, and the scene looked strange. Though obscured by the quickly falling flakes, he knew that down in the depths of the white valley, that unchanging star continued to shine.

"Still spinning, I suppose," he said to himself, as he looked toward it and thought of the interior of the log-cabin below. And then he turned into the tent to enjoy his cigar, his æsthetic reveries, and a bottle of wine.

"Still spinning, I guess," he said to himself, as he looked over and thought about the inside of the log cabin below. Then he went into the tent to enjoy his cigar, his artistic thoughts, and a bottle of wine.

But the wheel was no longer awhirl. Both music and musician were gone. Toiling along the snow-filled mountain ways; struggling with the fierce gusts of wind as they buffeted and hindered her, and fluttered derisively among her thin, worn, old garments; shivering as the driving flakes came full into the pale, calm face, and fell in heavier and heavier wreaths upon the dappled calico sun-bonnet; threading her way through unfrequented woodland paths, that she might shorten the distance; now deftly on the verge of a precipice, whence a false step of those coarse, rough shoes would fling her into unimaginable abysses below; now on the sides of steep ravines, falling sometimes with the treacherous, sliding snow, but never faltering; tearing her hands on the shrubs and vines she clutched to help her forward, and bruised and bleeding, but still going on; trembling more than with the cold, but never turning back, when a sudden noise in the terrible loneliness of the sheeted woods suggested the close proximity of a wild beast, or perhaps, to her ignorant, superstitious mind, a supernatural presence,—thus she journeyed on her errand of deliverance.

But the wheel was no longer spinning. Both the music and the musician had vanished. She struggled through the snow-covered mountain paths, battling the fierce gusts of wind that pushed against her, mocking her thin, worn clothes as they flapped about; shivering as the falling snowflakes hit her pale, calm face, piling heavier and heavier on her patterned calico sunbonnet. She threaded her way through rarely traveled woodland paths to shorten the distance; now deftly on the edge of a cliff, where a misstep in her rough shoes could send her tumbling into unimaginable depths below; now navigating the sides of steep ravines, sometimes slipping on the treacherous, sliding snow, but never wavering; scraping her hands on the shrubs and vines she grasped to pull herself forward, bruised and bleeding, but still pushing on; trembling more from fear than from the cold, but never turning back, even when a sudden sound in the eerie stillness of the snow-covered woods hinted at the presence of a wild animal, or perhaps, to her superstitious mind, something supernatural—this is how she continued on her mission of rescue.

Her fluttering breath came and went in quick gasps; her failing limbs wearily dragged through the deep drifts; the cruel winds untiringly lashed her; the snow soaked through the faded green cotton dress to the chilled white skin,—it seemed even to the dull blood coursing feebly through her freezing veins. But she had small thought for herself during those long, slow hours of endurance and painful effort. Her pale lips moved now and then with muttered speculations: how the time went by; whether they had discovered her absence at home; and whether the fleeter horsemen were even now ploughing their way through the longer, winding mountain road. Her only hope was to outstrip their speed. Her prayer—this untaught being!—she had no prayer, except perhaps her life, the life she was so ready to imperil. She had no high, cultured sensibilities to sustain her. There was no instinct stirring within her that might have nerved her to save her father's, or her brother's, or a benefactor's life. She held the creatures that she would have died to warn in low estimation, and spoke of them with reprobation and contempt. She had known no religious training, holding up forever the sublimest ideal. The measureless mountain wilds were not more infinite to her than that great mystery. Perhaps, without any philosophy, she stood upon the basis of a common humanity.

Her quick, gasping breaths came and went; her exhausted limbs dragged through the deep snow; the relentless winds whipped at her; the snow soaked through her faded green cotton dress to her chilled white skin—it even felt like it was penetrating the weak blood flowing through her freezing veins. But she hardly thought of herself during those long, slow hours of suffering and struggle. Her pale lips moved occasionally with muttered thoughts: how time was passing; whether they had noticed she was missing at home; and whether the faster horsemen were currently making their way down the longer, winding mountain road. Her only hope was to be faster than they were. Her prayer—this untrained person!—wasn’t really a prayer at all, except perhaps for her life, the life she was so ready to risk. She had no high, cultivated feelings to support her. There was no instinct urging her to save her father's, her brother's, or a benefactor's life. She regarded the people she would have sacrificed herself to warn with disdain, speaking of them with scorn and contempt. She had no religious upbringing, always holding onto the highest ideals. The vast mountain wilderness was no more infinite to her than that great mystery. Perhaps, lacking any deep philosophy, she stood on the foundation of basic humanity.

When the silent horsemen, sobered by the chill night air and the cold snow, made their cautious approach to the little porch of Ike Peel's log-hut at Laurel Notch, there was a thrill of dismayed surprise among them to discover the door standing half open, the house empty of its scanty furniture and goods, its owners fled, and the very dogs disappeared; only, on the rough stones before the dying fire, Celia Shaw, falling asleep and waking by fitful starts.

When the quiet horsemen, sobered by the chilly night air and the cold snow, cautiously approached the small porch of Ike Peel's log cabin at Laurel Notch, they were filled with a shocking surprise to find the door half open, the house stripped of its few pieces of furniture and belongings, the owners gone, and even the dogs missing; only Celia Shaw remained, dozing off and waking with sudden jolts on the rough stones in front of the dwindling fire.

"Jerry Shaw swore ez how he would hev shot that thar gal o' his'n,—that thar Cely," Hi Bates said to Chevis and Varney the next day, when he recounted the incident, "only he didn't think she hed her right mind; a-walkin' through this hyar deep snow full fifteen mile,—it's fifteen mile by the short cut ter Laurel Notch,—ter git Ike Peel's folks off 'fore Lijah an' her dad could come up an' settle Ike an' his brothers. Leastways, 'Lijah an' the t'others, fur Jerry hed got so drunk he couldn't go; he war dead asleep till ter-day, when they kem back a-fotchin' the gal with 'em. That thar Cely Shaw never did look ter me like she hed good sense, nohow. Always looked like she war queer an' teched in the head."

"Jerry Shaw swore he would have shot that girl of his, that Cely," Hi Bates said to Chevis and Varney the next day when he recounted the incident, "only he didn't think she was in her right mind; walking through this deep snow for a full fifteen miles — it's fifteen miles by the shortcut to Laurel Notch — to get Ike Peel's folks before Lijah and her dad could come and confront Ike and his brothers. At least, Lijah and the others, since Jerry was so drunk he couldn't go; he was dead asleep until today when they came back bringing the girl with them. That Cely Shaw never did seem to me like she had good sense, anyway. She always looked like she was a bit off and touched in the head."

There was a furtive gleam of speculation on the dull face of the mountaineer when his two listeners broke into enthusiastic commendation of the girl's high heroism and courage. The man of ledgers swore that he had never heard of anything so fine, and that he himself would walk through fifteen miles of snow and midnight wilderness for the honor of shaking hands with her. There was that keen thrill about their hearts sometimes felt in crowded theatres, responsive to the cleverly simulated heroism of the boards; or in listening to a poet's mid-air song; or in looking upon some grand and ennobling phase of life translated on a great painter's canvas.

There was a sly look of intrigue on the mountaineer's otherwise dull face when his two listeners enthusiastically praised the girl's incredible bravery and courage. The business-minded man declared that he had never come across anything so remarkable, and that he would gladly trek fifteen miles through snow and dark wilderness just for the chance to shake her hand. There was that electric thrill in their hearts, similar to what you feel in crowded theaters, responding to the cleverly staged bravery on stage; or while listening to a poet's soaring verse; or when witnessing some grand and uplifting aspect of life depicted on a master’s canvas.

Hi Bates thought that perhaps they too were a little "teched in the head."

Hi Bates thought that maybe they were a bit "off in the head."

There had fallen upon Chevis a sense of deep humiliation. Celia Shaw had heard no more of that momentous conversation than he; a wide contrast was suggested. He began to have a glimmering perception that despite all his culture, his sensibility, his yearnings toward humanity, he was not so high a thing in the scale of being; that he had placed a false estimate upon himself. He had looked down on her with a mingled pity for her dense ignorance, her coarse surroundings, her low station, and a dilettante's delight in picturesque effects, and with no recognition of the moral splendors of that star in the valley. A realization, too, was upon him that fine feelings are of most avail as the motive power of fine deeds.

Chevis felt a deep sense of humiliation. Celia Shaw hadn’t heard any more about that important conversation than he had; the contrast was striking. He started to realize that despite all his education, sensitivity, and desire to connect with humanity, he wasn’t as high on the scale of existence as he thought; he had misjudged his own worth. He had looked down on her with a mix of pity for her ignorance, her rough environment, and her lower status, while also taking a superficial pleasure in the picturesque aspects of her life, without acknowledging the moral greatness of that star shining in the valley. He also came to understand that genuine feelings are most useful as the driving force behind good actions.

He and his friend went down together to the little log-cabin. There had been only jeers and taunts and reproaches for Celia Shaw from her own people. These she had expected, and she had stolidly borne them. But she listened to the fine speeches of the city-bred men with a vague wonderment on her flower-like face,—whiter than ever to-day.

He and his friend headed down together to the small log cabin. Celia Shaw had only faced mockery, insults, and blame from her own people. She expected that and had taken it stoically. However, she listened to the eloquent speeches of the city-bred men with a sense of vague wonder on her delicate face, which was even paler than usual today.

"It was a splendid—a noble thing to do," said Varney, warmly.

"It was a wonderful—a great thing to do," said Varney, enthusiastically.

"I shall never forget it," said Chevis, "it will always be like a sermon to me."

"I'll never forget it," Chevis said, "it will always feel like a sermon to me."

There was something more that Reginald Chevis never forgot: the look on her face as he turned and left her forever; for he was on his way back to his former life, so far removed from her and all her ideas and imaginings. He pondered long upon that look in her inscrutable eyes,—was it suffering, some keen pang of despair?—as he rode down and down the valley, all unconscious of the heart-break he left behind him. He thought of it often afterward; he never penetrated its mystery.

There was something else that Reginald Chevis never forgot: the look on her face as he turned and walked away from her for good; he was heading back to his old life, so distant from her and all her thoughts and dreams. He considered that look in her unreadable eyes for a long time—was it pain, some deep sense of despair?—as he rode down the valley, completely unaware of the heartbreak he was leaving behind. He thought about it often afterward; he never figured out its mystery.

He heard of her only once again. On the eve of a famous day, when visiting the outposts of a gallant corps, Reginald Chevis happened to recognize in one of the pickets the gawky mountaineer who had been his guide through those autumnal woods so far away. Hi Bates was afterward sought out and honored with an interview in the general's tent; for the accidental encounter had evoked many pleasant reminiscences in Chevis's mind, and among other questions he wished to ask was what had become of Jerry Shaw's daughter.

He only heard about her one more time. On the eve of a notable day, while visiting the outposts of a brave regiment, Reginald Chevis happened to recognize one of the sentries as the awkward mountaineer who had guided him through those distant autumn woods. Hi Bates was later found and given a chance to speak with the general in his tent; this unexpected meeting brought back many fond memories for Chevis, and among other things he wanted to ask was what had happened to Jerry Shaw's daughter.

"She's dead,—long ago," answered Hi Bates. "She died afore the winter war over the year ez ye war a-huntin' thar. She never hed good sense ter my way o' thinkin', nohow, an' one night she run away, an' walked 'bout fifteen mile through a big snow-storm. Some say it settled on her chist. Anyhow, she jes' sorter fell away like afterward, an' never held up her head good no more. She always war a slim little critter, an' looked like she war teched in the head."

"She's dead—has been for a long time," Hi Bates replied. "She died before the winter after you were out hunting there. She never had much sense, in my opinion, anyway, and one night she ran away and walked about fifteen miles through a big snowstorm. Some say that’s what did her in. Either way, she just kind of faded away afterward and never really held her head high again. She always was a slim little thing and seemed a bit touched in the head."

There are many things that suffer unheeded in those mountains: the birds that freeze on the trees; the wounded deer that leaves its cruel kind to die alone; the despairing, flying fox with its pursuing train of savage dogs and men. And the jutting crag whence had shone the camp-fire she had so often watched—her star, set forever—looked far over the valley beneath, where in one of those sad little rural graveyards she had been laid so long ago.

There are many things that go unnoticed in those mountains: the birds that freeze on the trees; the wounded deer that leaves its cruel kind to die alone; the desperate flying fox chased by a pack of savage dogs and men. And the jutting cliff where the campfire she had watched so many times—her star, now extinguished—looked out over the valley below, where in one of those sad little rural graveyards she had been laid to rest so long ago.

But Reginald Chevis has never forgotten her. Whenever he sees the earliest star spring into the evening sky, he remembers the answering red gleam of that star in the valley.

But Reginald Chevis has never forgotten her. Whenever he sees the first star appear in the evening sky, he remembers the responding red glow of that star in the valley.


ELECTIONEERIN' ON BIG INJUN MOUNTING.

"An' ef ye'll believe me, he hev hed the face an' grace ter come a-prowlin' up hyar on Big Injun Mounting, electioneerin' fur votes, an' a-shakin' hands with every darned critter on it."

"And if you’ll believe me, he’s had the nerve and charm to come wandering up here on Big Indian Mountain, campaigning for votes, and shaking hands with every single creature on it."

To a superficial survey the idea of a constituency might have seemed incongruous enough with these rugged wilds. The July sunshine rested on stupendous crags; the torrent was bridged only by a rainbow hovering above the cataract; in all the wide prospect of valley and far-stretching Alleghany ranges the wilderness was broken by no field or clearing. But over this gloomy primeval magnificence of nature universal suffrage brooded like a benison, and candidates munificently endowed with "face an' grace" were wont to thread the tangled mazes of Big Injun Mounting.

To a quick glance, the idea of a constituency might have seemed out of place in these rugged wilderness areas. The July sun shone down on massive cliffs; the only thing bridging the rushing water was a rainbow above the waterfall; in the vast view of valleys and the far-reaching Allegheny ranges, there was no sign of any fields or clearings. But over this dark, ancient beauty of nature, universal suffrage hovered like a blessing, and candidates generously gifted with charm and charisma would often navigate the tangled trails of Big Injun Mountain.

The presence of voters in this lonely region was further attested by a group of teamsters, who had stopped at the wayside spring that the oxen might drink, and in the interval of waiting had given themselves over to the interest of local politics and the fervor of controversy.

The presence of voters in this remote area was confirmed by a group of truck drivers, who had stopped at the nearby spring so their oxen could drink. While they waited, they immersed themselves in local politics and passionate debates.

"Waal, they tells me ez he made a powerful good 'torney-gineral las' time. An' it 'pears ter me ez the mounting folks oughter vote fur him agin them town cusses, 'kase he war born an' raised right down hyar on the slope of Big Injun Mounting. He never lef' thar till he war twenty year old, when he went ter live yander at Carrick Court House, an' arter a while tuk ter studyin' of law."

"Well, they tell me he was a really good attorney general last time. And it seems to me that the people in the mountains should vote for him against those city folks, because he was born and raised right here on the slope of Big Indian Mountain. He never left there until he was twenty years old, when he moved over to Carrick Court House, and after a while, he started studying law."

The last speaker was the most uncouth of the rough party, and poverty-stricken as to this world's goods. Instead of a wagon, he had only a rude "slide;" his lean oxen were thrust from the water by the stronger and better fed teams; and his argument in favor of the reëlection of the attorney for the State in this judicial circuit—called in the vernacular "the 'torney-gineral"—was received with scant courtesy.

The last speaker was the most awkward of the rough crowd and was poor in material possessions. Instead of a wagon, he only had a crude sled; his thin oxen were pushed away from the water by stronger and better-fed teams. His argument for the re-election of the attorney for the State in this judicial circuit—commonly referred to as "the attorney general"—was met with little respect.

"Ye're a darned fool ter be braggin' that Rufus Chadd air a mounting boy!" exclaimed Abel Stubbs, scornfully. "He hev hed the insurance ter git ez thick ez he kin with them town folks down thar at Ephesus, an' he hev made ez hard speeches agin everybody that war tuk ter jail from Big Injun ez ef he hed never laid eyes on 'em till that minit; an' arter all that the mounting folks hev done fur him, too! 'Twar thar vote that elected him the fust time he run, 'kase the convention put up that thar Taylor man, what nobody knowed nuthin' about an' jes' despised; an' the t'other candidates wouldn't agree ter the convention, but jes' went before the people ennyhow, an' the vote war so split that Big Injun kerried Rufe Chadd in. An' what do he do? Ef it hedn't hev been fur his term a-givin' out he would hev jailed the whole mounting arter a while!"

"You're a complete fool to be bragging that Rufus Chadd is a mountain boy!" Abel Stubbs exclaimed scornfully. "He's had the insurance to get as close as he can with those townsfolk down there at Ephesus, and he's made the harshest speeches against everyone who was taken to jail from Big Injun as if he had never even seen them until that moment; and after all that the mountain folks have done for him, too! It was their vote that elected him the first time he ran, because the convention put up that Taylor guy, whom nobody knew anything about and just despised; and the other candidates wouldn't agree to the convention, but just went directly to the people anyway, and the vote was so split that Big Injun carried Rufe Chadd in. And what does he do? If it hadn't been for his term ending, he would have jailed the entire mountain after a while!"

The dwellers on Big Injun Mounting are not the first rural community that have aided in the election of a prosecuting officer, and afterward have become wroth with a fiery wrath because he prosecutes.

The residents on Big Injun Mountain aren't the first rural community to help elect a prosecuting officer and then get really angry when he actually does his job.

"An' them town folks," Abel Stubbs continued, after a pause,—"at fust they war mightily interrupted 'bout the way that the election hed turned out, an' they promised the Lord that they would never butt agin a convention no more while they lived in this life. Hevin' a mounting lawyer over them town folks in Colbury an' Ephesus war mighty humbling ter thar pride, I reckon; nobody hed never hearn tell o' sech a thing afore. But when these hyar horse-thieves an' mounting fellers ginerally got ter goin' in sech a constancy ter the pen'tiary, them town folks changed thar tune 'bout Rufe Chadd. They 'lowed ez they hed never hed sech a good 'torney-gineral afore. An' now they air goin' ter hev a new election, an' hyar is Rufe a-leadin' off at the head of the convention ez graceful ez ef he hed never butted agin it in his life."

"And those town folks," Abel Stubbs continued after a pause, "at first they were really upset about the way the election turned out, and they promised the Lord that they would never go against a convention again while they lived. Having a mountain lawyer over those town folks in Colbury and Ephesus was quite humbling for their pride, I guess; nobody had ever heard of such a thing before. But when these horse thieves and mountain folks kept going to the penitentiary, those town folks changed their tune about Rufe Chadd. They said they'd never had such a good attorney general before. And now they're going to have a new election, and here’s Rufe leading off at the head of the convention as gracefully as if he had never gone against it in his life."

"Waal," drawled a heavy fellow, speaking for the first time,—a rigid soul, who would fain vote the straight ticket,—"I won't support Rufe Chadd; an' yit I dunno how I kin git my cornsent ter vote agin the nominee."

"Waal," drawled a big guy, speaking for the first time—a serious dude, who really wanted to vote straight down the line—"I won't support Rufe Chadd; and yet I don't know how I can bring myself to vote against the nominee."

"Rufe Chadd air goin' ter be beat like hell broke loose," said Abel Stubbs, hopefully.

"Rufe Chadd is going to be beaten like crazy," said Abel Stubbs, hopefully.

"He will ef Big Injun hev enny say so 'bout 'n it," rejoined the rigid voter. "I hev never seen a man ez onpopular ez he is nowadays on this mounting."

"He will if Big Injun has any say about it," replied the stiff voter. "I've never seen a man as unpopular as he is these days on this mountain."

"I hev hearn tell that the kin-folks of some of them convicts, what he made sech hard speeches agin, hev swore ter git even with him yit," said Abel Stubbs. "Rufe Chadd hev been shot at twice in the woods sence he kem up on Big Injun Mounting. I seen him yestiddy, an' he tole me so; an' he showed me his hat whar a rifle ball hed done gone through. An' I axed him ef he warn't afeard of all them men what hed sech a grudge agin him. 'Mister Stubbs,' he say, sorter saft,—ye know them's the ways he hev l'arned in Ephesus an' Colbury an' sech, an' he hed, afore he ever left Big Injun Mounting, the sassiest tongue that ever wagged,—'Mister Stubbs,' Rufe say, mighty perlite, 'foolin' with me is like makin' faces at a rattlesnake: it may be satisfying to the feelin's, but 't ain't safe.' That's what Rufe tole ter me."

"I've heard that some of the relatives of those convicts, who he made such harsh speeches against, have sworn to get back at him," said Abel Stubbs. "Rufe Chadd has been shot at twice in the woods since he came up on Big Injun Mountain. I saw him yesterday, and he told me so; and he showed me his hat where a bullet had gone through. I asked him if he wasn't afraid of all those men who had such a grudge against him. 'Mr. Stubbs,' he said, kind of softly—you know that's how he learned to talk in Ephesus and Colbury and such—and before he ever left Big Injun Mountain, he had the sassiest tongue around—'Mr. Stubbs,' Rufe said, very politely, 'messing with me is like making faces at a rattlesnake: it might feel good, but it isn't safe.' That's what Rufe told me."

"'T would pleasure me some ter see Rufe Chadd agin," said the driver of the slide. "Me an' him air jes' the same age,—thirty-three year. We used ter go huntin' tergether some. They tells me ez he hev app'inted ter speak termo-rrer at the Settlemint along of them t'other five candidates what air a-runnin' agin him. I likes ter hear him speak; he knocks things up somehow."

"'It would please me some to see Rufe Chadd again," said the driver of the sled. "He and I are just the same age—thirty-three years. We used to go hunting together sometimes. They tell me he has been scheduled to speak tomorrow at the Settlement along with those other five candidates who are running against him. I like to hear him speak; he has a way of shaking things up.'"

"He did talk mighty sharp an' stingin' the fust time he war electioneerin' on Big Injun Mounting," the rigid voter reluctantly admitted; "but mebbe he hev furgot how sence he hev done been livin' with them town folks."

"He talked really sharp and stinging the first time he was campaigning on Big Injun Mountain," the strict voter admitted reluctantly; "but maybe he has forgotten how since he has been living with those town folks."

"Ef ye wants ter know whether Rufe Chadd hev furgot how ter talk, jes' take ter thievin' of horses an' sech, will ye!" exclaimed Abel Stubbs, with an emphatic nod. "Ye oughter hev hearn the tale my brother brung from the court-house at Ephesus when Josh Green war tried. He said Rufe jes' tuk that jury out 'n tharselves; an' he gits jes' sech a purchase on every jury he speaks afore. My brother says he believes that ef Rufe hed gin the word, that jury would hev got out 'n thar cheers an' throttled Josh. It's a mighty evil sort 'n gift,—this hyar way that Rufe talks."

"Well, if you want to know whether Rufe Chadd has forgotten how to talk, just start stealing horses and things like that!" Abel Stubbs exclaimed, nodding emphatically. "You should have heard the story my brother brought back from the courthouse in Ephesus when Josh Green was on trial. He said Rufe just took that jury and twisted them around; he has such a hold on every jury he speaks to. My brother believes that if Rufe had given the signal, that jury would have jumped out of their seats and taken down Josh. It’s quite a terrible kind of talent—this way Rufe talks."

"Waal, his tongue can't keep the party from bein' beat. I hates ter see it disgraced agin," said the rigid voter. "But law, I can't stand hyar all day jowin' 'bout Rufus Chadd! I hev got my wheat ter thrash this week, though I don't expec' ter make more 'n enough fur seed fur nex' year,—ef that. I must be joltin' along."

"Waal, his mouth can't stop the party from being beaten. I hate to see it embarrassed again," said the rigid voter. "But honestly, I can't stand here all day talking about Rufus Chadd! I've got my wheat to thresh this week, although I don't expect to make more than enough for seed for next year—if that. I need to get moving."

The ox-carts rumbled slowly down the steep hill, the slide continued its laborious ascent, and the forest was left once more to the fitful stir of the wind and the ceaseless pulsations of the falling torrent. The shadows of the oak leaves moved to and fro with dazzling effects of interfulgent sunbeams. Afar off the blue mountains shimmered through the heated air; but how cool was this clear rush of emerald water and the bounding white spray of the cataract! The sudden flight of a bird cleft the rainbow; there was a flash of moisture on his swift wings, and he left his wild, sweet cry echoing far behind him. Beetling high above the stream, the crags seemed to touch the sky. One glance up and up those towering, majestic steeps,—how it lifted the soul! The Settlement, perched upon the apparently inaccessible heights, was not visible from the road below. It cowered back affrighted from the verge of the great cliff and the grimly yawning abysses. The huts, three or four in number, were all silent, and might have been all tenantless, so lonely was their aspect. Behind them rose the dense forest, filling the background. In a rush-bottomed chair before the little store was the only human creature to be seen in the hamlet,—a man whose appearance was strangely at variance with his surroundings. He had the long, lank frame of the mountaineer; but instead of the customary brown jeans clothes, he wore a suit of blue flannel, and a dark straw hat was drawn over his brow. This simple attire and the cigar that he smoked had given great offense to the already prejudiced dwellers on Big Injun Mounting. It was not deemed meet that Rufe Chadd should "git tuk up with them town ways, an' sot hisself ter wearin' of store-clothes." His face was a great contrast to the faces of the stolid mountaineers. It was keenly chiseled; the constant friction of thought had worn away the grosser lines, leaving sharply defined features with abrupt turns of expression. The process might be likened to the gradual denudation of those storied strata of his mountains by the momentum of their torrents.

The ox-carts rumbled slowly down the steep hill, the slide continued its laborious ascent, and the forest was left once more to the uneasy stir of the wind and the constant rhythm of the falling water. The shadows of the oak leaves flickered back and forth with dazzling effects of shining sunlight. In the distance, the blue mountains shimmered through the hot air; but how refreshing was this clear rush of emerald water and the frothy white spray of the waterfall! The sudden flight of a bird cut through the rainbow; there was a flash of moisture on its swift wings, and it left its wild, sweet call echoing far behind. Towering high above the stream, the cliffs seemed to touch the sky. Just one look up at those towering, majestic slopes—how it lifted the spirit! The Settlement, perched upon the seemingly unreachable heights, was not visible from the road below. It shrank back, scared from the edge of the great cliff and the grimly yawning depths. The huts, three or four in number, were all quiet, and could have been empty, so lonely they appeared. Behind them rose the dense forest, filling the background. In a rush-bottomed chair in front of the little store was the only person to be seen in the village—a man whose appearance was strangely out of place. He had the long, lean build of a mountain man; but instead of the usual brown jeans, he wore a blue flannel suit, and a dark straw hat was pulled down over his brow. This simple outfit and the cigar he smoked offended the already biased residents of Big Injun Mountain. They didn't think it was appropriate for Rufe Chadd to "get mixed up with those town ways and start wearing store clothes." His face was a stark contrast to the faces of the stoic mountaineers. It was sharply defined; the constant grind of thought had worn away the rougher lines, leaving clearly defined features with sudden shifts in expression. The process could be compared to the gradual erosion of those storied layers of his mountains by the force of their torrents.

And here was no quiet spirit. It could brook neither defeat nor control; conventional barriers went down before it; and thus some years ago it had come to pass that a raw fellow from the unknown wildernesses of the circuit was precipitated upon it as the attorney for the State. A startling sensation had awaited the dull court-rooms of the villages. The mountaineer seemed to have brought from his rugged heights certain subtle native instincts, and the wily doublings of the fox, the sudden savage spring of the catamount, the deadly sinuous approach of the copperhead, were displayed with a frightful effect translated into human antagonism. There was a great awakening of the somnolent bar; counsel for the defense became eager, active, zealous, but the juries fell under his domination, as the weak always submit to the strong. Those long-drawn cases that hang on from term to term because of faint-hearted tribunals, too merciful to convict, too just to acquit, vanished as if by magic from the docket. The besom of the law swept the country, and his name was a terror and a threat.

And there was no calm vibe. It couldn't handle defeat or control; standard barriers fell before it. A few years back, an inexperienced guy from the unknown depths of the circuit was suddenly thrown into the role of attorney for the State. The dull courtrooms of the villages were stirred up. The mountain man seemed to bring certain raw instincts from his rugged background, with the cunning twists of a fox, the sudden fierce leap of a cougar, and the deadly stealth of a copperhead snake, all displayed with terrifying effect in human conflict. The sleepy legal community woke up; defense attorneys became eager, active, and passionate, but the juries fell under his influence, just as the weak always yield to the strong. Those lengthy cases that dragged on from one term to the next because of timid judges, too merciful to convict and too fair to acquit, disappeared as if by magic from the docket. The law swept through the country, and his name became a source of fear and intimidation.

His brethren of the bar held him in somewhat critical estimation. It was said that his talents were not of a high order; that he knew no law; that he possessed only a remarkable dexterity with the few broad principles familiar to him, and a certain swift suppleness in their application, alike effectual and imposing. He was a natural orator, they admitted. His success lay in his influence on a jury, and his influence on a jury was due to a magnetic earnestness and so strong a belief in his own powers that every word carried conviction with it. But he did not see in its entirety the massive grandeur of that greatest monument of human intellect known as the common law of England.

His peers at the bar viewed him with a somewhat critical eye. It was said that his abilities weren't that impressive; that he lacked real legal knowledge; that he only had a remarkable skill with the few broad principles he was familiar with and a certain quick adaptability in applying them, both effective and striking. They acknowledged he was a natural speaker. His success came from his influence over a jury, which stemmed from a compelling earnestness and such a strong belief in his own abilities that every word he spoke felt convincing. However, he didn't fully grasp the immense significance of the greatest achievement of human intellect known as the common law of England.

In the face of all detraction, however, there were the self-evident facts of his success and the improvement in the moral atmosphere wrought during his term of office. He was thinking of these things as he sat with his absorbed eyes fastened upon the horizon, and of the change in himself since he had left his humble home on the slope of Big Injun Mounting. There he had lived seventeen years in ignorance of the alphabet; he was the first of his name who could write it. From an almost primitive state he had overtaken the civilization of Ephesus and Colbury,—no great achievement, it might seem to a sophisticated imagination; but the mountains were a hundred years behind the progress of those centres. His talents had burst through the stony crust of circumstance, like the latent fires of a volcano. And he had plans for the future. Only a short while ago he had been confident when he thought of them; now they were hampered by the great jeopardy of his reëlection, because of the egregious blindness that could not distinguish duty from malice, justice from persecution. He had felt the strength of education and civilization; he was beginning to feel the terrible strength of ignorance. His faith in his own powers was on the wane. He had experienced a suffocating sense of impotence when, in stumping Big Injun Mounting, he had been called upon by the meagre but vociferous crowd to justify the hard bearing of the prosecution upon Josh Green "fur stealin' of Squire Bibb's old gray mare, that ye knows, Rufe,—fur ye hev plowed with her,—warn't wuth more 'n ten dollars. Ef Josh hedn't been in the dark, he wouldn't hev teched sech a pore old critter. Tell us 'bout 'n seven year in the pen'tiary fur a mare wuth ten dollars." What possibility—even with Chadd's wordy dexterity—of satisfying such demands as this! He found that the strength of ignorance lies in its blundering brutality. And he found, too, that mental supremacy does not of its inherent nature always aspire, but can be bent downward to low ends. The opposing candidates made capital of these illogical attacks; they charged him with his most brilliant exploits as ingenious perversions of the law and attempts upon the liberties of the people. Chadd began to despair of dissipating the prejudice and ignorance so readily crystallized by his opponents, and the only savage instinct left to him was to die game. He justified his past conduct by the curt declaration that he had done his duty according to the law, and he asked the votes of his fellow-citizens with an arrogant hauteur worthy of Coriolanus.

In spite of all the criticism, the undeniable facts of his success and the improvement in the moral climate during his time in office stood out. He thought about these things as he sat with his focused gaze fixed on the horizon, reflecting on how much he had changed since leaving his humble home on the slope of Big Injun Mountain. He had lived there for seventeen years without knowing the alphabet; he was the first in his family to be able to write it. From a nearly primitive existence, he had caught up with the civilization of Ephesus and Colbury—though it might not seem like much of an achievement to a more refined mind, the mountains were a hundred years behind the progress of those places. His talents had broken through the tough shell of his circumstances, like the hidden fires of a volcano. And he had plans for the future. Not long ago, he felt confident thinking about them; now they were weighed down by the great risk of losing his re-election, due to the glaring blindness that couldn’t tell duty from malice, or justice from persecution. He had felt the power of education and civilization; now he was beginning to feel the terrible power of ignorance. His faith in his own abilities was fading. He had felt an overwhelming sense of helplessness when, while campaigning in Big Injun Mountain, he was called upon by the small but loud crowd to explain the harsh handling of the prosecution against Josh Green "for stealing Squire Bibb's old gray mare, that you know, Rufe—because you've plowed with her—wasn't worth more than ten dollars. If Josh hadn't been in the dark, he wouldn't have touched such a poor old creature. Give him 'bout seven years in the penitentiary for a mare worth ten dollars." What chance—even with Chadd's eloquence—did he have of satisfying demands like this? He realized that the power of ignorance comes from its clumsy brutality. He also discovered that mental superiority doesn’t always aim high, but can be directed toward low purposes. The opposing candidates took advantage of these unreasonable attacks; they accused him of his most brilliant accomplishments as clever distortions of the law and assaults on the people's freedoms. Chadd began to lose hope of dispelling the prejudice and ignorance that his opponents had so easily fostered, and the only fierce instinct left in him was to stand strong. He defended his past actions with the simple statement that he had done his duty according to the law and asked for the votes of his fellow citizens with a boldness worthy of Coriolanus.

The afternoon was wearing away; the lengthening shadows were shifting; the solitary figure that had been motionless in the shade was now motionless in the golden sunshine. A sound broke upon the air other than the muffled thunder of the falls and the droning reiteration of the katydid. There came from the rocky path threading the forest the regular beat of horses' hoofs, and in a few moments three men rode into the clearing that sloped to the verge of the cliff. The first faint footfall was a spell to wake the Settlement to sudden life: sundry feminine faces were thrust out of the rude windows; bevies of lean-limbed, tow-headed, unkempt children started up from unexpected nooks; the store-keeper strolled to the door, and stood with his pipe in his mouth, leaning heavily against the frame; and Rufus Chadd changed his position with a slow, lounging motion, and turned his eyes upon the road.

The afternoon was fading; the shadows were getting longer and shifting. The lone figure that had been still in the shade was now still in the warm sunlight. A sound broke the quiet besides the muffled roar of the falls and the constant buzzing of the katydids. From the rocky path winding through the forest came the steady sound of horses' hooves, and in a few moments, three men rode into the clearing that sloped down to the edge of the cliff. The first distant footfall seemed to wake the Settlement to life: various women leaned out of the rough windows; groups of scruffy, tow-headed kids jumped up from hidden spots; the storekeeper strolled to the door and stood with his pipe in his mouth, leaning heavily against the frame; and Rufus Chadd shifted his position lazily and turned his gaze toward the road.

"Waal," said the store-keeper, with frank criticism, as the trio came in sight, "Isaac Boker's drunk agin. It's the natur' of the critter, I'm a-thinkin'. He hev been ter the still, ez sure ez ye air born. I hopes 't ain't a dancin'-drunk he hev got. The las' time he hed a dancin'-drunk, he jes' bounced up an' down the floor, an' hollered an' sung an' sech, an' made sech a disturbament that the Settlemint war kep' awake till daybreak, mighty nigh. 'T war mighty pore enjoymint for the Settlemint. 'T war like sittin' up with the sick an' dead, stiddier along of a happy critter like him. I'm powerful sorry fur his wife, 'kase he air mighty rough ter her when he air drunk; he cut her once a toler'ble bad slash. She hev hed ter do all the work fur four year,—plowin', an' choppin' wood, an cookin', an' washin', an' sech. It hev aged her some. An' all her chillen is gals,—little gals. Boys, now, mought grow some help, but gals is more no 'count the bigger they gits. She air a tried woman, surely. Isaac is drunk ez a constancy,—dancin'-drunk, mos'ly. Nuthin' kin stop him."

"Waal," said the storekeeper, with honest criticism, as the trio came into view, "Isaac Boker's drunk again. It's just his nature, I think. He's been to the still, that's for sure. I hope it's not a dancing-drunk he's got this time. The last time he was a dancing-drunk, he just bounced up and down the floor, hollered and sang and all that, and made such a disturbance that the Settlement was kept awake until dawn, nearly. It was a pretty poor experience for the Settlement. It was like staying up with the sick and the dead, dealing with a happy guy like him. I'm really sorry for his wife, because he's pretty rough on her when he's drunk; he once gave her a pretty nasty cut. She's had to do all the work for four years—plowing, chopping wood, cooking, washing, and all that. It's aged her quite a bit. And all her kids are girls—little girls. Boys might grow up to be some help, but girls are less useful as they get older. She's a worn-out woman, for sure. Isaac is drunk as usual—mostly dancing-drunk. Nothing can stop him."

"A good thrashing would help him a little, I'm thinking," drawled the lawyer. "And if I lived here as a constancy I'd give it to him the first sober spell he had." His speech was slow; his voice was spiritless and languid; he still possessed the tone and idiom of the mountaineer, but he had lost the characteristic pronunciation, more probably from the influence of other associations than an appreciation of its incorrectness.

"A good beating would do him some good, I think," the lawyer said lazily. "And if I lived here all the time, I'd give it to him during his first sober moment." He spoke slowly, his voice flat and tired; he still had the mountain person's tone and style, but he had lost the distinctive pronunciation, likely due to other influences rather than realizing it was incorrect.

"That ain't the right sort o' sawder fur a candidate, Rufe," the store-keeper admonished him. "An' 'tain't safe no how fur sech a slim, stringy boy ez ye air ter talk that way 'bout'n Isaac Boker. He air a tremenjous man, an' ez strong ez an ox."

"That's not the right kind of talk for a candidate, Rufe," the storekeeper warned him. "And it's not safe for a slim, lanky kid like you to speak that way about Isaac Boker. He's a huge man and as strong as an ox."

"I can thrash any man who beats his wife," protested the officer of the law. "I don't see how the Settlement gets its own consent to let that sort of thing go on."

"I can take down any man who hits his wife," protested the police officer. "I don't understand how the Settlement gives its consent to allow that kind of thing to happen."

"She air his wife," said the store-keeper, who was evidently of conservative tendencies. "An' she air powerful tuk up with him. I hev hearn her 'low ez he air better dancin'-drunk than other men sober. She could hev married other men; she didn't suffer with hevin' no ch'ice."

"She is his wife," said the storekeeper, who obviously had conservative views. "And she's really taken with him. I've heard her say that he dances better when he's drunk than other men do when they're sober. She could've married other guys; she didn't have to settle for him."

"He ought to be put under lock and key," said Chadd. "That would sober him. I wish these dancin'-drunk fellows could be sent to the state-prison. I could make a jury think ten years was almost too good for that wife-beating chap. I'd like to see him get away from me."

"He should be locked up," said Chadd. "That would straighten him out. I wish these drunken dancers could be sent to prison. I could convince a jury that ten years is almost too lenient for that guy who hits his wife. I’d love to see him out of my way."

There was a certain calculating cruelty in his face as he said this. He was animated by no chivalric impulse to protect the weak and helpless; the spirit roused within him was rather the instinct of the beast of prey. The store-keeper looked askance at him. In his mental review of the changes wrought in the past few years there was one that had escaped Rufus Chadd's attention. The process was insinuating and gradual, but the result was bold and obvious. In the constant opposition in which he was placed to criminals, in the constant contemplation of the worst phases of human nature, in the active effort which his duty required to bring the perpetrators of all foul deeds to justice, he had grown singularly callous and pitiless. The individual criminal had been merged in the abstract idea of crime. After the first few cases he had been able to banish the visions of the horrors brought upon other lives than that of the prisoner by the verdict of guilty. Mother, wife, children,—these pale, pursuing phantoms were exorcised by prosaic custom, and his steely insensibility made him the master of many a harrowing court-room scene.

There was a certain calculating cruelty in his face as he said this. He was driven by no noble desire to protect the weak and helpless; the feeling that stirred within him was more like the instinct of a predator. The storekeeper looked at him warily. In his mental review of the changes that had taken place over the past few years, there was one that had escaped Rufus Chadd's notice. The process was subtle and gradual, but the outcome was clear and striking. In his constant opposition to criminals, in his ongoing contemplation of the darkest aspects of human nature, in the relentless effort his job required to bring those who committed heinous acts to justice, he had become remarkably callous and unfeeling. The individual criminal had merged into the abstract concept of crime. After the first few cases, he had been able to push away the images of the horrors inflicted on lives beyond that of the guilty party by the guilty verdict. Mother, wife, children—these pale, haunting figures were banished by routine, and his cold insensitivity allowed him to manage many a gut-wrenching courtroom scene.

"That would be a mighty pore favor ter his wife," said the store-keeper, after a pause. "She hed ruther be beat."

"That would be a big favor to his wife," said the storekeeper, after a pause. "She would rather be hit."

The three men had dismounted, hitched their horses, and were now approaching the store. Rufus Chadd rose to shake hands with the foremost of the party. The quick fellow was easily schooled, and the store-keeper's comment upon his lack of policy induced him to greet the new-comers with a greater show of cordiality than he had lately practiced toward his constituents.

The three men got off their horses, tied them up, and were now walking toward the store. Rufus Chadd stood up to shake hands with the leader of the group. The quick-witted guy was easily influenced, and the storekeeper's remark about his lack of strategy made him greet the newcomers with more warmth than he had recently shown his constituents.

"I never looked ter find ye hyar this soon, Rufe," said one of the arrivals. "What hev ye done with the t'other candidates?"

"I didn’t expect to find you here this soon, Rufe," said one of the newcomers. "What have you done with the other candidates?"

"I left them behind, as I always do," said Chadd, laughing, "and as I expect to do again next Thursday week, if I can get you to promise to vote for me."

"I left them behind, just like I always do," Chadd said with a laugh, "and I plan to do the same next Thursday if I can convince you to promise to vote for me."

"I ain't a-goin' ter vote fur ye,—nary time," interpolated Boker, as he reeled heavily forward.

"I’m not going to vote for you—not at all," Boker added, as he stumbled heavily forward.

"Well, I'm sorry for that," said Chadd, with the candidate's long-suffering patience. "Why?"

"Well, I’m sorry about that," Chadd said, his patience wearing thin. "Why?"

Isaac Boker felt hardly equal to argument, but he steadied himself as well as he could, and looked vacantly into the eyes of his interlocutor for some pointed inspiration; perhaps he caught there an intimation of the contempt in which he was held. He still hesitated, but with a sudden anger inflaming his bloated face. Chadd waited a moment for a reply; then he turned carelessly away, saying that he would stroll about a little, as sitting still so long was fatiguing.

Isaac Boker felt barely up to the challenge of arguing, but he composed himself as best as he could and stared blankly into his conversation partner's eyes, hoping for some clear insight; maybe he sensed a hint of the disdain directed toward him. He still hesitated, but suddenly a surge of anger flushed his flushed face. Chadd paused for a moment to see if he would respond; then he casually turned away, saying he would take a stroll since sitting still for so long was tiring.

"Ef ye war whar ye oughter be, a-follerin' of the plow," said Isaac Boker, "ye wouldn't git a chance ter tire yerself a-sittin' in a cheer."

" If you were where you should be, following the plow," said Isaac Boker, "you wouldn't get a chance to tire yourself sitting in a chair."

"I don't hold myself too high for plowing," replied Chadd, in a conciliatory manner. "Plowing is likely work for any able-bodied man." This speech was unlucky. There was in it an undercurrent of suggestion to Isaac Boker's suspicious conscience. He thought Chadd intended a covert allusion to his own indolence in the field, and his wife's activity as a substitute. "It was only an accident that took me out of the furrow," Chadd continued.

"I don’t think too highly of myself for plowing," Chadd replied, trying to be friendly. "Plowing is just work that any able-bodied man can do." This comment didn’t land well. It hinted at something that made Isaac Boker's suspicious conscience uneasy. He believed Chadd was subtly referencing his own laziness in the field, and his wife's hard work as a replacement. "It was just an accident that got me out of the furrow," Chadd added.

"'Twar a killin' accident ter the country," said Isaac Boker. "Fur they tells me that ye don't know no more law than a mounting fox." Chadd laughed, but he sneered too. His patience was evaporating. Still he restrained his irritation by an effort, and Boker went on: "Folks ez is bred ter the plow ain't got the sense an' the showin' ter make peart lawyers. An' that's why I ain't a-goin' ter vote fur ye."

"'It was a devastating accident for the community,' said Isaac Boker. 'Because I've heard you don't know any more about the law than a mountain fox.' Chadd laughed, but he also sneered. His patience was wearing thin. Still, he held back his frustration with some effort, and Boker continued: 'People who are raised to work the land don't have the smarts or the drive to be sharp lawyers. And that's why I’m not going to vote for you.'"

This plain speaking was evidently relished by the others; they said nothing, but their low acquiescent chuckle demonstrated their opinion.

This straightforward talk was clearly enjoyed by the others; they didn’t say anything, but their soft, agreeing chuckles showed what they thought.

"I haven't asked you for your vote," said Chadd, sharply.

"I haven't asked you for your vote," Chadd said curtly.

The burly fellow paused for a moment, in stupid surprise; then his drunken wrath rising, he exclaimed, "An' whyn't ye ax me fur my vote, then? Ye're the damnedest critter in this country, Rufe Chadd, ter come electioneerin' on Big Injun Mounting, an' a-makin' out ez I ain't good enough ter be axed ter vote fur ye! Ye hed better not be tryin' ter sot me down lower 'n other folks. I'll break that empty cymlin' of a head of yourn," and he raised his clenched fist.

The big guy paused for a moment, completely stunned; then, with his drunken anger flaring up, he shouted, "Why didn't you ask me for my vote, then? You're the biggest jerk in this country, Rufe Chadd, coming to campaign on Big Injun Mountain and acting like I'm not good enough to be asked to vote for you! You better not try to put me down lower than anyone else. I'll smash that empty head of yours," he said, raising his clenched fist.

"If you come a step nearer I'll throw you off the bluff," said Chadd.

"If you come any closer, I'll throw you off the cliff," Chadd said.

"That'll be a powerful cur'ous tale ter go the rounds o' the mounting," remarked one of the disaffected by-standers. "Ye hev done all ye kin ter torment yer own folks up hyar on Big Injun Mounting what elected ye afore; an' then ye comes up hyar agin, an' the fust man that says he won't vote fur ye must be flunged off'n the bluff."

"That'll be a really interesting story to spread around the mountain," said one of the frustrated onlookers. "You've done everything you can to harass your own people here on Big Indian Mountain who elected you before; and then you come back up here again, and the first person who says they won't vote for you should be thrown off the cliff."

"'Pears ter me," said Isaac Boker, surlily, and still shaking his fist, "ez thar ain't all yit in the pen'tiary that desarves ter go thar. Better men than ye air, Rufe Chadd, hev been locked up, an' hung too, sence ye war elected ter office."

"'Pears to me," said Isaac Boker, grumpily, still shaking his fist, "that not everyone in the penitentiary deserves to be there. Better men than you, Rufe Chadd, have been locked up and even hung since you were elected to office."

There was a sudden change in the lawyer's attitude; a strong tension of the muscles, as of a wild-cat ready to spring; the quickening of his blood showed in his scarlet face; there was a fiery spark in his darkening eyes.

There was a sudden shift in the lawyer's demeanor; his muscles tensed like a wildcat ready to pounce; the rush of blood flushed his face bright red; a fiery spark flickered in his darkening eyes.

"Oh, come now, Rufe," said one of the lookers-on hastily. "Ye oughtn't ter git ter fightin' with a drunken man. Jes' walk yerself off fur a while."

"Oh, come on, Rufe," said one of the onlookers quickly. "You shouldn't get into a fight with a drunk. Just walk away for a while."

"Oh, he can say what he likes while he's drunk," replied Chadd, with a short, scornful laugh. "But I tell you, now, he had better keep his fists for his wife."

"Oh, he can say whatever he wants when he's drunk," Chadd replied with a brief, contemptuous laugh. "But I'm telling you, he should really save his fists for his wife."

The others gathered about the great, massive fellow, who was violently gesticulating and incoherently asserting his offended dignity. Chadd strolled away toward the gloomy woods, his hands in his pockets, and his eyes bent upon the ground. Glances of undisguised aversion followed him,—from the group about the store, from the figures in the windows and doors of the poor dwellings, even from the half-clad children who paused in their spiritless play to gaze after him. He was vaguely conscious of these pursuing looks of hatred, but only once he saw the universal sentiment expressed in a face. As the long shadows of the forest fell upon his path, he chanced to raise his eyes, and encountered those of a woman, standing in Boker's cabin. He went on, feeling like a martyr. The thick foliage closed upon him; the sound of his languid footsteps died in the distance, and the figures on the cliff stood in the sunset glow, watching the spot where he had disappeared, as silent and as motionless as if they had fallen under some strange, uncanny spell.

The others gathered around the huge guy, who was wildly waving his arms and angrily asserting his wounded pride. Chadd walked away toward the dark woods, his hands in his pockets and his eyes on the ground. Looks of open dislike followed him—from the group near the store, from figures in the windows and doorways of the poor houses, even from the half-dressed kids who stopped their dull play to stare after him. He sensed these looks of hatred, but only once did he see this feeling clearly expressed on someone's face. As the long shadows of the forest crept over his path, he happened to look up and met the gaze of a woman standing in Boker's cabin. He continued on, feeling like a martyr. The dense foliage surrounded him; the sound of his slow footsteps faded away, and the figures on the cliff stood in the sunset glow, watching the place where he had vanished, as silent and still as if they had fallen under some strange, eerie spell.

The calm of the woodland, the refreshing aromatic odors, the rising wind after the heat of the sultry day, exerted a revivifying influence upon the lawyer's spirits, as he walked on into the illimitable solitudes of the forest. Night was falling before he turned to retrace his way; above the opaque, colorless leaves there was the lambent glinting of a star; the fitful plaint of a whip-poor-will jarred the dark stillness; grotesque black shadows had mustered strong among the huge boles of the trees. But he took no note of the gathering gloom; somehow, his heart had grown suddenly light. He had forgotten the drunken wrangler and all the fretting turmoils of the canvass; once he caught himself in making plans, with his almost impossible success in the election as a basis. And yet, inconsistently enough, he felt a dismayed astonishment at his unaccountable elation. The workings of his own mind and their unexpected developments were always to him strange phenomena. He was introspective enough to take heed of this inward tumult, and he had a shrewd suspicion that more activity was there than in all the mental exercitations of the combined bench and bar of the circuit. But he harbored a vague distrust of this uncontrollable power within, so much stronger than the untutored creature to whom it appertained. A harassing sense of doubleness often possessed him, and he was torn by conflicting counsels,—the inherent inertia and conservatism of the mountaineer, who would fain follow forever the traditional customs of his ancestry, and an alien overwhelming impetus, which carried him on in spite of himself, and bewildered him with his own exploits. He was helpless under this unreasonable expectation of success, and regarded the mental gymnastic of joyous anticipation with perplexed surprise. "I'm fixing a powerful disappointment for myself," he said.

The peace of the forest, the refreshing scents in the air, and the cooling breeze after the heat of the muggy day lifted the lawyer's spirits as he walked deeper into the endless solitude of the woods. Night was falling before he turned to head back; above the dull, colorless leaves, there was a soft flicker of a star; the intermittent call of a whip-poor-will broke the dark stillness; eerie black shadows had gathered thick around the massive trunks of the trees. But he paid no attention to the encroaching darkness; somehow, his heart felt suddenly light. He had forgotten the drunken brawler and all the stressful struggles of the campaign; at one point, he found himself making plans, imagining his almost impossible success in the election as the foundation. Yet, curiously enough, he felt a baffled surprise at his inexplicable joy. The workings of his own mind and their unexpected outcomes were always strange to him. He was introspective enough to notice this inner turmoil, and he had a keen sense that there was more activity going on inside him than in all the mental efforts of the combined judges and lawyers in the circuit. But he felt a vague distrust of this uncontrollable force within, so much stronger than the simple man he was. A nagging sense of duality often haunted him, and he was torn by conflicting thoughts—the natural inertia and conservatism of the mountaineer, who would gladly stick to the traditional ways of his ancestors, and an alien, overwhelming drive that pushed him forward despite himself and confused him with his own achievements. He felt powerless against this unreasonable expectation of success and regarded the mental gymnastics of hopeful anticipation with puzzled surprise. "I'm setting myself up for a huge disappointment," he said.

He could now see, through the long vista of the road, the open space where the Settlement was perched upon the crag. The black, jagged outline of the rock serrated the horizon, and was cut sharply into the delicate, indefinable tints of the sky. Above it a great red moon was rising. There was the gleam of the waterfall; how did it give the sense of its emerald green in the darkness? The red, rising moon showed, but did not illumine, the humble cluster of log huts upon the great cliff. Here and there a dim yet genial flare of firelight came broadly flickering out into the night. It was darker still in the dense woods from which the road showed this nocturnal picture framed in the oak leaves above his head. But was a sudden flash of lightning shooting across that clear, tenderly-tinted sky? He felt his warm blood gushing down his face; he had a dizzying sense of falling heavily; and he heard, strangely dulled, a hoarse, terrified cry, which he knew he did not utter. It echoed far through the quiet woods, startling the apathetic inhabitants of the Settlement, and waking all the weird spirits of the rocks. The men sitting in the store took their pipes from their mouths, and looked at each other in surprise.

He could now see, along the long stretch of the road, the open area where the Settlement was set atop the cliff. The black, jagged outline of the rock broke the horizon and sharply contrasted with the soft, undefined colors of the sky. Above it, a big red moon was rising. There was the shimmer of the waterfall; how did it manage to convey its emerald green in the dark? The red, rising moon revealed, but didn't light up, the small cluster of log cabins on the steep cliff. Here and there, a faint yet warm glow of firelight flickered out into the night. It was even darker in the thick woods from which the road presented this nighttime scene framed by the oak leaves above him. But was that a sudden flash of lightning streaking across that clear, softly-colored sky? He felt his warm blood streaming down his face; he had a dizzy sensation of falling hard; and he heard, strangely muffled, a hoarse, terrified cry that he knew wasn’t from him. It echoed through the quiet woods, startling the indifferent residents of the Settlement and awakening all the strange spirits of the rocks. The men sitting in the store took their pipes out of their mouths and looked at each other in surprise.

"What's that?" asked one of the newly-arrived candidates, an Ephesus man, who held that the mountains were not over and above safe for civilized people, and was fain to investigate unaccustomed sounds.

"What's that?" asked one of the new candidates, a guy from Ephesus, who believed that the mountains weren't really safe for civilized people, and wanted to check out the strange sounds.

"Jes' somebody a-hollerin' fur thar cow, mebbe," said the store-keeper. "Or mebbe it air Isaac Boker, ez gits dancin'-drunk wunst in a while."

"Just someone shouting for their cow, maybe," said the storekeeper. "Or maybe it's Isaac Boker, who gets super drunk once in a while."

The cry rose again, filling all the rocky abysses and mountain heights with a frenzied horror. From the woods a dark figure emerged upon the crag; it seemed to speed along the sky, blotting out, as it went, the moon and stars. The men at the store sprang to their feet, shaken by a speechless agitation, when Isaac Boker rushed in among them, suddenly sobered, and covered with blood.

The scream echoed once more, spreading a wild fear through all the rocky depths and high peaks. A dark figure appeared from the woods on the cliff; it looked like it was racing across the sky, blocking out the moon and stars as it went. The men at the store jumped to their feet, overwhelmed with a speechless anxiety, when Isaac Boker burst in among them, suddenly sober and covered in blood.

"I hev done it!" he exclaimed, with a pallid anguish upon his bloated face. "I met him in the woods, an' slashed him ter pieces."

"I've done it!" he exclaimed, with a pale anguish on his swollen face. "I met him in the woods and slashed him to pieces."

The red moon turned to gold in the sky, and the world was flooded with a gentle splendor; and as the hours went by no louder sound broke upon the gilded dusk than the throb of the cataract, pulsing like the heart of the mountains, and the stir of the wind about the rude hut where the wounded man had been carried.

The red moon turned to gold in the sky, and the world was flooded with a gentle splendor; as the hours passed, no louder sound broke the gilded dusk than the throb of the waterfall, pulsing like the heart of the mountains, and the rustle of the wind around the crude hut where the wounded man had been taken.

When Rufus Chadd opened his eyes upon the awe-stricken faces that clustered about the bed, he had no need to be reminded of what had happened. The wave of life, which it seemed would have carried him so far, had left him stranded here in the ebb, while all the world sailed on.

When Rufus Chadd opened his eyes to the amazed faces gathered around the bed, he didn't need any reminders of what had happened. The surge of life that seemed like it would carry him far had left him stuck in this moment, while the rest of the world moved on.

"They hev got Isaac Boker tied hard an' fast, Rufe," said the store-keeper, in an attempt to reply to the complex changes of expression that flitted over the pale face.

"They've got Isaac Boker tied up tight, Rufe," said the storekeeper, trying to address the complicated changes in expression that passed over the pale face.

Chadd did not answer. He was thinking that no adequate retribution could be inflicted upon Isaac Boker. The crime was not only the destruction of merely sensuous human life, but, alas, of that subtler entity of human schemes, and upward-reaching ambitions, and the immeasurable opportunity of achievement, which after all is the essence of the thing called life. He was to die at the outset of his career, which his own steadfast purpose and unaided talent had rendered honorable and brilliant, for the unreasoning fury of a drunken mountaineer. And this was an end for a man who had turned his ambitious eyes upon a chief-justice's chair,—an absurd ambition but for its splendid effrontery! In all this bitterness, however, it was some comfort to know that the criminal had not escaped.

Chadd didn’t respond. He was contemplating that no punishment would ever be enough for Isaac Boker. The crime was not just the taking of a senseless life, but, unfortunately, the loss of those deeper human dreams, aspirations, and the endless possibilities of achievement, which are ultimately what make life meaningful. He was set to die before his journey had begun, a journey that his own determination and natural talent had made honorable and bright, thanks to the irrational rage of a drunken man from the mountains. And this was the fate for someone who had dared to aim for a chief justice's position—an outrageous ambition, but one marked by its boldness! Yet amid all this sorrow, there was some comfort in knowing that the criminal had not gotten away.

"Are you able to tell how it happened, Chadd?" asked one of the lawyers.

"Can you explain how it happened, Chadd?" one of the lawyers asked.

As Chadd again opened his eyes, they fell upon the face of a woman standing just within the door,—so drawn and piteous a face, with such lines of patient endurance burnt into it, with such a woful prophecy in the sunken, horror-stricken eyes, he turned his head that he might see it no more. He remembered that face with another expression upon it. It had given him a look like a stab from the door of Boker's hut, when he had passed in the afternoon. He wished never to see it again, and yet he was constrained to glance back. There it was, with its quiver of a prescient heart-break. He felt a strange inward thrill, a bewildering rush of emotion. That sense of doubleness and development which so mystified him was upon him now. He was surprised at himself when he said, distinctly, so that all might hear, "If I die—don't let them prosecute Isaac Boker."

As Chadd opened his eyes again, they landed on the face of a woman standing just inside the door—a face so drawn and full of suffering, with lines of patient endurance etched into it, and such a sorrowful prediction in her sunken, terrified eyes, that he turned his head to avoid seeing it any longer. He remembered that face with a different expression. It had given him a look like a jolt when he passed by the door of Boker's hut earlier that afternoon. He never wanted to see it again, yet he felt compelled to glance back. There it was, trembling with the weight of a looming heartbreak. He experienced a strange internal thrill, a confusing rush of emotions. The sense of duality and growth that mystified him was present once more. He was surprised by himself when he spoke, clearly enough for everyone to hear, "If I die—don’t let them go after Isaac Boker."

There was a sudden silence, so intense that it seemed as if the hush of death had already fallen, or that the primeval stillness of creation was never broken. Had his soul gone out into the night? Was there now in the boundless spaces of the moonlit air some mysterious presence, as incomprehensible to this little cluster of overawed humanity as to the rocks and woods of the mighty, encompassing wilderness? How did the time pass? It seemed hours before the stone-like figure stirred again, and yet the white radiance on the puncheon floor had not shifted. His consciousness was coming back from those vague border-lands of life and death. He was about to speak once more. "Nobody can know how it happened except me." And then again, as he drifted away, "Don't let them prosecute."

There was a sudden silence, so intense it felt like the hush of death had already settled in, or that the ancient stillness of creation had never been interrupted. Had his soul slipped into the night? Was there now in the vastness of the moonlit air some mysterious presence, as unfathomable to this small group of stunned people as to the rocks and trees of the immense, surrounding wilderness? How much time had passed? It felt like hours before the stone-like figure moved again, yet the white light on the wooden floor remained unchanged. His awareness was returning from those blurry realms between life and death. He was about to speak again. "Nobody can know how it happened except me." And then, as he drifted away once more, "Don't let them prosecute."

There was a fine subject of speculation at the Settlement the next morning, when the country-side gathered to hear the candidates speak. The story of Isaac Boker's attack upon Rufus Chadd was repeated to every new-comer, and the astonishment created by the victim's uncharacteristic request when he had thought he was dying revived with each consecutive recital. It presently became known that no fatal result was to be anticipated. The doctor, who lived twenty miles distant, and who had just arrived, said that the wounds, though painful, were not dangerous, and his opinion added another element of interest to the eager discussion of the incident.

There was plenty to talk about at the Settlement the next morning when the locals gathered to hear the candidates speak. The story of Isaac Boker's attack on Rufus Chadd was shared with every newcomer, and the shock caused by the victim's unexpected request when he thought he was dying came back to life with each telling. It soon became clear that there was no need to worry about a fatal outcome. The doctor, who lived twenty miles away and had just arrived, said that while the wounds were painful, they weren't life-threatening, and his assessment added even more intrigue to the lively discussion about the incident.

Thus relieved of the shadow of an impending tragedy, the knots of men congregated on the great cliff gradually gave themselves up to the object of their meeting. Candidates of smiling mien circulated among the saturnine, grave-faced mountaineers. In circulation, too, were other genial spirits, familiarly known as "apple-jack." It was a great occasion for the store-keeper; so pressing and absorbing were his duties that he had not a moment's respite, until Mr. Slade, the first speaker of the day, mounted a stump in front of the store and began to address his fellow-citizens. He was a large, florid man, with a rotund voice and a smooth manner, and he was considered Chadd's most formidable competitor. The mountaineers hastily concentrated in a semicircle about him, listening with the close attention singularly characteristic of rural audiences. Behind the crowd was the immensity of the unpeopled forests; below, the mad fret of the cataract; above, the vast hemisphere of the lonely skies; and far, far away was the infinite stretching of those blue ranges that the Indians called The Endless.

Relieved from the worry of an impending tragedy, the groups of men gathered on the great cliff gradually focused on their purpose for meeting. Candidates with friendly smiles moved among the serious-faced mountaineers. Also present were other cheerful characters, commonly referred to as "apple-jack." It was a big day for the storekeeper; his duties were so demanding and absorbing that he didn’t have a moment to spare until Mr. Slade, the first speaker of the day, stepped up onto a stump in front of the store and started addressing his fellow citizens. He was a tall, hearty man with a deep voice and a smooth demeanor, and he was seen as Chadd's most significant rival. The mountaineers quickly formed a semicircle around him, listening with the focused attention typical of rural audiences. Behind the crowd loomed the vast, empty forests; below, the wild rush of the waterfall; above, the expansive stretch of the solitary sky; and far away lay the endless blue mountains that the Indians called The Endless.

Chadd had lain in a sort of stupor all the morning, vaguely conscious of the distant mountains visible through the open window,—vaguely conscious of numbers of curious faces that came to the door and gazed in upon him,—vaguely conscious of the candidate's voice beginning to resound in the noontide stillness. Then he roused himself.

Chadd had been lying in a kind of daze all morning, somewhat aware of the distant mountains visible through the open window—somewhat aware of the many curious faces that came to the door and stared in at him—somewhat aware of the candidate's voice starting to echo in the midday stillness. Then he snapped out of it.

The sensation of the first speech came at its close. As Chadd lay in expectation of the stentorian "Hurrah for Slade!" which should greet his opponent's peroration, his face flushed, his hands trembled; he lifted himself on his elbow, and listened again. He could hardly trust his senses, yet there it was once more,—his own name, vibrating in a prolonged cheer among the mountain heights, and echoing far down the narrow valley.

The feeling of the first speech hit him at the end. As Chadd lay there waiting for the loud "Hurrah for Slade!" that should celebrate his opponent's final words, his face went red, and his hands shook; he propped himself up on his elbow and listened again. He could barely believe what he was hearing, but there it was again—his own name, resonating in a long cheer among the mountain peaks, echoing deep into the narrow valley.

That sympathetic heart of the multitude, so quick to respond to a noble impulse, had caught the true interpretation of last night's scene, and to-day all the barriers of ignorance and misunderstanding were down.

That compassionate heart of the crowd, so ready to react to a noble impulse, had grasped the true meaning of last night's event, and today all the barriers of ignorance and misunderstanding were gone.

The heaviest majority ever polled on Big Injun Mounting was in the reëlection of the attorney for the State. And the other candidates thought it a fine electioneering trick to get one's self artistically slashed; they became misanthropic in their views of the inconstancy of the people, and lost faith in saving grace and an overruling Providence.

The largest majority ever recorded on Big Injun Mounting was during the reelection of the state attorney. The other candidates thought it was a clever campaigning move to get themselves criticized; they grew cynical about the fickleness of the public and lost faith in redemption and a guiding higher power.

This uncharacteristic episode in the life of Rufus Chadd was always incomprehensible to his associates. He hardly understood it himself. He had made a keen and subtle distinction in a high moral principle. As Abel Stubbs said, in extenuation of the inconsistency of voting for him, "I knows that this hyar Rufe Chadd air a powerful hard man, an' evil-doers ez offends agin the law ain't got no mercy ter expect from him. But then he don't hold no grudge agin them ez hev done him harm. An' that's what I'm a-lookin' at."

This unusual episode in Rufus Chadd's life was always baffling to his colleagues. He barely understood it himself. He had made a sharp and subtle distinction in a high moral principle. As Abel Stubbs explained to justify his inconsistency in voting for him, "I know that this here Rufe Chadd is a really tough guy, and wrongdoers who break the law can’t expect any mercy from him. But he doesn't hold a grudge against those who have done him harm. And that's what I'm considering."


THE ROMANCE OF SUNRISE ROCK.

I.

I.

What momentous morning arose with so resplendent a glory that it should have imprinted its indelible reflection on the face of this great Cumberland cliff; what eloquence of dawn so splendid that the dumb, insensate stone should catch its spirit and retain its expression forever and forever? A deep, narrow stream flowed around the base of the "paint-rock." Immense fissures separated it from its fellows. And charged with its subtler meaning it towered above them in isolated majesty. Moons waxed and waned; nations rose and fell; centuries came and went. And still it faced the east, and still, undimmed by storm and time, it reiterated the miracle and the prophecy of the rising sun.

What a remarkable morning it was, shining with such brilliance that it should have left a lasting mark on this magnificent Cumberland cliff; what a beautiful dawn so awe-inspiring that even the hard, lifeless stone should capture its essence and hold onto that expression forever? A deep, narrow stream flowed around the base of the "paint-rock." Huge cracks separated it from its neighbors. And, filled with its deeper meaning, it stood tall above them in its solitary grandeur. Moons came and went; nations emerged and disappeared; centuries passed by. And yet, it continued to face the east, still shining despite the storms and the passage of time, repeating the miracle and the promise of the rising sun.

"'Twar painted by the Injuns,—that's what I hev always hearn tell. Them folks war mos'ly leagued with the Evil One. That's how it kem they war gin the grasp ter scuffle up that thar bluff, ez air four hunderd feet high an' ez sheer ez a wall; it ain't got foothold fur a cockle-burr. I hev hearn tell that when they got ez high ez the pictur' they war 'lowed by the devil ter stand on air. An' I believes it. Else how'd they make out ter do that thar job?"

"'Twas painted by the Indians—that's what I've always heard. Those people were mostly allied with the Evil One. That's how they managed to scramble up that bluff, which is about four hundred feet high and as sheer as a wall; it doesn't have a foothold for a cocklebur. I've heard that when they got as high as the picture, they were allowed by the devil to stand on air. And I believe it. Otherwise, how did they manage to do that job?"

The hairy animal, whose jeans suit proclaimed him man, propounded this inquiry with a triumphant air. There was a sarcastic curve on the lips of his interlocutor. Clearly it was not worth his while to enlighten the mountaineer,—to talk of the unknown races whose work so long survives their names, to speculate upon the extent of their civilization and the mechanical contrivances that reached those dizzy heights, to confide his nebulous fancies clustering about the artist-poet who painted this grand, rude lyric upon the immortal rock. He turned from the strange picture, suspended between heaven and earth, and looked over the rickety palings into the dismal little graveyard of the mountaineers. Nowhere, he thought, was the mystery of life and death so gloomily suggested. Humanity seemed so small, so transitory a thing, expressed in these few mounds in the midst of the undying grandeur of the mountains. Material nature conquers; man and mind are as naught. Only a reiteration of a well-conned lesson, for so far this fine young fellow of thirty had made a failure of life; the material considerations with which he had wrestled had got the better of him, and a place within the palings seemed rather preferable to his place without.

The hairy guy, whose jeans obviously showed he was one of the men, asked this question with a proud attitude. There was a sarcastic smirk on his conversation partner’s lips. Clearly, it wasn’t worth his time to explain things to the mountain guy—to discuss the unknown cultures whose work has outlived their names, to think about how advanced their civilization was and the tools that took them to such heights, to share his vague ideas about the artist-poet who painted this grand, rough masterpiece on the everlasting rock. He turned away from the strange image, hanging between sky and ground, and looked over the rickety fence into the grim little graveyard of the mountain folks. Nowhere, he felt, was the mystery of life and death so darkly portrayed. Humanity seemed so insignificant, such a fleeting thing, represented by these few graves amidst the everlasting beauty of the mountains. Nature dominates; humans and their thoughts mean nothing. It was just a repeating of a well-learned lesson, for until now this fine young man of thirty had been failing at life; the material challenges he had faced had overwhelmed him, and having a spot within the fence seemed much better than being outside it.

It was still strange to John Cleaver that his lines should have fallen in this wilderness; that the door of that house on the slope of the Backbone should be the only door upon earth open to him; that such men as this mountaineer were his neighbors and associates. The fact seemed a grotesque libel on likelihood. As he rode away he was thinking of his costly education, the sacrifices his father had made to secure it, his dying conviction, which was such a comfort to him, that in it he had left his penniless son a better thing than wealth,—with such training and such abilities what might he not reach? When John Cleaver returned from his medical studies in Paris to the Western city of his birth, to scores of charity patients, and to a fine social position by virtue of the prestige of a good family, there seemed only a little waiting needed. But the old physicians held on to life and the paying practice with the grip of the immortals. And he found it difficult to sustain existence while he waited.

It still struck John Cleaver as odd that he should end up in this remote place; that the door of that house on the slope of the Backbone was the only door on earth open to him; that people like this mountaineer were his neighbors and friends. It felt like a bizarre twist of fate. As he rode away, he thought about the expensive education he had received, the sacrifices his father made to ensure it, and his father's unwavering belief, which comforted him, that he had left his broke son a greater gift than money— with such training and such skills, what could he not achieve? When John Cleaver returned from his medical studies in Paris to the Western city where he was born, to countless charity patients, and to a respected social standing because of his good family, it seemed like he only needed to wait a little longer. But the older doctors clung to life and their paying practices as if they were immortal. And he found it hard to get by while he waited.

At the lowest ebb of his fortunes there came to him a letter from a young lawyer, much in his own professional position, but who had confessed himself beaten and turned sheep-farmer. Here, among the mountains of East Tennessee, said the letter, he had bought a farm for a song; the land was the poorest he ever saw, but served his purposes, and the house was a phenomenal structure for these parts,—a six-room brick, built fifty years ago by a city man with a bucolic craze and consumptive tendencies. The people were terribly poor; still, if his friend would come he might manage to pick up something, for there was not a physician in a circuit of sixty miles.

At the lowest point of his fortunes, he received a letter from a young lawyer, who was in a similar professional situation but had admitted defeat and become a sheep farmer. In the letter, he mentioned that he had bought a farm for a low price among the mountains of East Tennessee; the land was the worst he had ever seen, but it met his needs, and the house was an impressive building for the area—a six-room brick house built fifty years ago by a city man with a rural obsession and health issues. The locals were extremely poor; however, if his friend came, he might be able to find something to do since there wasn't a doctor within a sixty-mile radius.

So Cleaver had turned his face to the mountains. But unlike the sheep-farmer he did not meet his reverses lightly. The man was at bay. And like a savage thing he took his ill-fortune by the throat. Success had seemed so near that there was something like the pain of death in giving up the life to which he had looked forward with such certainty. He could not console himself with this comatose state, and call it life. He often told himself that there was nothing left but to think of what he might have done, and eat out his heart. His ambition died hard.

So Cleaver had turned his face to the mountains. But unlike the sheep farmer, he didn't take his setbacks lightly. The man was cornered. And like a wild animal, he grabbed his bad luck by the throat. Success had felt so close that there was something like the pain of death in letting go of the life he had looked forward to with such certainty. He couldn't just accept this lifeless state and call it living. He often reminded himself that all he could do was think about what he could have achieved and let it eat away at him. His ambition was hard to kill.

As his horse ambled along, a gruff voice broke his reverie, "'Light an' hitch," called out the master of a wayside hovel.

As his horse walked slowly, a rough voice interrupted his thoughts, "'Light it and tie it up," shouted the owner of a roadside shack.

A man of different temperament might have found in Cleaver's uncouth surroundings some points of palliation. His heart might have warmed to the ignorant mountaineers' high and tender virtue of hospitality. A responsive respect might have been induced by the contemplation of their pride, so intense that it recognizes no superior, so inordinate that one is tempted to cry out, Here are the true republicans! or, indeed, Here are the only aristocrats! The rough fellow was shambling out to stop him with cordial insistence. An old crone, leaning on a stick in the door-way, called after her son, "Tell him ter 'light an' hitch, Peter, an' eat his supper along of we-uns." A young girl sitting on the rude porch, reeling yarn preparatory to weaving, glanced up, her sedate face suddenly illumined. Even the bare-footed, tow-headed children stood still in pleased expectation. Certainly John Cleaver's position in life was as false as it was painful. But the great human heart was here, untutored though it was, and roughly accoutred. And he himself had found that Greek and Latin do not altogether avail.

A man with a different outlook might have found some comfort in Cleaver's rough environment. He might have felt uplifted by the mountaineers' simple yet deep sense of hospitality. He could have developed a genuine respect for their pride, so strong that it doesn't recognize anyone as better, so extreme that you might want to shout, Here are the true republicans! or even, Here are the only aristocrats! The sturdy man was walking over to him with warm insistence. An old woman, leaning on a stick in the doorway, called after her son, "Tell him to stop and tie up his horse, Peter, and have dinner with us." A young girl sitting on the rough porch, spinning yarn in preparation for weaving, looked up, her calm face suddenly brightening. Even the barefoot, tow-headed kids stood still, waiting eagerly. There was no doubt that John Cleaver's place in life was as false as it was painful. But the essence of humanity was present, rough around the edges but genuine. And he had discovered that knowing Greek and Latin doesn't always help.

The little log-house was encompassed by the splendor of autumnal foliage. A purple haze clung to the distant mountains; every range and every remove had a new tone and a new delight. The gray crags, near at hand, stood out sharply against the crimson sky. And high above them all in its impressive isolation loomed Sunrise Rock, heedless of the transitory dying day and the ineffective coming night.

The small log cabin was surrounded by the beauty of autumn leaves. A purple mist hung over the distant mountains; every range and every distance revealed a fresh color and a new joy. The gray cliffs nearby stood out clearly against the red sky. And high above everything, in its striking solitude, was Sunrise Rock, indifferent to the fading day and the powerless approaching night.

The girl's reel was still whirling; at regular intervals it ticked and told off another cut. Cleaver's eyes were fixed upon her as he declined Peter Teake's invitation. He had seen her often before, but he did not know as yet that that face would play a strange part in the little mental drama that was to lead to the making of his fortune. Her cheek was flushed; her delicate crimson lips were slightly parted; the live gold of the sunbeams touched the dead-yellow, lustreless masses of her hair. Here and there the clustering tendrils separated, as they hung about her shoulders, and disclosed bright glimpses of a red cotton kerchief knotted around her throat; she wore a dark blue homespun dress, and despite the coarse texture of her attire there was something of the mingled brilliance and softness of the autumn tints in her humble presence. Her eyes reminded him of those deep, limpid mountain streams with golden-brown pebbles at the bottom. Scornful as he was, he was only a man—and a young man. With a sudden impulse he leaned forward and handed her a pretty cluster of ferns and berries which he had gathered in the forest.

The girl's reel was still spinning; at regular intervals, it clicked and marked another cut. Cleaver's eyes were focused on her as he declined Peter Teake's invitation. He had seen her many times before, but he didn’t yet realize that her face would play a strange role in the little mental drama that would lead to his fortune. Her cheek was flushed; her delicate crimson lips were slightly parted; the warm gold of the sunlight touched the dull, lifeless strands of her hair. Here and there, the curling tendrils fell away as they draped around her shoulders, revealing bright glimpses of a red cotton scarf tied around her neck; she wore a dark blue homespun dress, and despite the rough texture of her clothing, there was something of the mixed brilliance and softness of autumn colors in her humble appearance. Her eyes reminded him of those deep, clear mountain streams with golden-brown pebbles on the bottom. Scornful as he was, he was still just a man—and a young man at that. With a sudden impulse, he leaned forward and gave her a lovely cluster of ferns and berries he had picked in the forest.

The reel stopped, the thread broke. She looked up, as she received mechanically his woodland treasure, with so astonished a face that it induced in this man of the world a sense of embarrassment.

The reel stopped, the thread snapped. She looked up, as she automatically accepted his woodland treasure, with such a surprised expression that it made this worldly man feel a bit awkward.

"Air they good yerbs fur somethin'?" she asked.

"Are they good herbs for something?" she asked.

A quick comprehension of the ludicrous situation flashed through his mind. She evidently made no distinctions in the healing art as practiced by him and the "yerb-doctor," with whom he occasionally came into professional contact. And the presentation of the "yerbs" seemed a prescription instead of a compliment.

A quick understanding of the ridiculous situation crossed his mind. She clearly didn’t make any distinctions between the healing methods he practiced and those of the "herb-doctor," whom he occasionally worked with. And the offer of the "herbs" felt more like a prescription than a compliment.

"No,—no," he said hastily, thinking of the possibility of a decoction. "They are not good for tea. They are of no use,—except to look at."

"No—no," he said quickly, considering the possibility of a brew. "They aren’t great for tea. They’re useless—except for decoration."

And he rode away, laughing softly.

And he rode off, chuckling quietly.

Everything about the red brick house was disorganized and dilapidated; but the dining-room, which served the two young bachelors as a sitting-room also, was cheerful with the glow of a hickory fire and a kerosene lamp, and although the floor was bare and the tiny-paned windows curtained only with cobwebs, there was a suggestively comfortable array of pipes on the mantel-piece, and a bottle of gracious aspect. Sitting in front of the fire, the light full on his tawny beard and close-clipped blond hair, was a man of splendid proportions, a fine, frank, intellectual face, and a manner and accent that proclaimed him as distinctly exotic as his friend. He too had reared the great scaffolding of an elaborate education that he might erect the colossal edifice of his future. His hands beat the empty air and he had no materials wherewith to build. But there was the scaffolding, a fine thing in itself,—wasted, perhaps. For the sheep-farmer did not need it.

Everything about the red brick house was messy and rundown; but the dining room, which the two young bachelors used as a living room too, was warm with the glow of a hickory fire and a kerosene lamp. Even though the floor was bare and the tiny-paned windows were only draped with cobwebs, there was a surprisingly cozy collection of pipes on the mantelpiece and a bottle with an inviting look. Sitting in front of the fire, the light shining on his tawny beard and closely cropped blond hair, was a man of impressive stature, with a strong, honest, intellectual face, and a manner and accent that showed he was just as exotic as his friend. He had also built the strong framework of an extensive education to construct the grand structure of his future. His hands moved through empty space, lacking the materials to build. But there was the framework, impressive in itself—perhaps wasted. Because the sheep farmer didn't need it.

"Well, old sinner!" he exclaimed smilingly, as Cleaver entered. "Did you tell Tom to put up your 'beastis'? He is so 'brigaty' that he might not stand."

"Well, you old sinner!" he said with a smile as Cleaver walked in. "Did you tell Tom to put up your 'beastis'? He's so stubborn that he might not cooperate."

Were the two friends sojourning in the Cumberland Mountains on a camp-hunt, these excerpts from the prevalent dialect might have seemed to Cleaver a pleasantry of exquisite flavor. But they were no sojourners; they were permanently established here. And he felt that every concession to the customs of the region was a descent toward the level of its inhabitants. He thought Trelawney was already degenerating in this disheveled life,—mentally, in manner, even in speech. For with a philologist's zest Trelawney chased verbal monstrosities to their lair, and afterward displayed them in his daily conversation with as much pride as a connoisseur feels in exhibiting odd old china. As these reflections intruded themselves, Cleaver silently swore a mighty oath—an oath he had often sworn before—that he would not go down with him, he would not deteriorate too, he would hold hard to the traditions of a higher sphere.

Were the two friends camping in the Cumberland Mountains on a hunting trip, these snippets of the local dialect might have seemed to Cleaver a delightful joke. But they weren't just visiting; they had settled here permanently. He felt that every time he adapted to the customs of the area, it brought him down closer to the level of its people. He thought Trelawney was already slipping into this untidy lifestyle—mentally, in behavior, even in how he spoke. With the enthusiasm of a linguist, Trelawney hunted down strange words and phrases, showcasing them in his daily conversations as proudly as a collector displays rare antiques. As these thoughts crossed his mind, Cleaver silently made a solemn vow—one he had made many times before—that he would not go down with him, he would not decline too; he would firmly hold onto the traditions of a higher class.

But sins against convention could not detract from the impressiveness of the man lounging before the fire. If Trelawney only had money, how he would adorn the state of nabob!

But breaking the rules of convention couldn't take away from the impressive sight of the man chilling by the fire. If Trelawney had money, he would really make a mark as a wealthy landowner!

"Brigaty!" he reiterated. "That's a funny word. It sounds as if it might be kin to the Italian brigata. Or, see here—briga?—eh?—brigarebrigarsi? I wonder how these people come by it."

"Brigaty!" he repeated. "That's a strange word. It sounds like it could be related to the Italian brigata. Or, look here—briga?—right?—brigarebrigarsi? I’m curious how these people came up with it."

A long pause ensued, broken only by the ticking of their watches: the waste of time asserted itself. All was silent without; no wind stirred; no leaf nor acorn fell; the mute mists pressed close to the window. Surely there were no other creatures in all the dreary world. And this, thought Cleaver, was what he had come to, after all his prestige, all his efforts!

A long silence followed, interrupted only by the ticking of their watches: the waste of time became evident. Everything was quiet outside; no wind blew; no leaves or acorns fell; the heavy mist pressed against the window. Surely there were no other beings in this bleak world. And this, Cleaver thought, is what he had come to, despite all his prestige and efforts!

"Trelawney," he said suddenly, "these are long evenings. Don't you think that with all this time on our hands—I don't know—but don't you think we might write something together?"

"Trelawney," he said suddenly, "these evenings are pretty long. Don’t you think that with all this free time—we could, I don’t know—but don’t you think we should write something together?"

A frank surprise was in his friend's brown eyes. He replied doubtfully, "Write what?"

A genuine surprise was in his friend's brown eyes. He responded uncertainly, "Write what?"

"I don't know," said Cleaver despondently.

"I don't know," Cleaver said sadly.

"And suppose we had the talent to project 'something' and the energy to complete it, who would publish it?"

"And let’s say we had the talent to create 'something' and the energy to finish it, who would publish it?"

"I don't know," said the doctor, more hopelessly still.

"I don’t know," said the doctor, even more hopelessly.

Another pause. The foxes were barking in the moonlight, in the red autumn woods. That a man should feel less lonely for the sound of a wild thing's voice!

Another pause. The foxes were barking in the moonlight, in the red autumn woods. That a man should feel less lonely for the sound of a wild thing's voice!

"My dear fellow," said John Cleaver, a certain passion of despair welling up in his tones,—he leaned forward and laid his hand on his friend's knee,—"it won't do for us to spend our lives here. We must turn about and get back into the world of men and action. Don't think I'm ungrateful for this haven,—you are the only one who held out a hand,—but we must get back, and go on with the rest. Help me, Trelawney,—help me think out some way. I'm losing faith in myself alone. Let us help each other. Many a man has made his pen his strongest friend; they were only men at last, just such as we are. Many of them were poor; the best of them were poor. We can try nothing else, Fred,—so little chance is left to us."

"My dear friend," said John Cleaver, a sense of despair rising in his voice—he leaned forward and placed his hand on his friend's knee—"we can't spend our lives here. We need to turn around and get back into the world of people and action. Don’t think I’m ungrateful for this refuge—you’re the only one who reached out to me—but we have to return and move on with the rest. Help me, Trelawney—help me figure out a way. I’m losing faith in myself. Let’s support each other. Many men have made their writing their greatest ally; they were just ordinary guys like us. Many of them were poor; the best of them were poor. We have to try something, Fred—we have so little chance left."

Trelawney laid his warm strong hand upon the cold nervous hand trembling on his knee. "Jack," he said, "I have given it all up. I am through forever with those cursed alternations of hope and despair. I don't believe we could write anything that would do—do any good, I mean. I wore out all energy and afflatus—the best part of me—waiting for the clients who never came. And all the time my appropriate sphere, my sheep-farm, was waiting for me here. I have found contentment, the manna from heaven, while you are still sighing for the flesh-pots of Egypt. Ambition has thrown me once; I sha'n't back the jade again. I am a shepherd, Jack, a shepherd.

Trelawney laid his warm, strong hand on the cold, trembling hand resting on his knee. "Jack," he said, "I’ve given it all up. I'm done for good with those annoying ups and downs of hope and despair. I don’t think we could write anything that would actually help. I’ve exhausted all my energy and inspiration—the best parts of me—waiting for the clients who never showed up. All the while, my true calling, my sheep farm, was here waiting for me. I’ve found contentment, like a gift from above, while you’re still yearning for the comforts of Egypt. Ambition has let me down once; I won’t trust it again. I’m a shepherd, Jack, a shepherd."

'Pastorem, Tityre, pingues
Pascere oportet oves, deductum dicere carmen.'

That's it, my dear old boy. Sing a slender song! We've pitched our voices on too high a key for our style of vocalization. We must sing small, Jack,—sing a slender song!"

That's it, my dear old friend. Sing a soft song! We've set our voices too high for our style of singing. We need to sing quietly, Jack—sing a soft song!

"I'll be damned if I do!" cried Cleaver, impetuously, springing to his feet and pacing the room with a quick stride.

"I'll be damned if I do!" shouted Cleaver, impulsively getting up and pacing the room with a quick stride.

But his friend's words dogged him deep into the night. They would not let him sleep. He lay staring blankly at the darkness, his thoughts busy with his forlorn position and his forlorn prospects, and that sense of helplessness, so terrible to a man, pressing heavily upon his heart. In the midst of the memories of his hopes, his ambitions, and his failures he was like a worm in the fire. The vague presence of the majestic company of mountains without preyed upon him; they seemed stolid, unmoved witnesses of his despair. The only human creature who might have understood him would not understand him. He knew that if he were writhing in pain with a broken limb, or the sentimental spurious anguish of a broken heart, Trelawney would resolve himself into every gracious phase of healing sympathy. But a broken life!—his friend would not make an effort. Yet why should he crave support? Was it true that he had pitched his voice too high? In this day of over-education, when every man is fitted for any noble sphere of intellectual achievement and only inborn talent survives, might it not be that he had mistaken a cultivated aspiration for latent power? And if indeed his purposes had outstripped his abilities, the result was tragic—tragic. He was as dead as if he were six feet deep in the ground. A bitter throe of shame came with these reflections. There is something so ludicrously contemptible in a great personal ambition and a puny capacity. Ambition is the only grand passion that does not ennoble. We do not care that a low thing should lift its eyes. And if it does, we laugh.

But his friend's words haunted him deep into the night. They wouldn’t let him sleep. He lay there staring blankly at the darkness, his thoughts swirling around his hopeless situation and bleak prospects, that feeling of helplessness—so awful for a man—pressing heavily on his heart. In the midst of memories of his hopes, ambitions, and failures, he felt like a worm in flames. The vague presence of the majestic mountains outside weighed on him; they seemed like cold, unfeeling witnesses to his despair. The only person who might have understood him wouldn’t. He knew that if he were writhing in pain with a broken limb, or the false sentimental anguish of a broken heart, Trelawney would transform into a figure of soothing sympathy. But a broken life? His friend wouldn’t make an effort. Yet why should he seek support? Had he really aimed too high? In this age of over-education, where every man is prepared for any noble path of intellectual achievement and only natural talent endures, could it be that he had confused a cultivated aspiration with true potential? And if his ambitions truly exceeded his abilities, the outcome was tragic—tragic. He felt as dead as if he were six feet underground. A bitter rush of shame accompanied these thoughts. There’s something so laughably pathetic about having grand personal ambitions and a small capacity. Ambition is the only great passion that doesn’t elevate. We don’t mind if something lowly lifts its gaze. And if it does, we laugh.

There was a movement in the hall below. He had left Trelawney reading, but now his step was on the stairs, and with it rose the full mellow tones of his voice. He was singing of the spring-time in the autumn midnight. Poor Fred! It was always spring with him. He met his misfortunes with so cordial an outstretched hand that it might have seemed he disarmed them. It did not seem so to John Cleaver. He shifted his attitude with a groan. His friend's fatal apathy was an added pang to his own sorrows. And now the house was still, and he watched through all the long hours the western moonlight silently scale the gloomy pines, till on their plumy crests the yellow beams mingled with the red rays of the rising sun, and the empty, lonely day broke in its useless, wasted splendor upon the empty loneliness of the splendid night.

There was movement in the hall below. He had left Trelawney reading, but now his footsteps were on the stairs, and with them rose the full, rich tones of his voice. He was singing about springtime in the autumn midnight. Poor Fred! It was always spring for him. He faced his troubles with such a warm, open hand that it might have seemed like he disarmed them. That wasn’t how it felt to John Cleaver. He shifted his position with a groan. His friend's fatal indifference added to his own pain. And now the house was quiet, and he watched through the long hours as the western moonlight silently climbed the dark pines, until the yellow beams mingled with the red rays of the rising sun on their feathery tops, and the empty, lonely day broke in its pointless, wasted splendor upon the empty loneliness of the magnificent night.

II.

II.

Cleaver took little note, at this period, of those who came and went in his life; and he took little note of how he came and went in the lives of others. He had no idea of those inexplicable circles of thought and being that touch at a single point, and jar, perhaps. One day, while the Indian summer was still red on the hills,—he had reason to remember this day,—while the purple haze hovered over the landscape and mellowed to artistic delicacy the bold, bright colors of Sunrise Rock, he chanced to drive alone in his friend's rickety buggy along the road that passed on the opposite bank from the painted cliff and encircled the dreary little graveyard of the mountaineers. He became suddenly aware that there was a figure leaning against the palings; he recognized Selina Teake as he lifted his absorbed eyes. She held her sun-bonnet in her hand, and her yellow hair and fair face were unshaded; how little did he or she imagine what that face was to be to him afterward! He drew up his horse and spoke: "Well, this is the last place I should think you would want to come to."

Cleaver paid little attention at this time to the people coming in and out of his life, nor did he consider how he entered and exited the lives of others. He had no understanding of those strange connections of thoughts and existence that intersect at a single point and clash, perhaps. One day, while the Indian summer still tinted the hills red—he had a reason to remember this day—while the purple haze lingered over the landscape and softened the bold, bright colors of Sunrise Rock into an artistic delicacy, he found himself driving alone in his friend's old, rickety buggy along the road that ran alongside the painted cliff and surrounded the dreary little graveyard of the mountaineers. Suddenly, he noticed a figure leaning against the fence; as he lifted his focused gaze, he recognized Selina Teake. She held her sunbonnet in her hand, and her yellow hair and fair face were exposed to the sun; how little did he or she realize what that face would mean to him later! He pulled up his horse and said, "Well, this is the last place I thought you would want to come to."

She did not understand his dismal little joke at the graveyard. She silently fixed upon him those eyes, so suggestive of deep, clear waters in which some luminous planet has sunk a starry reflection.

She didn’t get his gloomy little joke at the cemetery. She silently focused her gaze on him, those eyes so reminiscent of deep, clear waters where a bright planet has cast a starry reflection.

"Did you intend to remain permanently?"

"Did you plan to stay permanently?"

"I war restin' awhile," she softly replied.

"I was resting for a bit," she softly replied.

He had a vague consciousness that she was the first of these proud mountaineers whom he had ever seen embarrassed or shy. She was indubitably blushing as he looked at her, and as she falteringly looked at him. How bright her eyes were, how red her delicate lips, what a faint fresh wild-rose was suddenly abloom on her cheek!

He had a vague sense that she was the first of these proud mountaineers he had ever seen feeling embarrassed or shy. She was definitely blushing as he looked at her, and as she hesitantly looked at him. How bright her eyes were, how red her delicate lips, what a faint fresh wild rose had suddenly bloomed on her cheek!

"Suppose you drive with me the remainder of the way," he suggested.

"How about driving the rest of the way with me?" he suggested.

This was only the courtesy of the road in this region, and with her grave, decorous manner she stepped lightly into the vehicle, and they bowled away together. She was very mute and motionless as she sat beside him, her face eloquent with some untranslated emotion of mingled wonderment and pleasure and pain. Perhaps she drew in with the balsamic sunlit air the sweetest experience of her short life. He was silent too, his thoughts still hanging drearily about his blighted prospects and this fatal false step that had led him to the mountains; wondering whether he could have done better, whether he could have done otherwise at all, when it would end,—when, and how.

This was just the way things were on the roads in this area, and with her serious, proper demeanor, she stepped gracefully into the vehicle, and they drove off together. She remained quiet and still as she sat next to him, her face expressing some deep, unspoken mix of wonder, joy, and pain. Maybe she was absorbing the sweetest experience of her short life along with the fragrant, sunlit air. He was quiet too, his thoughts still weighed down by his lost hopes and the wrong turn that had brought him to the mountains; wondering if he could have made better choices, if there was anything he could have done differently, and when it would all end—when and how.

Trelawney was lounging against the rail fence in front of Teake's house, looking, in his negligent attire, like a prince in disguise, and talking to the mountaineers about a prospective deer-hunt. There was a surprised resentment on his face when Cleaver drove up, but the return of Selina with him made not a ripple among the Teakes. It would have been impossible to demonstrate to them that they stood on a lower social plane. Their standard of morality and respectability could not be questioned; there had never been a man or a woman of the humble name who had given the others cause for shame; they had lived in this house on their own land for a hundred years; they neither stole nor choused; they paid as they went, and asked no favors; they took no alms,—nay, they gave of their little! As to the artificial distinctions of money and education,—what do the ignorant mountaineers care about money and education!

Trelawney was lounging against the rail fence in front of Teake's house, looking in his casual outfit like a prince in disguise, and chatting with the mountaineers about a possible deer hunt. He had a look of surprised annoyance on his face when Cleaver drove up, but Selina’s return with him didn’t faze the Teakes at all. It would have been impossible to show them that they were on a lower social level. Their standard of morality and respectability was beyond question; there had never been a man or woman from their humble background who had caused any shame among them; they had lived in this house on their own land for a hundred years; they didn’t steal or cheat; they paid their way and asked for nothing; they accepted no charity—in fact, they often gave from their little! As for the artificial differences of money and education—what do the uneducated mountaineers care about money and education!

Selina stood for a moment upon the cabin porch, her yellow hair gleaming like an aureola upon a background of crimson sumach leaves. A pet fawn came to the door and nibbled at her little sun-burned hands. As she turned to go in, Trelawney spoke to her. "Shall I bring you a fawn again? or will you have some venison from the hunt to-morrow?"

Selina stood for a moment on the cabin porch, her blonde hair shining like a halo against the backdrop of red sumac leaves. A pet fawn approached the door and nibbled at her little sunburned hands. As she turned to go inside, Trelawney spoke to her. "Should I bring you a fawn again? Or would you prefer some venison from the hunt tomorrow?"

She fixed her luminous eyes upon him and laughed a little. There was no shyness in her face and manner now. Was Trelawney so accustomed a presence in her life, Cleaver wondered.

She focused her bright eyes on him and laughed a bit. There was no shyness in her expression or behavior now. Was Trelawney such a regular part of her life, Cleaver wondered.

"Ah, I see," said Fred, laughing too. "I'll bring you some venison."

"Got it," Fred said, laughing as well. "I'll bring you some deer meat."

He was grave enough as he and his friend drove homeward together, and Cleaver was roused to the perception that there was a certain unwonted coldness slipping insidiously between them. It was not until they were seated before the fire that Trelawney again spoke. "How did it happen that you and she were together?" Evidently he had thought of nothing else since.

He was serious as he and his friend drove home together, and Cleaver noticed that there was an unusual coldness creeping subtly between them. It wasn't until they were sitting in front of the fire that Trelawney spoke again. "How did it happen that you and she were together?" Clearly, he hadn't thought of anything else since.

"Who?—the Lady Selina?" said Cleaver, mockingly. Trelawney's eyes warned him to forbear. "Oh, I met her walking, and I asked her to drive with me the rest of the way."

"Who?—the Lady Selina?" Cleaver said mockingly. Trelawney's eyes urged him to stop. "Oh, I ran into her while walking, and I asked her to ride with me the rest of the way."

Nothing more was said for a time. Cleaver was thinking of the fawn which Fred had given her, of the patent fact that he was a familiar visitor at the Teake house. His question, and his long dwelling upon the subject before he asked it, seemed almost to indicate jealousy. Jealousy! Cleaver could hardly credit his own suspicion.

Nothing more was said for a while. Cleaver was thinking about the fawn that Fred had given her, and the undeniable fact that he was a regular visitor at the Teake house. His question, along with the way he lingered on the topic before asking it, almost suggested jealousy. Jealousy! Cleaver could barely believe her own suspicion.

Trelawney broke the silence. "Education," he said abruptly, "what does education accomplish for women in our station of life? They learn to write a fashionable hand that nobody can decipher. They take a limited course of reading and remember nothing. Their study of foreign languages goes so far sometimes as to enable them to interject commonplace French phrases into their daily conversation, and render their prattle an affront to good taste as well an insult to the understanding. They have converted the piano into an instrument of torture throughout the length and breadth of the land. Sometimes they are learned; then they are given over to 'making an impression,' and are prone to discuss, with a fatal tendency to misapply terms, what they call 'philosophy.' As to their experience in society, no one will maintain that their flirtations and husband-hunting tend greatly to foster delicacy and refinement. What would that girl," nodding toward the log-cabin near Sunrise Rock, "think of the girls of our world who pursue 'society' as a man pursues a profession, who shove and jostle each other and pull caps for the great matches, and 'put up' with the others when no better may be had? She is my ideal of a modest, delicate young girl,—and she is the only sincere woman I ever saw. Upon my soul, I think the primitive woman holds her own very finely in comparison with the resultant of feminine culture."

Trelawney broke the silence. "Education," he said abruptly, "what does it really do for women like us? They learn to write in a fancy style that nobody can read. They skim through a limited amount of reading and forget most of it. Their study of foreign languages sometimes only gets them to throw in basic French phrases into everyday conversation, making their chatter both tasteless and confusing. They've turned the piano into an instrument of torture all over the country. Sometimes they act like they’re educated, but then they focus on 'making an impression' and tend to misinterpret what they call 'philosophy.' When it comes to their experiences in society, no one can argue that their flirting and hunting for husbands really encourages any kind of delicacy or refinement. What would that girl," he said, nodding toward the log cabin near Sunrise Rock, "think of the girls in our world who chase 'society' like a man chases a career, who shove and jostle each other and compete fiercely for the best opportunities, and 'settle' for others when they can't get the best? She is my ideal of a modest, delicate young lady—and she is the only genuine woman I’ve ever met. Honestly, I think that primitive women hold their own pretty well compared to what we call feminine education."

Cleaver listened in stunned dismay. Could Trelawney have really fallen in love with the little mountaineer? He had adapted himself so readily to the habits of these people. He was so far from the world; he was dropping its chains. Many men under such circumstances, under far happier circumstances, had fallen into the fatal error of a mésalliance. Positively he might marry the girl. Cleaver felt it an imperative duty to make an effort to avert this almost grotesque catastrophe. In its very inception, however, he was hopeless. Trelawney had always been so intolerant of control, so tenacious of impressions and emotions, so careless of results and the opinion of society. These seemed only originalities of character when he was the leader of a clique of men of his own social position. Was Cleaver a snob because they seemed to him, now that his friend was brought low in the world, a bull-headed perversity, a ludicrous eccentricity, an unkempt republicanism, a raw incapacity to appreciate the right relations of things? In the delicately adjusted balance of life is that which is fine when a man is up, folly when a man is down?

Cleaver listened in shocked disbelief. Could Trelawney have actually fallen in love with the little mountaineer? He had adapted so easily to the ways of these people. He was so far removed from the outside world; he was breaking free of its constraints. Many men in such situations, in far better circumstances, had made the terrible mistake of a mésalliance. He could actually end up marrying the girl. Cleaver felt it was his duty to try to prevent this nearly absurd disaster. However, from the very beginning, he felt hopeless. Trelawney had always been so resistant to control, so attached to his feelings and emotions, so indifferent to the consequences and society's opinions. These traits had seemed like originality when he was the leader of a group of men from his social circle. Was Cleaver a snob because these qualities now struck him, as his friend faced a downturn, as stubbornness, ridiculous eccentricity, untidy republicanism, and a complete inability to see the proper relationships among things? In the delicate balance of life, is something admirable when a man is successful, but foolish when he is struggling?

"She is a pretty little thing," he said, slightingly, "and no doubt a good little thing. And, Trelawney, if I were in your place I wouldn't hang around her. Your feelings might become involved—she is so pretty—and she might fall in love with you, and"—

"She’s a cute little thing," he said dismissively, "and probably a nice person too. And, Trelawney, if I were you, I wouldn’t stick around her. You might start having feelings—she’s really attractive—and she could end up falling for you, and"—

"You've said enough!" exclaimed Trelawney, fiercely.

"You've said enough!" Trelawney shouted, fiercely.

It was monstrous! Trelawney would marry her. And he was as helpless to prevent it as if Fred intended to hang himself.

It was horrific! Trelawney was going to marry her. And he was just as powerless to stop it as if Fred planned to hang himself.

"Your railing at the women of society in that shallow fashion suggests the idea to me that you are trying to justify yourself in some tremendous folly. Do you contemplate marrying her?"

"Your complaints about the women in society in such a superficial way make me think that you’re trying to justify some huge mistake you made. Are you thinking about marrying her?"

"That is exactly what I propose to do," said Trelawney.

"That's exactly what I plan to do," said Trelawney.

"And you are mad enough to think you are really in love with her?"

"And you seriously think you’re actually in love with her?"

"Why should I not be? If she were differently placed in point of wealth and station would there be any incongruity? I don't want to say anything hard of you, Cleaver, but you would be ready to congratulate me."

"Why shouldn't I be? If her situation in terms of wealth and status were different, would it be any more unusual? I don't want to say anything harsh about you, Cleaver, but you'd be quick to congratulate me."

"I admit," retorted Cleaver, sharply, "that if she were your equal in station and appropriately educated I should not have a word of objection to say."

"I admit," Cleaver replied sharply, "that if she were your equal in rank and had the right education, I wouldn't have a single objection to make."

"And after all, is it the accident of position and fortune, or the human creature, that a man takes to his heart?"

"And in the end, is it just a matter of luck or circumstances, or is it the person themselves that a man truly cares about?"

"But her ignorance, Fred"—

"But her lack of knowledge, Fred"—

"Great God! does a man fall in love with a society girl for the sake of what she calls her 'education?' Whatever attracts him, it is not that. They are all ignorant; this girl's ignorance is only relative."

"Good grief! Does a guy fall in love with a society girl just because of her so-called 'education?' Whatever draws him in, it's not that. They're all clueless; this girl's cluelessness is only in comparison."

"Ah,—you know all that is bosh, Fred."

"Ah, you know all that is nonsense, Fred."

"In point of manner you yourself must concede that she is in many respects superior to them. She has a certain repose and gravity and dignity difficult to find among young ladies of high degree whose education has not proved an antidote for flippancy. I won't be hard enough on them to compare the loveliness of her face or her fine, unspoiled nature. You don't want her to be learned any more than you want an azalea to be learned. An azalea in a green-house becomes showy and flaunting and has no fragrance, while here in the woods its exquisite sweetness fills the air for miles."

"In terms of character, you have to admit that she stands out in many ways. She has a sense of calmness, seriousness, and dignity that's hard to find among young women of high status whose education hasn’t shielded them from being superficial. I won’t be harsh enough to compare her beauty or her pure, untouched nature. You don’t want her to be overly educated any more than you want an azalea to be intellectual. An azalea in a greenhouse becomes flashy and loses its fragrance, while out here in the woods, its delightful scent spreads for miles."

"Trelawney, you are fit for Bedlam."

"Trelawney, you belong in a mental asylum."

"I knew you would say so. I thought so too at first. I tried to stamp it out, and put it down, and for a long time I fought all that is best in me."

"I knew you’d say that. I thought the same thing at first. I tried to suppress it, ignore it, and for a long time, I battled against everything that’s good in me."

"Does she know anything about your feelings?"

"Does she know anything about how you feel?"

"Not one word, as yet."

"Not a word yet."

"Then I hope something—anything—may happen to put a stop to it before she does."

"Then I really hope something—anything—happens to stop it before she does."

This hasty wish seemed cruel to him afterward, and he regretted it.

This rushed wish felt cruel to him later, and he regretted it.

"It would break my heart," said Trelawney, with an extreme earnestness. "I know you think I am talking wildly, but I tell you it would break my heart."

"It would break my heart," Trelawney said earnestly. "I know you think I'm being dramatic, but I promise you it would really break my heart."

Cleaver fell to meditating ruefully upon the future in store for his friend in this desolate place. King Cophetua and the beggar-maid are a triumph of ideal contrast, eminently fascinating in an ideal point of view. But real life presents prosaic corollaries,—the Teakes, for example, on the familiar footing of Trelawney's brothers-in-law; the old crone with her pipe, his wife's grandmother; that ignorant girl, his wife—oh, these sublunary considerations are too inexorable. In his sluggish content he would never make another effort; he would always live here; he would sink, year by year, by virtue of his adaptability and uncouth associations nearer to the level of the mountaineers. This culminating folly seemed destined to complete the ruin of every prospect in a fine man's life.

Cleaver found himself sadly reflecting on the future awaiting his friend in this bleak place. King Cophetua and the beggar-maid are a striking example of ideal contrast, especially captivating from a perfect perspective. But real life brings mundane realities—the Teakes, for instance, are just like Trelawney's brothers-in-law; the old woman with her pipe, his wife’s grandmother; that clueless girl, his wife—oh, these earthly concerns are too relentless. In his dull satisfaction, he wouldn’t make another effort; he would always stay here; year after year, he would descend, thanks to his ability to adapt and his awkward connections, closer to the level of the mountain dwellers. This final foolishness seemed destined to ruin every possibility in a good man's life.

Cleaver did not know what was to come, and he brooded upon these ideas.

Cleaver had no idea what was ahead, and he thought deeply about these ideas.

III.

III.

Those terrible problems of existence of which happier men at rare intervals catch a fleeting glimpse, and are struck aghast for a moment, pursued John Cleaver relentlessly day by day. He could not understand this world; he could not understand the waste of himself and his friend in this useless, purposeless way; he could not even understand the magnificent waste of the nature about him. Sometimes he would look with haggard eyes on the late dawns and marvel that the sun should rise in such effulgence upon this sequestered spot; a perpetual twilight might have sufficed for the threnody, called life, here. He would gaze on Sunrise Rock, forever facing and reflecting the dawn, and wonder who and what was the man that in the forgotten past had stood on these red hills, and looked with his full heart in his eyes upon that sun, and smote the stone to sudden speech. Were his eyes haggard too? Was his life heavy? Were his fiery aspirations only a touch of the actual cautery to all that was sensitive within him? Did he know how his world was to pass away? Did he know how little he was in the world? Did he too wring his hands, and beat his breast, and sigh for the thing that was not?

Those awful problems of existence that happier people occasionally glimpse and are momentarily shocked by, haunted John Cleaver every single day. He couldn’t grasp this world; he couldn't comprehend the waste of himself and his friend in this pointless, aimless manner; he couldn't even understand the incredible waste of nature surrounding him. Sometimes, with tired eyes, he would look at the late dawns and wonder why the sun rose so brilliantly in this secluded place; a constant twilight might have been enough for the lament called life here. He would stare at Sunrise Rock, always facing and reflecting the dawn, and ponder who the man was that, in the forgotten past, had stood on these red hills, looked at the sun with a full heart in his eyes, and made the stone speak. Were his eyes weary too? Was his life burdensome? Were his passionate dreams just a painful reminder of everything sensitive within him? Did he realize how his world would fade away? Did he understand how insignificant he was in the world? Did he also wring his hands, beat his chest, and long for what was absent?

Cleaver did the work that came to him conscientiously, although mechanically enough. But there was little work to do. Even the career of a humble country doctor seemed closed to him. He began to think he saw how it would end. He would be obliged to quit the profession; in sheer manliness he would be obliged to get to something at which he could work. A terrible pang here. He cared nothing for money,—this man, who was as poor as the very mountaineers. He was vowed to science as a monk is vowed to his order.

Cleaver approached the work that came his way with dedication, though it often felt mechanical. However, there wasn't much work to be done. Even the life of a simple country doctor seemed out of reach for him. He started to realize how it would all turn out. He would have to leave the profession; out of sheer determination, he would need to find something he could really commit to. This thought hit him hard. He didn't care about money—this man was as broke as the poorest mountaineers. He was devoted to science just like a monk is devoted to his faith.

It was an unusual occurrence, therefore, when Trelawney came in one day and found that Cleaver had been called out professionally. He sat down to dine alone, but before he had finished carving, his friend entered.

It was an unusual occurrence, then, when Trelawney came in one day and found that Cleaver had been called out for work. He sat down to eat alone, but before he finished carving, his friend walked in.

"Well, doctor," said Trelawney cheerily, "how is your patient?"

"Well, doc," Trelawney said happily, "how's your patient?"

Cleaver was evidently out of sorts and preoccupied. "These people are as uncivilized as the foxes that they live among," he exclaimed irrelevantly. "A case of malignant diphtheria, a physician their nearest neighbor, and they don't let him know till nearly the last gasp. Then they all go frantic together, and swear they had no idea it was serious. I could have brained that fool, Peter Teake. But it is a hopeless thing now."

Cleaver was clearly upset and distracted. "These people are as uncivilized as the foxes they live with," he said, not really making sense. "A case of malignant diphtheria, a doctor living right next door, and they don’t tell him until almost the very end. Then they all start freaking out and swear they had no clue it was serious. I could have knocked some sense into that idiot, Peter Teake. But it’s useless now."

A premonition thrilled through Trelawney. "Who is ill at Teake's?"

A feeling of anxiety shot through Trelawney. "Who’s sick at Teake’s?"

Cleaver was stricken dumb. His professional indignation had canceled all realization of the impending crisis. He remembered Fred's foolish fancy an instant too late. His silence answered for him. And Trelawney, a sudden blight upon his handsome face, rose and walked out heavily into the splendors of the autumn sunset. Cleaver was bitter with self-reproach. Still he felt an impotent anger that Fred should have persuaded himself that he was in love with this girl, and laid himself liable to this sentimental pain.

Cleaver was speechless. His professional outrage had wiped away any awareness of the looming crisis. He recalled Fred's silly idea just a moment too late. His silence spoke for him. Trelawney, a sudden shadow on his attractive face, got up and walked out slowly into the beauty of the autumn sunset. Cleaver was filled with self-blame. Yet, he couldn't shake off his helpless anger that Fred had convinced himself he was in love with this girl and subjected himself to this emotional struggle.

"A heart!" thought Cleaver, scornfully. "That a heart should trouble a man in a place like this!"

"A heart!" Cleaver thought, with disdain. "That a heart should bother a guy in a place like this!"

And yet his own well-schooled heart was all athrob with a keen, undreamed-of anguish when once more he had come back from the cabin in the gorge. As he entered, Trelawney, after one swift glance, turned his eyes away. He had learned from Cleaver's face all he feared to know. He might have learned more, a secret too subtly bitter for his friend to tell. King Cophetua was as naught to the beggar-maid. In her dying eyes John Cleaver had seen the fresh and pure affection that had followed him. In her tones he had heard it. Was she misled by that professional tenderness of manner which speaks so soothingly and touches so softly—as mechanical as the act of drawing off his gloves—that she should have been moved to cry out in her huskily pathetic voice, "How good—how good ye air!" and extend to him, amongst all her kindred who stood about, her little sun-burned hand?

And yet his well-trained heart was pounding with a sharp, unexpected pain when he returned from the cabin in the gorge. As he stepped inside, Trelawney quickly glanced at him and then looked away. He had read everything he feared to know in Cleaver's expression. There might have been more to discover, a secret too painfully bitter for his friend to reveal. King Cophetua meant nothing to the beggar-maid. In her fading eyes, John Cleaver had seen the fresh and genuine affection that had followed him. He had heard it in her voice. Was she misled by that professional warmth in her manner, which soothes and touches gently—just as mechanically as taking off his gloves—that she felt compelled to cry out in her huskily emotional voice, "How good—how good you are!" and reach out to him, among all her relatives standing nearby, with her little sunburned hand?

And after that she was speechless, and when the little hand was unloosed it was cold.

And after that, she was speechless, and when the little hand was freed, it was cold.

She had loved him, and he had never known it until now. He felt like a traitor as he glanced at his friend's changed face, and he was crushed by a sense of the immense capacity of human nature for suffering. What a great heart-drama was this, with its incongruous and humble dramatis personæ: the little mountaineer, and these two poverty-stricken stragglers from the vast army of men of action,—deserters, even, it might seem. What chaotic sarcasm in this mysterious ordering of events,—Trelawney, with his grand sacrificial passion; the poor little girl, whose first fresh love had unsought followed another through these waste places; and he, all unconscious, absorbed in himself, his worldly considerations and the dying throes of his dear ambitions. And now, for him, who had felt least of all, was rising a great vicarious woe. If he had known this girl's heart-secret while she yet lived he might have thought scornfully of it, slightingly; who can say how? But now that she was dead it was as if he had been beloved by an angel, and was only too obtuse, too gross, too earthly-minded to hear the rustle of her wings. How pitiable was the thought of her misplaced affection; how hard it was for his friend; how hard it was for him that he had ever discovered it. Did she know that he cared nothing? Were the last days of her short life embittered with the pangs of a consciously unrequited love? Or did she tremble, and hope, and tremble again? Ah, poor, poor, pretty thing!

She had loved him, and he had never realized it until now. He felt like a traitor as he looked at the changed expression on his friend's face, and he was overwhelmed by the huge capacity of human nature for suffering. What a dramatic situation this was, with its strange and humble dramatis personæ: the little mountaineer and these two impoverished wanderers from the vast army of doers—deserters, even, it might seem. What chaotic irony in this mysterious twist of fate—Trelawney, with his grand sacrificial passion; the poor girl, whose first pure love had uninvitedly followed another through these desolate places; and he, completely unaware, wrapped up in himself, his worldly concerns, and the fading remnants of his cherished ambitions. And now, for him, who had felt the least, a great vicarious sorrow was rising. If he had known this girl's secret while she was still alive, he might have scorned it, dismissed it; who can say how? But now that she was gone, it felt like he had been loved by an angel, yet he was just too obtuse, too crass, too focused on earthly matters to hear the whisper of her wings. How sad it was to think of her misplaced affection; how difficult it was for his friend; how hard it was for him to have discovered it at all. Did she know that he didn’t care? Were the last days of her short life tainted with the pain of a painfully unreturned love? Or did she hope, and tremble, and hope again? Ah, poor, poor, pretty thing!

He had no name for a certain vague, mysterious thrill which quivered through every fibre whenever he thought of that humble, tender love that had followed him so long, unasked and unheeded. It began to hang about him now like a dimly-realized presence. Occasionally it occurred to him that his nerves were disordered, his health giving way, and he would commence a course of medicine, to forget it in his preoccupation, and discontinue it almost as soon as begun. What happened afterward was a natural sequence enough, although at the time it seemed wonderful indeed.

He couldn’t name the subtle, mysterious excitement that ran through him every time he thought of that quiet, deep love that had followed him for so long, unrequested and unnoticed. It started to linger around him now like a faintly felt presence. Sometimes he considered that his nerves were out of whack, and his health was declining, so he would start taking medication, only to forget about it in his distraction and stop almost as soon as he began. What happened next was a pretty natural progression, even though at the time it felt truly amazing.

One misty midnight, when these strong feelings were upon him, it so chanced that he was driving from a patient's house on the summit of the ridge, and his way lay beneath Sunrise Rock along the road which encircled the little graveyard of the mountaineers. The moon was bright; so bright that the wreaths of vapor, hanging motionless among the pines, glistened like etherealized silver; so bright that the mounds within the inclosure—Was it the mist? Was it the moonbeam? Was it the glimmer of yellow hair? Did he see, leaning on the palings, "restin' awhile," the graceful figure he remembered so well? He was dreaming, surely; or were those deep, instarred eyes really fixed upon him with that wistful gaze which he had seen only twice before?—once here, where he had met her, and once when she died. She was approaching him; she was so close he might have touched her hand. Was it cold, he wondered; cold as it was when he held it last? He hardly knew,—but she was seated beside him, as in that crimson sunset-tide, and they were driving together at a frenzied speed through the broken shadows of the wintry woods. He did not turn his head, and yet he saw her face, drawn in lines of pallid light and eloquent with some untranslated emotion of mingled wonderment and pleasure and pain. Like the wind they sped together through the mist and the moonbeam, over the wild mountain road, through the flashing mountain waters, down, down the steep slope toward the red brick house, where a light still burned, and his friend was waiting. He did not know when she slipped from his side. He did not know when this mad pace was checked. He only regained his faculties after he had burst into the warm home atmosphere, a ghastly horror in his face and his frantic fright upon his lips.

One misty midnight, when he was overwhelmed by strong emotions, he was driving home from a patient's house on top of the ridge, and his route took him past Sunrise Rock along the road that surrounded the little graveyard of the mountaineers. The moon was bright; so bright that the mist hanging still among the pines sparkled like ethereal silver; so bright that the mounds inside the enclosure—Was it the mist? Was it the moonlight? Was it the shimmer of yellow hair? Did he see, leaning on the fence, "resting awhile," the elegant figure he remembered so well? He must be dreaming; or were those deep, starry eyes genuinely focused on him with that longing look he had only seen twice before?—once here, where he first met her, and once when she died. She was getting closer; she was so near he could have touched her hand. Was it cold, he wondered; cold like it was when he held it last? He could hardly tell,—but she was sitting next to him, just like during that crimson sunset, and they were driving together at a frenzied speed through the broken shadows of the wintry woods. He didn’t turn his head, yet he saw her face, illuminated in pale light and filled with some unreadable mix of wonder, joy, and sorrow. Like the wind, they rushed together through the mist and moonlight, over the wild mountain road, through the rushing mountain streams, down, down the steep slope toward the red brick house, where a light still burned, and his friend was waiting. He didn't realize when she slipped from his side. He didn't know when this wild pace slowed down. He only regained his senses after bursting into the warm home atmosphere, a look of horror on his face and frantic fear on his lips.

Trelawney stood breathless.

Trelawney stood out of breath.

"Oh, forgive me," cried Cleaver. "I have spoken sacrilege. It was only hallucination; I know it now."

"Oh, forgive me," Cleaver exclaimed. "I’ve said something blasphemous. It was just an illusion; I realize that now."

Trelawney was shaken. "Hallucination?" he faltered, with quivering lips.

Trelawney was shaken. "Hallucination?" he hesitated, his lips trembling.

"I did not reflect," said Cleaver. "I would not have jarred your feelings. I am ill and nervous."

"I didn't think about it," Cleaver said. "I wouldn't have upset your feelings. I'm unwell and anxious."

Trelawney was too broken to resent, to heed, or to answer. He sat cold and shivering, unconscious of the changed eyes watching him, unconscious of a new idea kindling there,—beginning to flicker, to burn, to blaze,—unconscious of the motive with which his friend after a time drew close to the table and fell to writing with furious energy, unconscious that in this moment Cleaver's fortune was made.

Trelawney was too shattered to feel anger, pay attention, or respond. He sat there, cold and shivering, unaware of the changed expressions watching him, unaware of a new idea igniting there—starting to flicker, then burn, then blaze—unaware of the reason his friend eventually approached the table and began writing with intense energy, oblivious that at this moment, Cleaver's future was set.

And thus he wrote on day after day. So cleverly did he analyze his own mental and nervous condition, so unsparing and insidious was this curious introversion, that when his treatise on the "Derangement of the Nervous Functions" was given to the world it was in no degree remarkable that it should have attracted the favorable attention of the medical profession; that the portion devoted to hallucinations should have met with high praise in high quarters; that the young physician's successful work should have brought him suddenly to the remembrance of many people who had almost forgotten poor John Cleaver. No one knew, no one ever knew, its romantic inspiration. No one ever knew the strange source whence he had this keen insight; how his imperious will had held his shaken, distraught nerves for the calm scrutiny of science; how his senses had played him false, and that stronger, subtler critical entity, his intellect, had marked the antics of its double self and noted them down.

And so he wrote day after day. He analyzed his own mental and nervous state so skillfully, and this strange introversion was so relentless and sneaky that when his paper on the “Derangement of the Nervous Functions” was published, it was no surprise that it caught the favorable attention of the medical field; that the section on hallucinations received high praise from esteemed circles; that this young physician's successful work suddenly reminded many people of John Cleaver, who had almost been forgotten. No one knew, no one ever knew, the romantic inspiration behind it. No one ever knew the unusual source of his sharp insight; how his strong will had kept his shaken, troubled nerves under the calm observation of science; how his senses had deceived him, and that a stronger, subtler critical part of him, his intellect, had recorded the bizarre behavior of its other self.

Among the men to whom his treatise brought John Cleaver to sudden remembrance was a certain notable physician. He was growing infirm now, his health was failing, his heavy practice was too heavy for his weakening hands. He gave to the young fellow's work the meed of his rare approval, cleverly gauged the cleverness behind it, and wrote to Cleaver to come.

Among the men who suddenly remembered John Cleaver because of his treatise was a well-known physician. He was becoming frail now, his health was declining, and his demanding practice was too much for his weakening hands. He gave the young man's work his rare approval, accurately assessed the intelligence behind it, and wrote to Cleaver to come.

And so he returned to his accustomed and appropriate sphere. In his absence his world had flattened, narrowed, dulled strangely. People were sordid, and petty, and coarse-minded; and society—his little clique that he called society—possessed a painfully predominating element of snobs; men who had given him no notice before were pleased to be noticed now, and yet the lucky partnership was covertly commented upon as the freak of an old man in his dotage. He was suddenly successful, he had suddenly a certain prospect of wealth, he was suddenly bitter. He thought much in these days of his friend Trelawney and the independent, money-scorning aristocrats of the mountains, of the red hills of the Indian summer, and the towering splendors of Sunrise Rock. That high air was perhaps too rare for his lungs, but he was sensible of the density of the denser medium.

And so he went back to his familiar and fitting environment. In his absence, his world had flattened, shrunk, and oddly dulled. People seemed dirty, small-minded, and crude; and the social circle he called society was painfully full of snobs. Men who hadn’t paid him any attention before were eager to be noticed now, yet this lucky partnership was secretly discussed as just an old man's whim in his later years. He was suddenly successful, he suddenly had some chance of wealth, and he was suddenly bitter. During these days, he often thought about his friend Trelawney and the independent, wealth-sneering aristocrats of the mountains, the red hills of autumn, and the towering beauty of Sunrise Rock. That high air might have been too thin for his lungs, but he was acutely aware of the heaviness of the thicker atmosphere.

As to that vague and tender mystery, the ghost that he saw, it had been exorcised by prosaic science. But it made his fortune, it crowned his life, it bestowed upon him all he craved. Perhaps if she could know the wonderful work she had wrought in his future, the mountain girl, who had given her heart unasked, might rest more easily in her grave than on that night when she had come from among the moonlit mounds beneath Sunrise Rock, and once more sat beside him as he drove through shadow and sheen. For whether it was the pallid mist, whether it was the silver moon, whether it was the fantasy of an overwrought brain, or whether that mysterious presence was of an essence more ethereal than any, who can know?

As for that vague and tender mystery, the ghost he saw had been explained away by practical science. Yet it brought him fortune, defined his life, and gave him everything he desired. Maybe if she could realize the incredible impact she had on his future, the mountain girl who gave her heart without being asked could rest more peacefully in her grave than she did on that night when she emerged from the moonlit mounds beneath Sunrise Rock and sat beside him again as he drove through light and shadow. Because whether it was the pale mist, the silver moon, the fantasy of an overactive mind, or whether that mysterious presence was something more ethereal than anything else—who can truly know?

In these days he carried his friend's interest close to his heart. He opened a way in the crowd, but Trelawney held back from the hands stretched out. He had become wedded to the place. The years since have brought him a quiet, uneventful, not unhappy existence. After a time he grew more cheerful, but not less gentle, and none the less beloved of his simple neighbors. They feel vaguely sometimes that since he first came among them he is a saddened man, and are moved to ask with sympathetic solicitude concerning the news from his supposititious folks "down thar in the valley whar ye hails from." The fortune in sheep-farming still eludes his languid pursuit. The red brick house is disorganized and dilapidated as of yore; a sense of loneliness broods upon it, hardly less intense than the loneliness of the mighty encompassing forest. Deep in these solitudes he often strolls for hours, most often in the crimson and purple eventides along the road that passes beneath Sunrise Rock and encircles the little graveyard of the mountaineers. Here Trelawney leans on the palings while the sun goes down, and looks, with his sore heart bleeding anew, upon one grassy mound till the shadows and the tears together blot it from his sight. Sometimes his heart is not sore, only sad. Sometimes it is tender and resigned, and he turns to the sunrise emblazoned on the rock and thinks of the rising Sun of Righteousness with healing in his wings. For the skepticism of his college days has fallen from him somehow, and his views have become primitive, like those of his primitive neighbors. There is a certain calm and strength in the old theories. With the dawn of a gentle and hopeful peace in his heart, very like the comfort of religion, he goes his way in the misty moon-rise.

In these days, he held his friend's interests close to his heart. He pushed his way through the crowd, but Trelawney stayed back from the outstretched hands. He had become attached to the place. The years since then have given him a quiet, uneventful, but not unhappy life. Over time, he became more cheerful, yet remained gentle, and was still beloved by his simple neighbors. They sometimes feel that since he first arrived, he has been a sad man, and they are moved to ask with sympathetic concern about news from his imaginary family "down there in the valley where you come from." The fortune in sheep-farming still eludes his lazy efforts. The red brick house is just as messy and rundown as before; a feeling of loneliness hangs over it, nearly as intense as the loneliness of the vast surrounding forest. Deep in these quiet places, he often walks for hours, mostly during the red and purple evenings along the road that goes under Sunrise Rock and circles the small graveyard of the mountain people. Here, Trelawney leans on the fence while the sun sets, looking, with his aching heart bleeding anew, at one grassy mound until shadows and tears together blur it from his sight. Sometimes his heart isn’t aching, just sad. Other times it feels tender and resigned, and he turns to the sunrise glowing on the rock and thinks of the rising Sun of Righteousness with healing in its wings. The skepticism from his college days has somehow fallen away, and his views have become basic, like those of his simple neighbors. There’s a certain calm and strength in the old beliefs. With the dawn of a gentle and hopeful peace in his heart, very similar to the comfort of religion, he continues on his way in the misty moonrise.

And sometimes John Cleaver, so far away, as with a second sight becomes subtly aware of these things. He remembers how Trelawney is deceived, and a remorse falls on him in the still darkness, and tears and mangles him. And yet there are no words for confession,—there is nothing to confess. Would his conjecture, his unsupported conviction, avail aught; would it not be cruel to re-open old wounds with the sharp torture of a doubt? And the daybreak finds him with these questions unsolved, and his heart turning wistfully to that true and loyal friend, with his faithful, unrequited love still lingering about the grave of the girl who died with her love unrequited.

And sometimes John Cleaver, feeling distant, seems to have a sixth sense about these things. He remembers how Trelawney is misled, and a heavy remorse falls on him in the deep darkness, leaving him in tears and agony. Yet there are no words for confession—there's nothing to confess. Would his guess, his unfounded belief, mean anything? Wouldn't it be cruel to reopen old wounds with the painful sting of doubt? As dawn breaks, he finds himself stuck with these unanswered questions, his heart yearning for that true and loyal friend, whose devoted, unreturned love still lingers by the grave of the girl who died with her love unreciprocated.


THE DANCIN' PARTY AT HARRISON'S COVE.

"Fur ye see, Mis' Darley, them Harrison folks over yander ter the Cove hev determinated on a dancin' party."

"Well, you see, Miss Darley, those Harrison folks over there at the Cove have decided to throw a dance party."

The drawling tones fell unheeded on old Mr. Kenyon's ear, as he sat on the broad hotel piazza of the New Helvetia Springs, and gazed with meditative eyes at the fair August sky. An early moon was riding, clear and full, over this wild spur of the Alleghanies; the stars were few and very faint; even the great Scorpio lurked, vaguely outlined, above the wooded ranges; and the white mist, that filled the long, deep, narrow valley between the parallel lines of mountains, shimmered with opalescent gleams.

The relaxed voices went unnoticed by old Mr. Kenyon as he sat on the wide hotel porch of the New Helvetia Springs, gazing thoughtfully at the clear August sky. An early moon hung bright and full over this rugged part of the Alleghanies; the stars were few and very dim; even the prominent Scorpio was faintly visible above the tree-covered mountains; and the white mist that filled the long, deep, narrow valley between the parallel mountain ranges shimmered with iridescent gleams.

All the world of the watering-place had converged to that focus, the ball-room, and the cool, moonlit piazzas were nearly deserted. The fell determination of the "Harrison folks" to give a dancing party made no impression on the preoccupied old gentleman. Another voice broke his reverie,—a soft, clear, well-modulated voice,—and he started and turned his head as his own name was called, and his niece, Mrs. Darley, came to the window.

All the people at the resort had gathered in the ballroom, and the cool, moonlit porches were almost empty. The unwavering decision of the "Harrison folks" to host a dance party didn’t affect the distracted old man. Another voice interrupted his daydream—a soft, clear, well-toned voice—and he jolted and turned his head when his name was called, and his niece, Mrs. Darley, approached the window.

"Uncle Ambrose,—are you there? So glad! I was afraid you were down at the summer-house, where I hear the children singing. Do come here a moment, please. This is Mrs. Johns, who brings the Indian peaches to sell,—you know the Indian peaches?"

"Uncle Ambrose, are you there? I’m so glad! I was worried you were at the summer house, where I hear the kids singing. Please come here for a moment. This is Mrs. Johns, who sells the Indian peaches—you know the Indian peaches?"

Mr. Kenyon knew the Indian peaches, the dark crimson fruit streaked with still darker lines, and full of blood-red juice, which he had meditatively munched that very afternoon. Mr. Kenyon knew the Indian peaches right well. He wondered, however, what had brought Mrs. Johns back in so short a time, for although the principal industry of the mountain people about the New Helvetia Springs is selling fruit to the summer sojourners, it is not customary to come twice on the same day, nor to appear at all after night-fall.

Mr. Kenyon was familiar with the Indian peaches, the deep crimson fruit marked with even darker lines, bursting with blood-red juice, which he had thoughtfully eaten that very afternoon. Mr. Kenyon knew all about the Indian peaches. However, he wondered what had brought Mrs. Johns back so soon, because while the main business of the mountain people around New Helvetia Springs is selling fruit to the summer visitors, it's not common to come back twice in one day or to show up after dark.

Mrs. Darley proceeded to explain.

Mrs. Darley went on to explain.

"Mrs. Johns's husband is ill and wants us to send him some medicine."

"Mrs. Johns's husband is sick and wants us to send him some medicine."

Mr. Kenyon rose, threw away the stump of his cigar, and entered the room. "How long has he been ill, Mrs. Johns?" he asked, dismally.

Mr. Kenyon stood up, tossed aside the end of his cigar, and walked into the room. "How long has he been sick, Mrs. Johns?" he asked, gloomily.

Mr. Kenyon always spoke lugubriously, and he was a dismal-looking old man. Not more cheerful was Mrs. Johns; she was tall and lank, and with such a face as one never sees except in these mountains,—elongated, sallow, thin, with pathetic, deeply sunken eyes, and high cheek-bones, and so settled an expression of hopeless melancholy that it must be that naught but care and suffering had been her lot; holding out wasted hands to the years as they pass,—holding them out always, and always empty. She wore a shabby, faded calico, and spoke with the peculiar expressionless drawl of the mountaineer. She was a wonderful contrast to Mrs. Darley, all furbelows and flounces, with her fresh, smooth face and soft hair, and plump, round arms half-revealed by the flowing sleeves of her thin, black dress. Mrs. Darley was in mourning, and therefore did not affect the ball-room. At this moment, on benevolent thoughts intent, she was engaged in uncorking sundry small phials, gazing inquiringly at their labels, and shaking their contents.

Mr. Kenyon always spoke in a gloomy way, and he looked like a sad old man. Mrs. Johns wasn’t any more cheerful; she was tall and thin, with a face you rarely see outside these mountains—long, pale, and gaunt, with deep-set, sorrowful eyes, high cheekbones, and a fixed expression of hopeless sadness that suggested her life had been filled with worry and hardship. She reached out her frail hands as time went by, always stretching them out, but they remained empty. She wore a worn, faded dress and spoke with the flat, slow drawl typical of the locals. She was a striking contrast to Mrs. Darley, who was all about frills and decorations, with her fresh, smooth face, soft hair, and plump, round arms partly visible beneath the flowing sleeves of her thin black dress. Mrs. Darley was in mourning, which is why she wasn’t at the dance. Right now, with caring thoughts in mind, she was busy opening several small bottles, curiously looking at their labels and shaking their contents.

In reply to Mr. Kenyon's question, Mrs. Johns, sitting on the extreme edge of a chair and fanning herself with a pink calico sun-bonnet, talked about her husband, and a misery in his side and in his back, and how he felt it "a-comin' on nigh on ter a week ago." Mr. Kenyon expressed sympathy, and was surprised by the announcement that Mrs. Johns considered her husband's illness "a blessin', 'kase ef he war able ter git out'n his bed, he 'lowed ter go down ter Harrison's Cove ter the dancin' party, 'kase Rick Pearson war a-goin' ter be thar, an' hed said ez how none o' the Johnses should come."

In response to Mr. Kenyon's question, Mrs. Johns, sitting on the edge of her chair and fanning herself with a pink fabric sunbonnet, talked about her husband and the pain he had been feeling in his side and back, saying he felt it "coming on for about a week now." Mr. Kenyon expressed his sympathy and was surprised when Mrs. Johns mentioned that she viewed her husband's illness as "a blessing, 'cause if he was able to get out of bed, he planned to go down to Harrison's Cove for the dance party, 'cause Rick Pearson was going to be there, and he had said none of the Johnses should come."

"What, Rick Pearson, that terrible outlaw!" exclaimed Mrs. Darley, with wide open blue eyes. She had read in the newspapers sundry thrilling accounts of a noted horse thief and outlaw, who with a gang of kindred spirits defied justice and roamed certain sparsely-populated mountainous counties at his own wild will, and she was not altogether without a feeling of fear as she heard of his proximity to the New Helvetia Springs,—not fear for life or limb, because she was practical-minded enough to reflect that the sojourners and employés of the watering-place would far outnumber the outlaw's troop, but fear that a pair of shiny bay ponies, Castor and Pollux, would fall victims to the crafty wiles of the expert horse thief.

"What, Rick Pearson, that awful outlaw!" exclaimed Mrs. Darley, her blue eyes wide open. She had read various thrilling stories in the newspapers about a famous horse thief and outlaw who, along with a gang of like-minded individuals, challenged the law and roamed through certain sparsely populated mountainous areas at his own reckless leisure. She felt a twinge of fear as she heard about his closeness to the New Helvetia Springs—not fear for her safety, as she was practical enough to realize that the visitors and workers at the resort would far outnumber the outlaw's gang, but rather a fear that a pair of shiny bay ponies, Castor and Pollux, might fall prey to the clever tricks of the skilled horse thief.

"I think I have heard something of a difficulty between your people and Rick Pearson," said old Mr. Kenyon. "Has a peace never been patched up between them?"

"I think I've heard there’s been some trouble between your people and Rick Pearson," said old Mr. Kenyon. "Hasn't a truce ever been established between them?"

"No-o," drawled Mrs. Johns; "same as it always war. My old man'll never believe but what Rick Pearson stole that thar bay filly we lost 'bout five year ago. But I don't believe he done it; plenty other folks around is ez mean ez Rick, leastways mos' ez mean; plenty mean enough ter steal a horse, ennyhow. Rick say he never tuk the filly; say he war a-goin' ter shoot off the nex' man's head ez say so. Rick say he'd ruther give two bay fillies than hev a man say he tuk a horse ez he never tuk. Rick say ez how he kin stand up ter what he does do, but it's these hyar lies on him what kills him out. But ye know, Mis' Darley, ye know yerself, he never give nobody two bay fillies in this world, an' what's more he's never goin' ter. My old man an' my boy Kossute talks on 'bout that thar bay filly like she war stole yestiddy, an' 't war five year ago an' better; an' when they hearn ez how Rick Pearson hed showed that red head o' his'n on this hyar mounting las' week, they war fightin' mad, an' would hev lit out fur the gang sure, 'ceptin' they hed been gone down the mounting fur two days. An' my son Kossute, he sent Rick word that he had better keep out 'n gunshot o' these hyar woods; that he didn't want no better mark than that red head o' his'n, an' he could hit it two mile off. An' Rick Pearson, he sent Kossute word that he would kill him fur his sass the very nex' time he see him, an' ef he don't want a bullet in that pumpkin head o' his'n he hed better keep away from that dancin' party what the Harrisons hev laid off ter give, 'kase Rick say he's a-goin' ter it hisself, an' is a-goin' ter dance too; he ain't been invited, Mis' Darley, but Rick don't keer fur that. He is a-goin' ennyhow, an' he say ez how he ain't a-goin' ter let Kossute come, 'count o' Kossute's sass an' the fuss they've all made 'bout that bay filly that war stole five year ago,—'t war five year an' better. But Rick say ez how he is goin', fur all he ain't got no invite, an' is a-goin' ter dance too, 'kase you know, Mis' Darley, it's a-goin' ter be a dancin' party; the Harrisons hev determinated on that. Them gals of theirn air mos' crazed 'bout a dancin' party. They ain't been a bit of account sence they went ter Cheatham's Cross-Roads ter see thar gran'mother, an' picked up all them queer new notions. So the Harrisons hev determinated on a dancin' party; an' Rick say ez how he is goin' ter dance too; but Jule, she say ez how she know thar ain't a gal on the mounting ez would dance with him; but I ain't so sure 'bout that, Mis' Darley; gals air cur'ous critters, ye know yerself; thar's no sort o' countin' on 'em; they'll do one thing one time, an' another thing nex' time; ye can't put no dependence in 'em. But Jule say ef he kin git Mandy Tyler ter dance with him, it's the mos' he kin do, an' the gang'll be no whar. Mebbe he kin git Mandy ter dance with him, 'kase the other boys say ez how none o' them is a-goin' ter ax her ter dance, 'count of the trick she played on 'em down ter the Wilkins settlemint—las' month, war it? no, 't war two month ago, an' better; but the boys ain't forgot how scandalous she done 'em, an' none of 'em is a-goin' ter ax her ter dance."

"No," Mrs. Johns dragged out, "it's the same as it always was. My husband will never believe that Rick Pearson didn't steal that bay filly we lost about five years ago. But I don’t think he did; there are a lot of other people around who are just as mean as Rick, at least almost as mean; plenty mean enough to steal a horse, anyway. Rick says he never took the filly; he claims he was going to shoot the next man who says he did. Rick says he’d rather give away two bay fillies than have someone claim he stole a horse he didn’t take. Rick says it’s how he can stand by what he does, but it’s these lies about him that are ruining him. But you know, Miss Darley, you know yourself, he’s never given anybody two bay fillies in this world, and what’s more, he’s never going to. My husband and my son Kossute talk about that bay filly like she was stolen yesterday, but it was over five years ago. And when they heard that Rick Pearson had shown that red head of his on this mountain last week, they were furious and would have gone after him for sure, except they’d been down the mountain for two days. And my son Kossute sent Rick a message saying he better stay out of gunshot range of these woods; that he wouldn’t want a better target than that red head of his, and he could hit it two miles away. And Rick Pearson sent Kossute a message back that he’d kill him for his sass the very next time he saw him, and if he didn’t want a bullet in that pumpkin head of his, he better stay away from the dance party the Harrisons are planning, because Rick says he’s going to it himself, and he’s going to dance too; he hasn’t been invited, Miss Darley, but Rick doesn’t care about that. He’s going anyway, and he says he’s not going to let Kossute come, because of Kossute’s sass and all the fuss they’ve made about that bay filly that was stolen five years ago—it was over five years ago. But Rick says he’s going, even though he doesn’t have an invite, and he’s going to dance too, because you know, Miss Darley, it’s going to be a dance party; the Harrisons have decided on that. Their girls are almost crazy about a dance party. They haven’t been worth a thing since they went to Cheatham’s Cross-Roads to see their grandmother and picked up all those strange new ideas. So the Harrisons have decided on a dance party; and Rick says he’s going to dance too; but Jule, she says she knows there isn’t a girl on that mountain who would dance with him; but I’m not so sure about that, Miss Darley; girls are curious creatures, you know that yourself; there’s no counting on them; they’ll do one thing one time, and another thing the next time; you can’t depend on them. But Jule says if he can get Mandy Tyler to dance with him, that’s the most he can ask, and the group will be nowhere. Maybe he can get Mandy to dance with him, because the other boys say none of them are going to ask her to dance, because of the trick she played on them down at the Wilkins settlement—last month, was it? No, it was two months ago and more; but the boys haven’t forgotten how scandalously she treated them, and none of them are going to ask her to dance."

"Why, what did she do?" exclaimed Mrs. Darley, surprised. "She came here to sell peaches one day, and I thought her such a nice, pretty, well-behaved girl."

"Why, what did she do?" Mrs. Darley exclaimed, surprised. "She came here to sell peaches one day, and I thought she was such a nice, pretty, well-behaved girl."

"Waal, she hev got mighty quiet say-nuthin' sort'n ways, Mis' Darley, but that thar gal do behave rediculous. Down thar ter the Wilkins settlemint,—ye know it's 'bout two mile or two mile'n a half from hyar,—waal, all the gals walked down thar ter the party an hour by sun, but when the boys went down they tuk thar horses, ter give the gals a ride home behind 'em. Waal, every boy axed his gal ter ride while the party war goin' on, an' when 't war all over they all set out fur ter come home. Waal, this hyar Mandy Tyler is a mighty favorite 'mongst the boys,—they ain't got no sense, ye know, Mis' Darley,—an' stiddier one of 'em axin' her ter ride home, thar war five of 'em axed her ter ride, ef ye'll believe me, an' what do ye think she done, Mis' Darley? She tole all five of 'em yes; an' when the party war over, she war the last ter go, an' when she started out'n the door, thar war all five of them boys a-standin' thar waitin' fur her, an' every one a-holdin' his horse by the bridle, an' none of 'em knowed who the others war a-waitin' fur. An' this hyar Mandy Tyler, when she got ter the door an' seen 'em all a-standin' thar, never said one word, jest walked right through 'mongst 'em, an' set out fur the mounting on foot with all them five boys a-followin' an' a-leadin' thar horses an' a-quarrelin' enough ter take off each others' heads 'bout which one war a-goin' ter ride with her; which none of 'em did, Mis' Darley, fur I hearn ez how the whole lay-out footed it all the way ter New Helveshy. An' thar would hev been a fight 'mongst 'em, 'ceptin' her brother, Jacob Tyler, went along with 'em, an' tried ter keep the peace a-twixt 'em. An' Mis' Darley, all them married folks down thar at the party—them folks in the Wilkins settlemint is the biggest fools, sure—when all them married folks come out ter the door, an' see the way Mandy Tyler hed treated them boys, they jest hollered and laffed an' thought it war mighty smart an' funny in Mandy; but she never say a word till she kem up the mounting, an' I never hearn ez how she say ennything then. An' now the boys all say none of 'em is a-goin' ter ax her ter dance, ter pay her back fur them fool airs of hern. But Kossute say he'll dance with her ef none the rest will. Kossute he thought 't war all mighty funny too,—he's sech a fool 'bout gals, Kossute is,—but Jule, she thought ez how 't war scandalous."

"Waal, she’s been really quiet and not saying much, Miss Darley, but that girl is acting ridiculous. Down at the Wilkins settlement—you know it’s about two miles or two and a half from here—well, all the girls walked down there to the party at sunset, but when the boys went, they took their horses to give the girls a ride home. Well, every boy asked his girl to ride while the party was going on, and when it was all over, they all set out to come home. Well, this Mandy Tyler is a favorite among the boys—they don’t have any sense, you know, Miss Darley—and instead of one of them asking her to ride home, five of them asked her, believe it or not, and what do you think she did, Miss Darley? She told all five of them yes; and when the party was over, she was the last to go, and when she started out the door, all five of those boys were standing there waiting for her, each one holding his horse by the bridle, and none of them knew who the others were waiting for. And this Mandy Tyler, when she got to the door and saw them all standing there, didn’t say a word, just walked right through them, and set out for the mountain on foot with all those five boys following her, leading their horses and arguing enough to take each other’s heads off about who was going to ride with her; which none of them did, Miss Darley, because I heard that the whole group walked it all the way to New Helveshy. And there would’ve been a fight among them, except her brother, Jacob Tyler, went along with them and tried to keep the peace. And Miss Darley, all those married folks down at the party—the people in the Wilkins settlement are the biggest fools for sure—when all those married folks came out to the door and saw how Mandy Tyler had treated those boys, they just yelled and laughed and thought it was very clever and funny of Mandy; but she didn’t say a word until she got up the mountain, and I never heard that she said anything then. And now the boys are saying that none of them is going to ask her to dance to pay her back for her foolish behavior. But Kossute says he’ll dance with her if none of the others will. Kossute thought it was all pretty funny too—he's such a fool about girls, Kossute is—but Jule thought it was scandalous."

Mrs. Darley listened in amused surprise; that these mountain wilds could sustain a first-class coquette was an idea that had not hitherto entered her mind; however, "that thar Mandy" seemed, in Mrs. Johns's opinion at least, to merit the unenviable distinction, and the party at Wilkins settlement and the prospective gayety of Harrison's Cove awakened the same sentiments in her heart and mind as do the more ambitious germans and kettledrums of the lowland cities in the heart and mind of Mrs. Grundy. Human nature is the same everywhere, and the Wilkins settlement is a microcosm. The metropolitan centres, stripped of the civilization of wealth, fashion, and culture, would present only the bare skeleton of humanity outlined in Mrs. Johns's talk of Harrison's Cove, the Wilkins settlement, the enmities and scandals and sorrows and misfortunes of the mountain ridge. As the absurd resemblance developed, Mrs. Darley could not forbear a smile. Mrs. Johns looked up with a momentary expression of surprise; the story presented no humorous phase to her perceptions, but she too smiled a little as she repeated, "Scandalous, ain't it?" and proceeded in the same lack-lustre tone as before.

Mrs. Darley listened in amused surprise; the idea that these mountain wilds could support a top-notch flirt had never crossed her mind until now. However, "that thar Mandy" seemed, at least in Mrs. Johns's opinion, to deserve that unfortunate title, and the gathering at Wilkins settlement along with the upcoming festivities at Harrison's Cove stirred in her heart and mind the same feelings that the more extravagant dances and celebrations in the cities triggered for Mrs. Grundy. Human nature is the same everywhere, and the Wilkins settlement is a small version of that. The major cities, stripped of wealth, fashion, and culture, would show only the bare bones of humanity as reflected in Mrs. Johns's talk about Harrison's Cove, the Wilkins settlement, and the conflicts, scandals, sorrows, and misfortunes of the mountain ridge. As the ridiculous similarity became clearer, Mrs. Darley couldn't help but smile. Mrs. Johns looked up, momentarily surprised; the story didn't seem funny to her, but she too managed a slight smile as she repeated, "Scandalous, ain't it?" and continued in the same dull tone as before.

"Yes,—Kossute say ez how he'll dance with her ef none the rest will, fur Kossute say ez how he hev laid off ter dance, Mis' Darley; an' when I ax him what he thinks will become of his soul ef he dances, he say the devil may crack away at it, an' ef he kin hit it he's welcome. Fur soul or no soul he's a-goin' ter dance. Kossute is a-fixin' of hisself this very minit ter go; but I am verily afeard the boy'll be slaughtered, Mis' Darley, 'kase thar is goin' ter be a fight, an' ye never in all yer life hearn sech sass ez Kossute and Rick Pearson done sent word ter each other."

"Yeah, Kossute says he’ll dance with her if no one else will, because Kossute says he’s been preparing to dance, Mrs. Darley; and when I asked him what he thinks will happen to his soul if he dances, he said the devil can have a shot at it, and if he can catch it, he’s welcome to it. Whether he has a soul or not, he’s going to dance. Kossute is getting ready right this minute to go; but I’m really worried the boy will get hurt, Mrs. Darley, because there’s going to be a fight, and you’ve never heard such trash talk as Kossute and Rick Pearson have been sending to each other."

Mr. Kenyon expressed some surprise that she should fear for so young a fellow as Kossuth. "Surely," he said, "the man is not brute enough to injure a mere boy; your son is a mere boy."

Mr. Kenyon was somewhat surprised that she would be worried about someone as young as Kossuth. "Surely," he said, "the guy isn't cruel enough to harm a young boy; your son is just a young boy."

"That's so," Mrs. Johns drawled. "Kossute ain't more 'n twenty year old, an' Rick Pearson is double that ef he is a day; but ye see it's the fire-arms ez makes Kossute more 'n a match fur him, 'kase Kossute is the best shot on the mounting, an' Rick knows that in a shootin' fight Kossute 's better able ter take keer of hisself an' hurt somebody else nor ennybody. Kossute 's more likely ter hurt Rick nor Rick is ter hurt him in a shootin' fight; but ef Rick did n't hurt him, an' he war ter shoot Rick, the gang would tear him ter pieces in a minit; and 'mongst 'em I'm actially afeard they 'll slaughter the boy."

"That's right," Mrs. Johns said slowly. "Kossute isn't even twenty years old, and Rick Pearson is at least twice that if not more; but you see, it's the firearms that make Kossute more than a match for him because Kossute is the best shot around here, and Rick knows that in a shooting fight, Kossute can take care of himself and hurt someone else better than anyone. Kossute is more likely to hurt Rick than Rick is to hurt him in a shooting fight; but if Rick didn't hurt him and Kossute shot Rick, the gang would tear him apart in an instant; and among them, I'm really afraid they’ll kill the boy."

Mr. Kenyon looked even graver than was his wont upon receiving this information, but said no more; and after giving Mrs. Johns the febrifuge she wished for her husband, he returned to his seat on the piazza.

Mr. Kenyon looked even more serious than usual upon receiving this information, but he didn’t say anything else; after giving Mrs. Johns the fever medicine she wanted for her husband, he went back to his seat on the porch.

Mrs. Darley watched him with some little indignation as he proceeded to light a fresh cigar. "How cold and unsympathetic uncle Ambrose is," she said to herself. And after condoling effusively with Mrs. Johns on her apprehensions for her son's safety, she returned to the gossips in the hotel parlor, and Mrs. Johns, with her pink calico sun-bonnet on her head, went her way in the brilliant summer moon light.

Mrs. Darley watched him with a bit of irritation as he lit a new cigar. "Uncle Ambrose is so cold and indifferent," she thought to herself. After expressing her concerns to Mrs. Johns about her son's safety, she headed back to the gossiping group in the hotel parlor, while Mrs. Johns, wearing her pink calico sun bonnet, went on her way in the bright summer moonlight.

The clear lustre shone white upon all the dark woods and chasms and flashing waters that lay between the New Helvetia Springs and the wide, deep ravine called Harrison's Cove, where from a rude log hut the vibrations of a violin, and the quick throb of dancing feet, already mingled with the impetuous rush of a mountain stream close by and the weird night-sounds of the hills,—the cry of birds among the tall trees, the stir of the wind, the monotonous chanting of frogs at the water-side, the long, drowsy drone of the nocturnal insects, the sudden faint blast of a distant hunter's horn, and the far baying of hounds.

The bright light shimmered over all the dark woods, ravines, and rushing waters that stretched between the New Helvetia Springs and the wide, deep gorge known as Harrison's Cove. From a simple log cabin, the sounds of a violin and the quick rhythm of dancing feet mixed with the fast flow of a nearby mountain stream and the eerie sounds of the night in the hills—the calls of birds among the tall trees, the rustle of the wind, the steady croaking of frogs by the water's edge, the long, sleepy buzz of nighttime insects, the sudden faint blast of a distant hunter's horn, and the distant barking of hounds.

Mr. Harrison had four marriageable daughters, and had arrived at the conclusion that something must be done for the girls; for, strange as it may seem, the prudent father exists even among the "mounting folks." Men there realize the importance of providing suitable homes for their daughters as men do elsewhere, and the eligible youth is as highly esteemed in those wilds as is the much scarcer animal at a fashionable watering-place. Thus it was that Mr. Harrison had "determinated on a dancin' party." True, he stood in bodily fear of the judgment day and the circuit-rider; but the dancing party was a rarity eminently calculated to please the young hunters of the settlements round about, so he swallowed his qualms, to be indulged at a more convenient season, and threw himself into the vortex of preparation with an ardor very gratifying to the four young ladies, who had become imbued with sophistication at Cheatham's Cross-Roads.

Mr. Harrison had four daughters of marriageable age and had concluded that something needed to be done for them. Surprisingly, even in the "mounting folks," there are sensible fathers. The men there understand the importance of finding suitable homes for their daughters just like men do elsewhere, and an eligible young man is as valued in those wilds as a rare animal at a trendy resort. So, Mr. Harrison decided to host a dance party. Admittedly, he was quite afraid of judgment day and the circuit-rider, but the dance was a rare event that would definitely appeal to the young hunters from the nearby settlements. So, he set aside his worries for later and threw himself into the preparations with enthusiasm that greatly pleased his four daughters, who had picked up some sophistication at Cheatham's Cross-Roads.

Not so Mrs. Harrison; she almost expected the house to fall and crush them, as a judgment on the wickedness of a dancing party; for so heinous a sin, in the estimation of the greater part of the mountain people, had not been committed among them for many a day. Such trifles as killing a man in a quarrel, or on suspicion of stealing a horse, or wash-tub, or anything that came handy, of course, does not count; but a dancing party! Mrs. Harrison could only hold her idle hands, and dread the heavy penalty that must surely follow so terrible a crime.

Not Mrs. Harrison; she almost expected the house to collapse and crush them as punishment for the wickedness of a dancing party. In the eyes of most of the mountain people, such a serious sin hadn’t been committed among them in a long time. Things like killing someone in a fight or out of suspicion for stealing a horse, a wash-tub, or anything else that was easy to grab didn't really matter, but a dancing party! Mrs. Harrison could only keep her hands busy and fear the heavy consequences that had to come after such a terrible crime.

It certainly had not the gay and lightsome aspect supposed to be characteristic of such a scene of sin: the awkward young mountaineers clogged heavily about in their uncouth clothes and rough shoes, with the stolid-looking, lack-lustre maids of the hill, to the violin's monotonous iteration of The Chicken in the Bread-Trough, or The Rabbit in the Pea-Patch,—all their grave faces as grave as ever. The music now and then changed suddenly to one of those wild, melancholy strains sometimes heard in old-fashioned dancing tunes, and the strange pathetic cadences seemed more attuned to the rhythmical dash of the waters rushing over their stone barricades out in the moonlight yonder, or to the plaintive sighs of the winds among the great dark arches of the primeval forests, than to the movement of the heavy, coarse feet dancing a solemn measure in the little log cabin in Harrison's Cove. The elders, sitting in rush-bottomed chairs close to the walls, and looking on at the merriment, well-pleased despite their religious doubts, were somewhat more lively; every now and then a guffaw mingled with the violin's resonant strains and the dancers' well-marked pace; the women talked to each other with somewhat more animation than was their wont, under the stress of the unusual excitement of a dancing party, and from out the shed-room adjoining came an anticipative odor of more substantial sin than the fiddle or the grave jiggling up and down the rough floor. A little more cider too, and a very bad article of illegally-distilled whiskey, were ever and anon circulated among the pious abstainers from the dance; but the sinful votaries of Terpsichore could brook no pause nor delay, and jogged up and down quite intoxicated with the mirthfulness of the plaintive old airs and the pleasure of other motion than following the plow or hoeing the corn.

It definitely didn’t have the cheerful and lively vibe that one might expect from such a scene of vice: the awkward young mountain folks moved clumsily in their rough clothes and heavy shoes, alongside the stony-faced, dull-looking local girls, all to the violin's monotonous repetition of The Chicken in the Bread-Trough or The Rabbit in the Pea-Patch—every one of their serious faces was just as serious as ever. Every now and then, the music would suddenly shift to one of those wild, melancholic tunes that sometimes pop up in old-fashioned dance music, and the strange, poignant melodies seemed to resonate more with the rhythmic rush of the water flowing over the stone barriers outside in the moonlight, or with the wistful sounds of the winds weaving through the massive dark arches of the ancient forests, rather than the heavy, rough feet moving solemnly in time with the music in the little log cabin in Harrison's Cove. The elders sat in rush-bottomed chairs close to the walls, watching the fun, clearly enjoying it despite their religious reservations; occasionally, a loud laugh mixed in with the violin's resonant notes and the well-synchronized dancers’ steps; the women chatted with a bit more energy than usual, spurred on by the excitement of a dance party, and from the adjoining room came the enticing smell of something more substantial than just the fiddle or the serious jigs bouncing on the rough floor. A little more cider and some very bad homemade whiskey were occasionally passed around among the pious non-dancers; but the indulgent dancers couldn’t bear to stop and kept bouncing up and down, completely caught up in the joy of the nostalgic tunes and the thrill of doing something other than plowing or hoeing corn.

And the moon smiled right royally on her dominion: on the long, dark ranges of mountains and mist-filled valleys between; on the woods and streams, and on all the half-dormant creatures either amongst the shadow-flecked foliage or under the crystal waters; on the long, white, sandy road winding in and out through the forest; on the frowning crags of the wild ravine; on the little bridge at the entrance of the gorge, across which a party of eight men, heavily armed and gallantly mounted, rode swiftly and disappeared amid the gloom of the shadows.

And the moon shone beautifully over her kingdom: on the long, dark mountain ranges and misty valleys in between; on the woods and streams, and on all the half-asleep creatures hiding in the shadowy foliage or beneath the clear waters; on the long, white sandy road winding through the forest; on the imposing cliffs of the rugged ravine; on the little bridge at the entrance of the gorge, across which a group of eight men, heavily armed and riding boldly, swiftly passed and disappeared into the darkness of the shadows.

The sound of the galloping of horses broke suddenly on the music and the noise of the dancing; a moment's interval, and the door gently opened and the gigantic form of Rick Pearson appeared in the aperture. He was dressed, like the other mountaineers, in a coarse suit of brown jeans somewhat the worse for wear, the trowsers stuffed in the legs of his heavy boots; he wore an old soft felt hat, which he did not remove immediately on entering, and a pair of formidable pistols at his belt conspicuously challenged attention. He had auburn hair, and a long full beard of a lighter tint reaching almost to his waist; his complexion was much tanned by the sun, and roughened by exposure to the inclement mountain weather; his eyes were brown, deep-set, and from under his heavy brows they looked out with quick, sharp glances, and occasionally with a roguish twinkle; the expression of his countenance was rather good-humored,—a sort of imperious good-humor, however,—the expression of a man accustomed to have his own way and not to be trifled with, but able to afford some amiability since his power is undisputed.

The sound of galloping horses suddenly interrupted the music and dancing; after a brief moment, the door opened gently and the towering figure of Rick Pearson stepped into view. He was dressed like the other mountain men, in a worn, coarse brown jeans outfit, with the pants tucked into the legs of his heavy boots. He wore an old soft felt hat, which he didn’t take off right away, and a pair of impressive pistols at his belt that definitely grabbed attention. He had auburn hair and a long, full beard of a lighter shade that reached almost to his waist; his skin was sun-tanned and roughened from exposure to the harsh mountain weather. His brown eyes were deep-set, giving quick, sharp glances from beneath his heavy brows, and occasionally sparkled with a playful twinkle. His expression was generally good-humored—though it carried a hint of imperiousness—a look of a man who’s used to getting his way and doesn't tolerate nonsense, but who can afford to be somewhat friendly since his authority is unquestioned.

He stepped slowly into the apartment, placed his gun against the wall, turned, and solemnly gazed at the dancing, while his followers trooped in and obeyed his example. As the eight guns, one by one, rattled against the wall, there was a startled silence among the pious elders of the assemblage, and a sudden disappearance of the animation that had characterized their intercourse during the evening. Mrs. Harrison, who by reason of flurry and a housewifely pride in the still unrevealed treasures of the shed-room had well-nigh forgotten her fears, felt that the anticipated judgment had even now descended, and in what terrible and unexpected guise! The men turned the quids of tobacco in their cheeks and looked at each other in uncertainty; but the dancers bestowed not a glance upon the new-comers, and the musician in the corner, with his eyes half-closed, his head bent low upon the instrument, his hard, horny hand moving the bow back and forth over the strings of the crazy old fiddle, was utterly rapt by his own melody. At the supreme moment when the great red beard had appeared portentously in the door-way and fear had frozen the heart of Mrs. Harrison within her at the ill-omened apparition, the host was in the shed-room filling a broken-nosed pitcher from the cider-barrel. When he re-entered, and caught sight of the grave sun-burned face with its long red beard and sharp brown eyes, he too was dismayed for an instant, and stood silent at the opposite door with the pitcher in his hand. The pleasure and the possible profit of the dancing party, for which he had expended so much of his scanty store of this world's goods and risked the eternal treasures laid up in heaven, were a mere phantasm; for, with Rick Pearson among them, in an ill frame of mind and at odds with half the men in the room, there would certainly be a fight, and in all probability one would be killed, and the dancing party at Harrison's Cove would be a text for the bloody-minded sermons of the circuit-rider for all time to come. However, the father of four marriageable daughters is apt to become crafty and worldly-wise; only for a moment did he stand in indecision; then, catching suddenly the small brown eyes, he held up the pitcher with a grin of invitation. "Rick!" he called out above the scraping of the violin and the clatter of the dancing feet, "slip round hyar ef ye kin, I've got somethin' for ye;" and he shook the pitcher significantly.

He stepped slowly into the apartment, placed his gun against the wall, turned, and solemnly watched the dancing, while his followers came in and followed his lead. As the eight guns rattled against the wall, there was a startled silence among the pious elders of the gathering, and the lively atmosphere that had filled the evening suddenly vanished. Mrs. Harrison, who had almost forgotten her fears due to the excitement and her pride in the still-hidden treasures of the shed-room, felt that the expected judgment had finally arrived, and in a terrifying and unexpected form! The men shifted their chewing tobacco in their cheeks and exchanged uncertain looks; but the dancers didn't glance at the newcomers, and the musician in the corner, with his eyes half-closed, his head bent low over his instrument, his rough hand moving the bow back and forth over the strings of the old fiddle, was completely absorbed in his own melody. Just when the big man with the red beard appeared dramatically in the doorway, freezing Mrs. Harrison's heart with fear at the ominous sight, the host was in the shed-room filling a broken-nosed pitcher from the cider barrel. When he came back in and saw the serious sunburned face with its long red beard and sharp brown eyes, he too was taken aback for a moment and stood silent in the opposite doorway with the pitcher in his hand. The enjoyment and potential profit of the dancing party, for which he had spent so much of his limited resources and risked his eternal rewards, felt like a mere illusion; because with Rick Pearson among them, in a bad mood and at odds with half the men in the room, a fight was bound to happen, and it was likely someone would be killed, turning the dancing party at Harrison's Cove into a grim story for the bloody sermons of the circuit-rider for years to come. However, a father of four daughters of marriageable age tends to become shrewd and clever; he hesitated for only a moment; then, suddenly catching the small brown eyes, he raised the pitcher with an inviting grin. "Rick!" he called out above the scraping of the violin and the noise of dancing feet, "swing by here if you can, I've got something for you;" and he shook the pitcher meaningfully.

Not that Mr. Harrison would for a moment have thought of Rick Pearson in a matrimonial point of view, for even the sophistication of the Cross-Roads had not yet brought him to the state of mind to consider such a half loaf as this better than no bread, but he felt it imperative from every point of view to keep that set of young mountaineers dancing in peace and quiet, and their guns idle and out of mischief against the wall. The great red beard disappeared and reappeared at intervals, as Rick Pearson slipped along the gun-lined wall to join his host and the cider-pitcher, and after he had disposed of the refreshment, in which the gang shared, he relapsed into silently watching the dancing and meditating a participation in that festivity.

Not that Mr. Harrison would have ever thought about Rick Pearson in a romantic way, since even the sophistication of Cross-Roads hadn’t made him consider such a mediocre option as better than nothing, but he felt it was crucial from every angle to keep that group of young mountain guys dancing peacefully and their guns idle and out of trouble against the wall. The big red beard would vanish and reappear at intervals as Rick Pearson moved along the gun-lined wall to join his host and the cider pitcher, and after he enjoyed the drink that the gang shared, he fell into quietly watching the dancing and thinking about joining in on the fun.

Now, it so happened that the only young girl unprovided with a partner was "that thar Mandy Tyler," of Wilkins settlement renown; the young men had rigidly adhered to their resolution to ignore her in their invitations to dance, and she had been sitting since the beginning of the festivities, quite neglected, among the married people, looking on at the amusement which she had been debarred sharing by that unpopular bit of coquetry at Wilkins settlement. Nothing of disappointment or mortification was expressed in her countenance; she felt the slight of course,—even a "mounting" woman is susceptible of the sting of wounded pride; all her long-anticipated enjoyment had come to naught by this infliction of penance for her ill-timed jest at the expense of those five young fellows dancing with their triumphant partners and bestowing upon her not even a glance; but she looked the express image of immobility as she sat in her clean pink calico, so carefully gotten up for the occasion, her short black hair curling about her ears, and watched the unending reel with slow, dark eyes. Rick's glance fell upon her, and without further hesitation he strode over to where she was sitting and proffered his hand for the dance. She did not reply immediately, but looked timidly about her at the shocked pious ones on either side, who were ready but for mortal fear to aver that "dancin' ennyhow air bad enough, the Lord knows, but dancin' with a horse thief air jest scandalous!" Then, for there is something of defiance to established law and prejudice in the born flirt everywhere, with a sudden daring spirit shining in her brightening eyes, she responded, "Don't keer ef I do," with a dimpling half-laugh; and the next minute the two outlaws were flying down the middle together.

Now, it just so happened that the only young girl without a partner was "that Mandy Tyler" from Wilkins settlement; the young men had stubbornly stuck to their choice to leave her out of their dance invitations, and she had been sitting since the start of the festivities, completely ignored, among the married folks, watching the fun that she had been excluded from because of that unpopular little tease from Wilkins settlement. There was no sign of disappointment or humiliation on her face; she certainly felt the slight—even a proud woman can be hurt by wounded pride; all her long-expected enjoyment had been spoiled by this punishment for her poorly timed joke at the expense of those five guys dancing with their happy partners, not even giving her a glance. But she sat there, looking perfectly still in her clean pink calico dress, which she had put together with care for the occasion, her short black hair curling around her ears, and watched the endless dance with her slow, dark eyes. Rick noticed her, and without hesitation, he walked over to where she was sitting and offered his hand for the dance. She didn’t answer right away but looked shyly around at the shocked, pious people on either side of her, who were ready to claim that "dancing anyhow is bad enough, the Lord knows, but dancing with a horse thief is just scandalous!" Then, because there's something defiant about a born flirt everywhere, with a sudden spark of courage shining in her brightening eyes, she replied, "I don't care if I do," with a playful half-laugh; and the next moment, the two outlaws were dancing down the middle together.

While Rick was according grave attention to the intricacies of the mazy dance and keeping punctilious time to the scraping of the old fiddle, finding it all a much more difficult feat than galloping from the Cross Roads to the "Snake's Mouth" on some other man's horse with the sheriff hard at his heels, the solitary figure of a tall gaunt man had followed the long winding path leading deep into the woods, and now began the steep descent to Harrison's Cove. Of what was old Mr. Kenyon thinking, as he walked on in the mingled shadow and sheen? Of St. Augustin and his Forty Monks, probably, and what they found in Britain. The young men of his acquaintance would gladly have laid you any odds that he could think of nothing but his antique hobby, the ancient church. Mr. Kenyon was the most prominent man in St. Martin's church in the city of B——, not excepting the rector. He was a lay-reader, and officiated upon occasions of "clerical sore-throat," as the profane denominate the ministerial summer exodus from heated cities. This summer, however, Mr. Kenyon's own health had succumbed, and he was having a little "sore-throat" in the mountains on his own account. Very devout was Mr. Kenyon. Many people wondered that he had never taken orders. Many people warmly congratulated themselves that he never had; for drier sermons than those he selected were surely never heard, and a shuddering imagination shrinks appalled from the problematic mental drought of his ideal original discourse. But he was an integrant part of St. Martin's; much of his piety, materialized into contributions, was built up in its walls and shone before men in the costliness of its decorations. Indeed, the ancient name had been conferred upon the building as a sort of tribute to Mr. Kenyon's well-known enthusiasm concerning apostolic succession and kindred doctrines.

While Rick was paying serious attention to the complex dance and keeping strict time to the sound of the old fiddle, finding it all a much tougher challenge than racing from the Cross Roads to the "Snake's Mouth" on someone else's horse with the sheriff close behind, a tall, thin man was following the long winding path deep into the woods, beginning his steep descent into Harrison's Cove. What was old Mr. Kenyon thinking as he walked on in the mixed shadows and light? Probably about St. Augustine and his Forty Monks and what they discovered in Britain. The young men he knew would have happily bet you anything that he could think of nothing but his old passion, the ancient church. Mr. Kenyon was the most prominent figure at St. Martin's Church in the city of B——, not even excluding the rector. He was a lay reader and stepped in on occasions when the "minister had a sore throat," as the irreverent refer to the clerical summer exodus from sweltering cities. However, this summer, Mr. Kenyon's own health had failed, and he was experiencing a bit of a "sore throat" in the mountains for himself. Mr. Kenyon was very devout. Many people wondered why he had never pursued ordination. Many others were glad he hadn't, because drier sermons than the ones he chose surely never existed, and the thought of his ideal original discourse was enough to make anyone shudder in horror at the mental dryness. But he was an essential part of St. Martin's; much of his devotion was transformed into contributions that helped build its walls and decorated it with costly adornments. In fact, the church had been named in honor of Mr. Kenyon's well-known enthusiasm for apostolic succession and related doctrines.

Dull and dismal was Mr. Kenyon, and therefore it may be considered a little strange that he should be a notable favorite with men. They were of many different types, but with one invariable bond of union: they had all at one time served as soldiers; for the war, now ten years passed by, its bitterness almost forgotten, had left some traces that time can never obliterate. What a friend was the droning old churchman in those days of battle and blood-shed and suffering and death! Not a man sat within the walls of St. Martin's who had not received some signal benefit from the hand stretched forth to impress the claims of certain ante-Augustin British clergy to consideration and credibility; not a man who did not remember stricken fields where a good Samaritan went about under shot and shell, succoring the wounded and comforting the dying; not a man who did not applaud the indomitable spirit and courage that cut his way from surrender and safety, through solid barriers of enemies, to deliver the orders on which the fate of an army depended; not a man whose memory did not harbor fatiguing recollections of long, dull sermons read for the souls' health of the soldiery. And through it all,—by the camp-fires at night, on the long white country-roads in the sunshiny mornings; in the mountains and the morasses; in hilarious advance and in cheerless retreat; in the heats of summer and by the side of frozen rivers, the ancient British clergy went through it all. And, whether the old churchman's premises and reasoning were false, whether his tracings of the succession were faulty, whether he dropped a link here or took in one there, he had caught the spirit of those staunch old martyrs, if not their falling churchly mantle.

Mr. Kenyon was dull and gloomy, so it's a bit surprising that he was such a favorite among men. They came from many different backgrounds, but they all shared one common bond: they had all been soldiers at one time. The war, which had ended a decade ago, had almost faded from memory but still left marks that time couldn't erase. The old churchman was a welcomed presence during those days of battle, bloodshed, suffering, and death! Every man in St. Martin's had received some significant help from him, reaching out to highlight the importance of certain early British clergy; not a single man forgot those hard-fought fields where a good Samaritan walked through gunfire, helping the wounded and comforting the dying; not a man who didn’t admire the unwavering bravery that pushed through enemy lines to deliver the critical orders that determined an army's fate; not a man who didn’t have exhausting memories of long, boring sermons meant for the spiritual well-being of the troops. Through it all—by campfires at night, along winding country roads on sunny mornings; in the mountains and wetlands; during joyful advances and gloomy retreats; in the heat of summer and by icy rivers—the old British clergy persevered. And whether the churchman’s beliefs and reasoning were flawed, whether he made mistakes in his lineage tracing, or whether he missed a connection here or there, he embodied the spirit of those steadfast martyrs, if not their ecclesiastical legacy.

The mountaineers about the New Helvetia Springs supposed that Mr. Kenyon was a regularly ordained preacher, and that the sermons which they had heard him read were, to use the vernacular, out of his own head. For many of them were accustomed on Sunday mornings to occupy humble back benches in the ball-room, where on week-day evenings the butterflies sojourning at New Helvetia danced, and on the Sabbath metaphorically beat their breasts, and literally avowed that they were "miserable sinners," following Mr. Kenyon's lugubrious lead.

The climbers around New Helvetia Springs thought that Mr. Kenyon was a formally ordained preacher, and that the sermons they heard him read were, to put it simply, his own thoughts. Many of them were used to sitting in the back of the ballroom on Sunday mornings, where on weeknights the visitors at New Helvetia danced, and on Sundays they metaphorically beat their chests and openly admitted they were “miserable sinners,” following Mr. Kenyon's somber example.

The conclusion of the mountaineers was not unnatural, therefore, and when the door of Mr. Harrison's house opened and another uninvited guest entered, the music suddenly ceased. The half-closed eyes of the fiddler had fallen upon Mr. Kenyon at the threshold, and, supposing him a clergyman, he immediately imagined that the man of God had come all the way from New Helvetia Springs to stop the dancing and snatch the revelers from the jaws of hell. The rapturous bow paused shuddering on the string, the dancing feet were palsied, the pious about the walls were racking their slow brains to excuse their apparent conniving at sin and bargaining with Satan, and Mr. Harrison felt that this was indeed an unlucky party and it would undoubtedly be dispersed by the direct interposition of Providence before the shed-room was opened and the supper eaten. As to his soul—poor man! these constantly recurring social anxieties were making him callous to immortality; this life was about to prove too much for him, for the fortitude and tact even of a father of four marriageable young ladies has a limit. Mr. Kenyon, too, seemed dumb as he hesitated in the door-way, but when the host, partially recovering himself, came forward and offered a chair, he said with one of his dismal smiles that he hoped Mr. Harrison had no objection to his coming in and looking at the dancing for a while. "Don't let me interrupt the young people, I beg," he added, as he seated himself. The astounded silence was unbroken for a few moments. To be sure he was not a circuit-rider, but even the sophistication of Cheatham's Cross-Roads had never heard of a preacher who did not object to dancing. Mr. Harrison could not believe his ears, and asked for a more explicit expression of opinion.

The conclusion of the mountaineers wasn't surprising, so when the door of Mr. Harrison's house opened and another unexpected guest walked in, the music abruptly stopped. The fiddler, with half-closed eyes, spotted Mr. Kenyon at the entrance and, thinking he was a clergyman, immediately feared that the man of God had come all the way from New Helvetia Springs to put an end to the dancing and save the partygoers from damnation. The ecstatic bow froze on the string, the dancers paused in confusion, the pious individuals along the walls were desperately trying to justify their apparent toleration of sin and deals with the devil, and Mr. Harrison realized that this was indeed a cursed gathering, likely to be broken up by divine intervention before they could even start the supper. As for his own soul—poor man! these ongoing social worries were making him insensitive to the idea of eternity; this life was becoming too overwhelming for him, as even the patience and skills of a father of four eligible daughters have their limits. Mr. Kenyon also appeared speechless as he lingered in the doorway, but when the host, somewhat regaining his composure, stepped forward and offered a chair, he gave one of his bleak smiles and said that he hoped Mr. Harrison had no problem with him coming in to watch the dancing for a bit. "Please don't let me interrupt the young people," he added as he took a seat. The stunned silence lasted for several moments. Surely, he wasn't a circuit-rider, but even the sophistication of Cheatham's Cross-Roads had never encountered a preacher who didn't object to dancing. Mr. Harrison could hardly believe his ears and asked for a clearer opinion.

"Ye say ye don't keer ef the boys an' gals dance?" he inquired. "Ye don't think it's sinful?"

"Do you say you don't care if the boys and girls dance?" he asked. "You don't think it's wrong?"

And after Mr. Kenyon's reply, in which the astonished "mounting folks" caught only the surprising statement that dancing if properly conducted was an innocent, cheerful, and healthful amusement, supplemented by something about dancing in the fear of the Lord, and that in all charity he was disposed to consider objections to such harmless recreations a tithing of mint and anise and cummin, whereby might ensue a neglect of weightier matters of the law; that clean hands and clean hearts—hands clean of blood and ill-gotten goods, and hearts free from falsehood and cruel intention—these were the things well-pleasing to God,—after his somewhat prolix reply, the gayety recommenced. The fiddle quavered tremulously at first, but soon resounded with its former vigorous tones, and the joy of the dance was again exemplified in the grave joggling back and forth.

And after Mr. Kenyon's reply, in which the surprised "mounting folks" only caught the surprising statement that dancing, if done properly, was an innocent, cheerful, and healthy activity, along with something about dancing in reverence of the Lord, and that out of goodwill he was inclined to see objections to such harmless fun as just a small focus on minor details, which could lead to neglecting more important matters of the law; that having clean hands and clean hearts—hands free of blood and ill-gotten gains, and hearts free from lies and cruelty—were the things that God appreciated; after his somewhat lengthy response, the merriment resumed. The fiddle started off a little shakily, but soon returned to its lively tones, and the joy of the dance was once again seen in the serious back-and-forth movements.

Meanwhile Mr. Harrison sat beside this strange new guest and asked him questions concerning his church, being instantly, it is needless to say, informed of its great antiquity, of the journeying of St. Augustin and his Forty Monks to Britain, of the church they found already planted there, of its retreat to the hills of Wales under its oppressors' tyranny, of many cognate themes, side issues of the main branch of the subject, into which the talk naturally drifted, the like of which Mr. Harrison had never heard in all his days. And as he watched the figures dancing to the violin's strains, and beheld as in a mental vision the solemn gyrations of those renowned Forty Monks to the monotone of old Mr. Kenyon's voice, he abstractedly hoped that the double dance would continue without interference till a peaceable dawn.

Meanwhile, Mr. Harrison sat next to this strange new guest and asked him questions about his church, quickly learning about its rich history, St. Augustine's journey with his Forty Monks to Britain, the church that was already established there, its retreat to the hills of Wales under the oppression it faced, and many related topics that the conversation naturally wandered into, which Mr. Harrison had never encountered before in his life. As he watched the figures dancing to the violin's music and mentally envisioned the solemn movements of those famous Forty Monks to the steady rhythm of old Mr. Kenyon's voice, he absentmindedly hoped that the dance would go on peacefully until dawn.

His hopes were vain. It so chanced that Kossuth Johns, who had by no means relinquished all idea of dancing at Harrison's Cove and defying Rick Pearson, had hitherto been detained by his mother's persistent entreaties, some necessary attentions to his father, and the many trials which beset a man dressing for a party who has very few clothes, and those very old and worn. Jule, his sister-in-law, had been most kind and complaisant, putting on a button here, sewing up a slit there, darning a refractory elbow, and lending him the one bright ribbon she possessed as a neck-tie. But all these things take time, and the moon did not light Kossuth down the gorge until she was shining almost vertically from the sky, and the Harrison Cove people and the Forty Monks were dancing together in high feather. The ecclesiastic dance halted suddenly, and a watchful light gleamed in old Mr. Kenyon's eyes as he became silent and the boy stepped into the room. The moonlight and the lamp-light fell mingled on the calm, inexpressive features and tall, slender form of the young mountaineer. "Hy're, Kossute!" A cheerful greeting from many voices met him. The next moment the music ceased once again, and the dancing came to a stand-still, for as the name fell on Pearson's ear he turned, glanced sharply toward the door, and drawing one of his pistols from his belt advanced to the middle of the room. The men fell back; so did the frightened women, without screaming, however, for that indication of feminine sensibility had not yet penetrated to Cheatham's Cross-Roads, to say nothing of the mountains.

His hopes were futile. It just so happened that Kossuth Johns, who hadn't given up on the idea of dancing at Harrison's Cove and standing up to Rick Pearson, had been held back by his mother's constant pleas, some necessary duties to his father, and the numerous struggles of getting ready for a party with very few old and worn clothes. Jule, his sister-in-law, had been very helpful and accommodating, putting on a button here, sewing up a tear there, repairing a stubborn elbow, and lending him the only nice ribbon she had as a necktie. But all these things take time, and the moon didn’t light Kossuth's way down the gorge until it was shining almost straight down from the sky, and the people of Harrison Cove and the Forty Monks were dancing joyfully together. The ecclesiastical dance suddenly stopped, and a watchful glint appeared in old Mr. Kenyon's eyes as he went silent and the boy entered the room. The moonlight and lamplight mixed on the calm, unreadable face and tall, slender figure of the young mountaineer. "Hey, Kossuth!" A cheerful greeting from many voices welcomed him. A moment later, the music stopped again, and the dancing came to a halt, because as the name reached Pearson's ears, he turned, shot a sharp glance toward the door, and pulled one of his pistols from his belt, stepping to the center of the room. The men stepped back; so did the frightened women, though they didn’t scream, as that reaction of femininity hadn’t yet reached Cheatham's Cross-Roads, not to mention the mountains.

"I told ye that ye warn't ter come hyar," said Rick Pearson imperiously, "and ye've got ter go home ter yer mammy, right off, or ye'll never git thar no more, youngster."

"I told you that you weren't supposed to come here," Rick Pearson said authoritatively, "and you need to go home to your mom right now, or you'll never get there again, kid."

"I've come hyar ter put you out, ye cussed red-headed horse thief!" retorted Kossuth, angrily; "ye hed better tell me whar that thar bay filly is, or light out, one."

"I've come here to kick you out, you cursed red-headed horse thief!" Kossuth shot back angrily; "you'd better tell me where that bay filly is, or get lost, one."

It is not the habit in the mountains to parley long on these occasions. Kossuth had raised his gun to his shoulder as Rick, with his pistol cocked, advanced a step nearer. The outlaw's weapon was struck upward by a quick, strong hand, the little log cabin was filled with flash, roar, and smoke, and the stars looked in through a hole in the roof from which Rick's bullet had sent the shingles flying. He turned in mortal terror and caught the hand that had struck his pistol,—in mortal terror, for Kossuth was the crack shot of the mountains and he felt he was a dead man. The room was somewhat obscured by smoke, but as he turned upon the man who had disarmed him, for the force of the blow had thrown the pistol to the floor, he saw that the other hand was over the muzzle of young Johns's gun, and Kossuth was swearing loudly that by the Lord Almighty if he didn't take it off he would shoot it off.

It’s not common in the mountains to linger in conversation during these moments. Kossuth had raised his gun to his shoulder when Rick, with his pistol ready, stepped closer. A quick, strong hand struck the outlaw's weapon upwards, and the small log cabin was filled with flash, roar, and smoke. The stars peered in through a hole in the roof where Rick's bullet had blown the shingles away. He turned in sheer terror and tried to grasp the hand that had knocked his pistol away—filled with dread because Kossuth was known as the best shot in the mountains, and he felt like a dead man. The room was somewhat filled with smoke, but when he turned to face the man who had disarmed him, for the impact of the blow had sent the pistol to the floor, he saw that the other hand was over the muzzle of young Johns's gun, and Kossuth was loudly cursing that by the Lord Almighty if he didn’t remove it, he would shoot it off.

"My young friend," Mr. Kenyon began, with the calmness appropriate to a devout member of the one catholic and apostolic church; but then, the old Adam suddenly getting the upper-hand, he shouted out in irate tones, "If you don't stop that noise, I'll break your head! Well, Mr. Pearson," he continued, as he stood between the combatants, one hand still over the muzzle of young Johns's gun, the other, lean and sinewy, holding Pearson's powerful right arm with a vise-like grip, "well, Mr. Pearson, you are not so good a soldier as you used to be; you didn't fight boys in the old times."

"My young friend," Mr. Kenyon started, with the calmness fitting a devoted member of the universal and apostolic church; but then, the old instincts suddenly took over, and he shouted in an angry tone, "If you don't stop that noise, I'll break your head! Well, Mr. Pearson," he continued, as he stood between the fighters, one hand still over the muzzle of young Johns's gun, the other, lean and strong, holding Pearson's powerful right arm in a tight grip, "well, Mr. Pearson, you’re not the soldier you used to be; you didn't fight boys back in the day."

Rick Pearson's enraged expression suddenly gave way to a surprised recognition. "Ye may drag me through hell an' beat me with a soot-bag ef hyar ain't the old fightin' preacher agin!" he cried.

Rick Pearson's angry expression suddenly shifted to one of surprised recognition. "You can drag me through hell and beat me with a soot bag if this isn't the old fighting preacher again!" he exclaimed.

"I have only one thing to say to you," said Mr. Kenyon. "You must go. I will not have you here shooting boys and breaking up a party."

"I have just one thing to say to you," said Mr. Kenyon. "You need to leave. I won’t have you here shooting boys and ruining a party."

Rick demurred. "See hyar, now," he said, "ye've got no business meddlin'."

Rick hesitated. "Look here," he said, "you have no right to interfere."

"You must go," Mr. Kenyon reiterated.

"You have to go," Mr. Kenyon repeated.

"Preachin's yer business," Rick continued; "pears like ye don't 'tend to it, though."

"Preaching is your thing," Rick continued; "it seems like you don't take care of it, though."

"You must go."

"You need to go."

"S'pose I say I won't," said Rick, good-humoredly; "I s'pose ye'd say ye'd make me."

"Suppose I say I won't," Rick said cheerfully. "I suppose you'd say you'd make me."

"You must go," repeated Mr. Kenyon. "I am going to take the boy home with me, but I intend to see you off first."

"You have to leave," Mr. Kenyon said again. "I'm taking the boy home with me, but I want to see you off first."

Mr. Kenyon had prevented the hot-headed Kossuth from firing by keeping his hand persistently over the muzzle of the gun; and young Johns had feared to try to wrench it away lest it should discharge in the effort. Had it done so, Mr. Kenyon would have been in sweet converse with the Forty Monks in about a minute and a quarter. Kossuth had finally let go the gun, and made frantic attempts to borrow a weapon from some of his friends, but the stern authoritative mandate of the belligerent peace-maker had prevented them from gratifying him, and he now stood empty-handed beside Mr. Kenyon, who had shouldered the old rifle in an absent-minded manner, although still retaining his powerful grasp on the arm of the outlaw.

Mr. Kenyon had stopped the hot-headed Kossuth from firing by keeping his hand firmly over the muzzle of the gun, and young Johns was afraid to try to pull it away for fear it might go off in the process. If it had, Mr. Kenyon would have been having a friendly chat with the Forty Monks in about a minute and a quarter. Eventually, Kossuth let go of the gun and desperately tried to borrow a weapon from some of his friends, but the stern and authoritative command of the aggressive peacemaker had prevented them from helping him. Now, he stood empty-handed beside Mr. Kenyon, who had casually shouldered the old rifle while still keeping a tight grip on the arm of the outlaw.

"Waal, parson," said Rick at length, "I'll go, jest ter pleasure you-uns. Ye see, I ain't forgot Shiloh."

"Waal, parson," Rick finally said, "I'll go, just to please you guys. You see, I haven't forgotten Shiloh."

"I am not talking about Shiloh now," said the old man. "You must get off at once,—all of you," indicating the gang, who had been so whelmed in astonishment that they had not lifted a finger to aid their chief.

"I’m not talking about Shiloh right now," said the old man. "You all need to leave immediately," he said, pointing to the group, who were so shocked that they hadn’t moved to help their leader.

"Ye say ye'll take that—that"—Rick looked hard at Kossuth while he racked his brains for an injurious epithet—"that sassy child home ter his mammy?"

"Are you saying you’ll take that—that"—Rick stared intensely at Kossuth while he searched for a hurtful insult—"that disrespectful kid back to his mom?"

"Come, I am tired of this talk," said Mr. Kenyon; "you must go."

"Come on, I'm done with this conversation," Mr. Kenyon said; "you need to leave."

Rick walked heavily to the door and out into the moonlight. "Them was good old times," he said to Mr. Kenyon, with a regretful cadence in his peculiar drawl; "good old times, them War days. I wish they was back agin,—I wish they was back agin. I ain't forgot Shiloh yit, though, and I ain't a-goin' ter. But I'll tell ye one thing, parson," he added, his mind reverting from ten years ago to the scene just past, as he unhitched his horse and carefully examined the saddle-girth and stirrups, "ye're a mighty queer preacher, ye air, a-sittin' up an' lookin' at sinners dance an' then gittin' in a fight that don't consarn ye,—ye're a mighty queer preacher! Ye ought ter be in my gang, that's whar ye ought ter be," he exclaimed with a guffaw, as he put his foot in the stirrup; "ye've got a damned deal too much grit fur a preacher. But I ain't forgot Shiloh yit, an' I don't mean ter, nuther."

Rick walked heavily to the door and stepped out into the moonlight. "Those were good old times," he said to Mr. Kenyon, with a tone of regret in his unique drawl; "good old times, those War days. I wish they were back again—I wish they were back again. I haven't forgotten Shiloh yet, and I’m not going to. But I’ll tell you one thing, parson," he added, shifting his thoughts from ten years ago to the recent scene, as he unhitched his horse and carefully checked the saddle-girth and stirrups, "you’re a really strange preacher, sitting up and watching sinners dance and then getting into a fight that doesn’t concern you—you’re a really strange preacher! You should be in my gang, that’s where you should be," he exclaimed with a laugh, as he put his foot in the stirrup; "you’ve got way too much grit for a preacher. But I haven’t forgotten Shiloh yet, and I don’t intend to, either."

A shout of laughter from the gang, an oath or two, the quick tread of horses' hoofs pressing into a gallop, and the outlaw's troop were speeding along the narrow paths that led deep into the vistas of the moonlit summer woods.

A shout of laughter from the group, a curse or two, the hurried sound of horses' hooves picking up speed, and the outlaws were racing along the narrow trails that wound deep into the moonlit summer woods.

As the old churchman, with the boy at his side and the gun still on his shoulder, ascended the rocky, precipitous slope on the opposite side of the ravine above the foaming waters of the wild mountain stream, he said but little of admonition to his companion; with the disappearance of the flame and smoke and the dangerous ruffian his martial spirit had cooled; the last words of the outlaw, the highest praise Rick Pearson could accord to the highest qualities Rick Pearson could imagine—he had grit enough to belong to the gang—had smitten a tender conscience. He, at his age, using none of the means rightfully at his command, the gentle suasion of religion, must needs rush between armed men, wrench their weapons from their hands, threatening with such violence that an outlaw and desperado, recognizing a parallel of his own belligerent and lawless spirit, should say that he ought to belong to the gang! And the heaviest scourge of the sin-laden conscience was the perception that, so far as the unsubdued old Adam went, he ought indeed.

As the elderly churchman, with the boy next to him and the gun still slung over his shoulder, climbed the steep, rocky slope on the other side of the ravine above the swirling waters of the wild mountain stream, he said little to advise his companion; with the flame and smoke and the dangerous outlaw gone, his martial spirit had faded. The last words of the outlaw, the highest praise Rick Pearson could give for the most admirable traits Rick could think of—he had enough grit to be part of the gang—had struck a chord with his tender conscience. At his age, without using any of the tools rightfully available to him, like the gentle persuasion of religion, he had to rush in between armed men, wrestle their weapons from their hands, threatening with such force that a criminal and rogue, recognizing a similarity in their own aggressive and lawless nature, would say he should be part of the gang! And the greatest burden on his guilt-ridden conscience was the realization that, in terms of his untamed instincts, he indeed should be.

He was not so tortured, though, that he did not think of others. He paused on reaching the summit of the ascent, and looked back at the little house nestling in the ravine, the lamp-light streaming through its open doors and windows across the path among the laurel bushes, where Rick's gang had hitched their horses.

He wasn't so troubled that he stopped thinking about others. He paused when he reached the top of the climb and looked back at the small house tucked away in the ravine, the warm glow of the lamp spilling through its open doors and windows across the path among the laurel bushes, where Rick's gang had tied up their horses.

"I wonder," said the old man, "if they are quiet and peaceable again; can you hear the music and dancing?"

"I wonder," said the old man, "if they are calm and peaceful again; can you hear the music and the dancing?"

"Not now," said Kossuth. Then, after a moment, "Now, I kin," he added, as the wind brought to their ears the oft-told tale of the rabbit's gallopade in the pea-patch. "They're a-dancin' now, and all right agin."

"Not now," Kossuth said. Then, after a moment, "But now I can," he added, as the wind carried the familiar story of the rabbit's carefree sprint through the pea patch to them. "They're dancing now, all good again."

As they walked along, Mr. Kenyon's racked conscience might have been in a slight degree comforted had he known that he was in some sort a revelation to the impressible lad at his side, that Kossuth had begun dimly to comprehend that a Christian may be a man of spirit also, and that bravado does not constitute bravery. Now that the heat of anger was over, the young fellow was glad that the fearless interposition of the warlike peace-maker had prevented any killing, "'kase ef the old man hedn't hung on ter my gun like he done, I'd have been a murderer like he said, an' Rick would hev been dead. An' the bay filly ain't sech a killin' matter nohow; ef it war the roan three-year-old now, 'twould be different."

As they walked, Mr. Kenyon's troubled conscience might have felt a bit better if he knew that he was somewhat of a revelation to the impressionable young man next to him. Kossuth had started to understand that a Christian can also be a person of strength, and that bravado doesn't equal true bravery. Now that the anger had faded, the young man was glad that the bold intervention of the warrior-like peacemaker had stopped any violence. "Because if the old man hadn't clung to my gun like he did, I would have become a murderer like he said, and Rick would be dead. And that bay filly isn't a life-or-death situation anyway; if it were the roan three-year-old, that would be a different story."


OVER ON THE T'OTHER MOUNTING.

Stretching out laterally from a long oblique line of the Southern Alleghanies are two parallel ranges, following the same course through several leagues, and separated by a narrow strip of valley hardly half a mile in width. As they fare along arm in arm, so to speak, sundry differences between the close companions are distinctly apparent. One is much the higher, and leads the way; it strikes out all the bold curves and angles of the course, meekly attended by the lesser ridge; its shadowy coves and sharp ravines are repeated in miniature as its comrade falls into the line of march; it seems to have its companion in charge, and to conduct it away from the majestic procession of mountains that traverses the State.

Stretching out sideways from a long diagonal line of the Southern Alleghanies are two parallel mountain ranges, following the same path for several miles, and separated by a narrow valley that’s barely half a mile wide. As they move along side by side, some differences between these close companions become clear. One is significantly taller and takes the lead; it shapes all the bold curves and angles of the route, while the smaller ridge closely follows behind. Its shaded coves and steep ravines appear in miniature as its companion aligns in the journey; it seems to be guiding its partner away from the majestic array of mountains that run through the state.

But, despite its more imposing appearance, all the tangible advantages are possessed by its humble neighbor. When Old Rocky-Top, as the lower range is called, is fresh and green with the tender verdure of spring, the snow still lies on the summit of the T'other Mounting, and drifts deep into treacherous rifts and chasms, and muffles the voice of the singing pines; and all the crags are hung with gigantic glittering icicles, and the woods are gloomy and bleak. When the sun shines bright on Old Rocky-Top, clouds often hover about the loftier mountain, and storms brew in that higher atmosphere; the all-pervading winter winds surge wildly among the groaning forests, and wrench the limbs from the trees, and dash huge fragments of cliffs down deep gorges, and spend their fury before they reach the sheltered lower spur. When the kindly shades of evening slip softly down on drowsy Rocky-Top, and the work is laid by in the rough little houses, and the simple home-folks draw around the hearth, day still lingers in a weird, paralytic life among the tree-tops of the T'other Mounting; and the only remnant of the world visible is that stark black line of its summit, stiff and hard against the faint green and saffron tints of the sky. Before the birds are well awake on Old Rocky-Top, and while the shadows are still thick, the T'other Mounting has been called up to a new day. Lonely dawns these: the pale gleam strikes along the October woods, bringing first into uncertain twilight the dead yellow and red of the foliage, presently heightened into royal gold and crimson by the first ray of sunshine; it rouses the timid wild-fowl; it drives home the plundering fox; it meets, perhaps, some lumbering bear or skulking mountain wolf; it flecks with light and shade the deer, all gray and antlered; it falls upon no human habitation, for the few settlers of the region have a persistent predilection for Old Rocky-Top. Somehow, the T'other Mounting is vaguely in ill repute among its neighbors,—it has a bad name.

But, even with its more impressive look, all the real benefits belong to its modest neighbor. When Old Rocky-Top, as the lower range is known, is fresh and green with the tender greenery of spring, the snow still rests on the peak of the T'other Mounting, drifting deep into treacherous gaps and chasms, muffling the sound of the singing pines; and all the cliffs are adorned with huge, sparkling icicles, making the woods dark and desolate. When the sun shines brightly on Old Rocky-Top, clouds frequently linger around the taller mountain, and storms form in that higher atmosphere; the relentless winter winds whip wildly through the groaning forests, ripping branches from the trees and crashing massive chunks of rock down into deep gorges, exhausting their rage before reaching the protected lower slope. When the comforting shadows of evening gently descend on sleepy Rocky-Top, and the work is set aside in the rough little houses, and the simple locals gather around the fire, the day still holds on in a strange, lifeless way among the treetops of the T'other Mounting; and the only trace of the world visible is that stark black line of its peak, rigid and hard against the faint green and orange shades of the sky. Before the birds are fully awake on Old Rocky-Top, and while the shadows are still thick, the T'other Mounting has already been greeted by a new day. These dawns feel lonely: the pale light spreads through the October woods, first bringing uncertain twilight to the dead yellow and red of the leaves, which soon transforms into royal gold and crimson with the first ray of sunshine; it stirs the shy wildfowl; it drives the sneaky fox home; it might encounter a lumbering bear or sneaky mountain wolf; it dapples the deer, all gray and antlered, with patches of light and shade; it falls upon no human dwelling, for the few settlers in the area have a strong preference for Old Rocky-Top. Somehow, the T'other Mounting has a vague bad reputation among its neighbors—it has a bad name.

"It's the onluckiest place ennywhar nigh about," said Nathan White, as he sat one afternoon upon the porch of his log-cabin, on the summit of Old Rocky-Top, and gazed up at the heights of the T'other Mounting across the narrow valley. "I hev hearn tell all my days ez how, ef ye go up thar on the T'other Mounting, suthin' will happen ter ye afore ye kin git away. An' I knows myself ez how—'twar ten year ago an' better—I went up thar, one Jan'ry day, a-lookin' fur my cow, ez hed strayed off through not hevin' enny calf ter our house; an' I fund the cow, but jes' tuk an' slipped on a icy rock, an' bruk my ankle-bone. 'Twar sech a job a-gittin' off'n that thar T'other Mounting an' back over hyar, it hev l'arned me ter stay away from thar."

"It's the unluckiest place anywhere around," said Nathan White, as he sat one afternoon on the porch of his log cabin on the summit of Old Rocky-Top, looking up at the heights of the Other Mountain across the narrow valley. "I've heard all my life that if you go up there on the Other Mountain, something will happen to you before you can get away. And I know from experience—over ten years ago—I went up there one January day looking for my cow, who had wandered off because we didn't have any calf at our place; and I found the cow, but I just happened to slip on an icy rock and broke my ankle. It was such a struggle getting off that Other Mountain and back over here, it taught me to stay away from there."

"Thar war a man," piped out a shrill, quavering voice from within the door,—the voice of Nathan White's father, the oldest inhabitant of Rocky-Top,—"thar war a man hyar, nigh on ter fifty year ago,—he war mightily gin ter thievin' horses; an' one time, while he war a-runnin' away with Pete Dilks's dapple-gray mare,—they called her Luce, five year old she war,—Pete, he war a-ridin' a-hint him on his old sorrel mare,—her name 'twar Jane, an'—the Jeemes boys, they war a-ridin' arter the horse-thief too. Thar, now! I clar forgits what horses them Jeemes boys war a-ridin' of." He paused for an instant in anxious reflection. "Waal, sir! it do beat all that I can't remember them Jeemes boys' horses! Anyways, they got ter that thar tricky ford through Wild-Duck River, thar on the side o' the T'other Mounting, an' the horse-thief war ahead, an' he hed ter take it fust. An' that thar river,—it rises yander in them pines, nigh about," pointing with a shaking fore-finger,—"an' that thar river jes' spun him out 'n the saddle like a top, an' he warn't seen no more till he hed floated nigh ter Colbury, ez dead ez a door-nail, nor Pete's dapple-gray mare nuther; she bruk her knees agin them high stone banks. But he war a good swimmer, an' he war drowned. He war witched with the place, ez sure ez ye air born."

"There was a man," a high-pitched, shaky voice came from inside the door—the voice of Nathan White's father, the oldest resident of Rocky-Top—"there was a man here, almost fifty years ago—he was really into stealing horses; and one time, while he was running away with Pete Dilks's dapple-gray mare—they called her Luce, she was five years old—Pete was riding after him on his old sorrel mare—her name was Jane—and the Jeemes boys were chasing the horse thief too. There, now! I can’t remember what horses those Jeemes boys were riding." He paused for a moment in thoughtful reflection. "Well, sir! it beats all that I can’t recall those Jeemes boys' horses! Anyway, they got to that tricky crossing through Wild-Duck River, over on the other side of the mountain, and the horse thief was ahead, so he had to go first. And that river—it rises over there in those pines, right about," he pointed with a trembling finger, "and that river just threw him out of the saddle like a top, and he wasn’t seen again until he washed up near Colbury, as dead as a door-nail, nor was Pete's dapple-gray mare; she broke her knees against those high stone banks. But he was a good swimmer, and he drowned. He was cursed by that place, as sure as you are born."

A long silence ensued. Then Nathan White raised his pondering eyes with a look of slow curiosity. "What did Tony Britt say he war a-doin' of, when ye kem on him suddint in the woods on the T'other Mounting?" he asked, addressing his son, a stalwart youth, who was sitting upon the step, his hat on the back of his head, and his hands in the pockets of his jeans trousers.

A long silence followed. Then Nathan White lifted his thoughtful gaze with a look of slow curiosity. "What did Tony Britt say he was doing when you came across him suddenly in the woods on the Other Mountain?" he asked, directing his question at his son, a strong young man, who was sitting on the step, his hat tilted back on his head, and his hands in the pockets of his jeans.

"He said he war a-huntin', but he hedn't hed no sort'n luck. It 'pears ter me ez all the game thar is witched somehow, an' ye can't git no good shot at nuthin'. Tony tole me to-day that he got up three deer, an' hed toler'ble aim; an' he missed two, an' the t'other jes' trotted off with a rifle-ball in his flank, ez onconsarned ez ef he hed hit him with an acorn."

"He said he was out hunting, but he hadn't had any luck. It seems to me that all the game is somehow enchanted, and you can't get a decent shot at anything. Tony told me today that he came across three deer, and he had pretty good aim; he missed two, and the other one just trotted away with a bullet in its side, as unconcerned as if he had been hit with an acorn."

"I hev always hearn ez everything that belongs on that thar T'other Mounting air witched, an' ef ye brings away so much ez a leaf, or a stone, or a stick, ye fotches a curse with it," chimed in the old man, "'kase thar hev been sech a many folks killed on the T'other Mounting."

"I've always heard that everything from that Other Mountain is cursed, and if you take even a leaf, a stone, or a stick, you'll bring back a curse with you," the old man chimed in, "because so many people have been killed on the Other Mountain."

"I tole Tony Britt that thar word," said the young fellow, "an' 'lowed ter him ez how he hed tuk a mighty bad spot ter go a-huntin'."

"I told Tony Britt that word," said the young guy, "and let him know that he had picked a really bad place to go hunting."

"What did he say?" demanded Nathan White.

"What did he say?" asked Nathan White.

"He say he never knowed ez thar war murders commit on T'other Mounting, an' ef that war he 'spects 'twar nuthin' but Injuns, long time ago. But he 'lowed the place war powerful onlucky, an' he believed the mounting war witched."

"He said he never knew there were murders committed on the other mountain, and if there were, he suspects it was nothing but Native Americans a long time ago. But he thought the place was really unlucky, and he believed the mountain was cursed."

"Ef Tony Britt's arter enny harm," said the octogenarian, "he'll never come off 'n that thar T'other Mounting. It's a mighty place fur bad folks ter make thar eend. Thar's that thar horse thief I war a-tellin' 'bout, an' that dapple-gray mare,—her name 'twar Luce. An' folks ez is a-runnin' from the sheriff jes' takes ter the T'other Mounting ez nateral ez ef it war home; an' ef they don't git cotched, they is never hearn on no more." He paused impressively. "The rocks falls on 'em, an' kills 'em; an' I'll tell ye jes' how I knows," he resumed, oracularly. "'Twar sixty year ago, nigh about, an' me an' them Jeemes boys war a-burnin' of lime tergether over on the T'other Mounting. We hed a lime-kiln over thar, jes' under Piney Notch, an' never hed no luck, but jes' stuck ter it like fools, till Hiram Jeemes got one of his eyes put out. So we quit burnin' of lime on the T'other Mounting, 'count of the place bein' witched, an' kem over hyar ter Old Rocky-Top, an' got along toler'ble well, cornsiderin'. But one day, whilst we war a-workin on the T'other Mounting, what d' ye think I fund in the rock? The print of a bare foot in the solid stone, ez plain an' ez nateral ez ef the track hed been lef' in the clay yestiddy. Waal, I knowed it war the track o' Jeremiah Stubbs, what shot his step-brother, an' gin the sheriff the slip, an' war las' seen on the T'other Mounting, 'kase his old shoe jes' fit the track, fur we tried it. An' a good while arterward I fund on that same T'other Mounting—in the solid stone, mind ye—a fish, what he had done br'iled fur supper, jes' turned ter a stone."

"Ef Tony Britt's been harmed," said the old man, "he'll never get off that T'other Mountain. It's a terrible place for bad people to meet their end. There’s that horse thief I was telling you about, and that dapple-gray mare—her name was Luce. Folks who are running from the sheriff just head to the T'other Mountain as naturally as if it were home; and if they don’t get caught, they are never heard from again." He paused dramatically. "The rocks fall on them and kill them; and I’ll tell you exactly how I know," he continued confidently. "It was about sixty years ago, and me and the Jeemes boys were burning lime together over on the T'other Mountain. We had a lime kiln over there, just under Piney Notch, and we never had any luck, but just stuck to it like fools until Hiram Jeemes lost one of his eyes. So we stopped burning lime on the T'other Mountain because the place was haunted, and came over here to Old Rocky-Top, and managed pretty well, considering. But one day, while we were working on the T'other Mountain, guess what I found in the rock? The print of a bare foot in the solid stone, as clear and natural as if the track had been left in clay yesterday. Well, I knew it was the track of Jeremiah Stubbs, who shot his step-brother, gave the sheriff the slip, and was last seen on the T'other Mountain because his old shoe fit the track perfectly—we checked it. And not long after that, I found on that same T'other Mountain—in the solid stone, mind you—a fish that he had grilled for supper, just turned to stone."

"So thar's the Bible made true," said an elderly woman, who had come to the door to hear this reminiscence, and stood mechanically stirring a hoe-cake batter in a shallow wooden bowl. "Ax fur a fish, an' ye 'll git a stone."

"So there’s the Bible made true," said an elderly woman, who had come to the door to hear this story, and stood absentmindedly stirring a hoe-cake batter in a shallow wooden bowl. "Ask for a fish, and you’ll get a stone."

The secret history of the hills among which they lived was indeed as a sealed book to these simple mountaineers.

The hidden history of the hills where they lived was truly a mystery to these simple mountain dwellers.

"The las' time I war ter Colbury," said Nathan White, "I hearn the sheriff a-talkin' 'bout how them evil-doers an' sech runs fur the T'other Mounting fust thing; though he 'lowed ez it war powerful foxy in 'em ter try ter hide thar, kase he said, ef they wunst reaches it, he mought ez well look fur a needle in a hay-stack. He 'lowed ef he hed a posse a thousand men strong he couldn't git 'em out."

"The last time I was in Colbury," said Nathan White, "I heard the sheriff talking about how those troublemakers run to the Other Mountain first thing; though he said it was pretty clever of them to try to hide there, because he said if they ever make it there, he might as well look for a needle in a haystack. He said if he had a posse a thousand men strong, he still couldn't get them out."

"He can't find 'em, 'kase the rocks falls on 'em, or swallers 'em in," said the old man. "Ef Tony Britt is up ter mischief he'll never come back no more. He'll git into worser trouble than ever he see afore."

"He can't find them because the rocks fall on them or swallow them up," said the old man. "If Tony Britt is up to no good, he'll never come back. He'll get into worse trouble than he's ever seen before."

"He hev done seen a powerful lot of trouble, fust one way an' another, 'thout foolin' round the T'other Mounting," said Nathan White. "They tells me ez he got hisself indicted, I believes they calls it, or suthin', down yander ter the court at Colbury,—that war year afore las',—an' he hed ter pay twenty dollars fine; 'kase when he war overseer of the road he jes' war constant in lettin' his friends, an' folks ginerally, off 'thout hevin' 'em fined, when they didn't come an' work on the road,—though that air the way ez the overseers hev always done, without nobody a-tellin' on 'em an' sech. But them ez warn't Tony Britt's friends seen a mighty differ. He war dead sure ter fine Caleb Hoxie seventy-five cents, 'cordin' ter the law, fur every day that he war summonsed ter work an' never come; 'kase Tony an' Caleb hed some sort 'n grudge agin one another 'count of a spavined horse what Caleb sold ter Tony, makin' him out to be a sound critter,—though Caleb swears he never knowed the horse war spavined when he sold him ter Tony, no more 'n nuthin'. Caleb war mightily worked up 'bout this hyar finin' business, an' him an' Tony hed a tussle 'bout it every time they kem tergether. But Caleb war always sure ter git the worst of it, 'kase Tony, though he air toler'ble spindling sort o' build, he air somehow or other sorter stringy an' tough, an' makes a right smart show in a reg'lar knock-down an' drag-out fight. So Caleb he war beat every time, an' fined too. An' he tried wunst ter shoot Tony Britt, but he missed his aim. An' when he war a-layin' off how ter fix Tony, fur treatin' him that way, he war a-stoppin', one day, at Jacob Green's blacksmith's shop, yander, a mile down the valley, an' he war a-talkin' 'bout it ter a passel o' folks thar. An' Lawyer Rood from Colbury war thar, an' Jacob war a-shoein' of his mare; an' he heard the tale, an' axed Caleb whyn't he report Tony ter the court, an' git him fined fur neglect of his duty, bein' overseer of the road. An' Caleb never knowed before that it war the law that everybody what war summonsed an' didn't come must be fined, or the overseer must be fined hisself; but he knowed that Tony hed been a-lettin' of his friends off, an' folks ginerally, an' he jes' 'greed fur Lawyer Rood ter stir up trouble fur Tony. An' he done it. An' the court fined Tony twenty dollars fur them ways o' his'n. An' it kept him so busy a-scufflin' ter raise the twenty dollars that he never hed a chance ter give Caleb Hoxie more'n one or two beatin's the whole time he war a-scrapin' up the money."

"He has seen a lot of trouble, one way or another, without messing around the T'other Mountain," said Nathan White. "They say he got himself indicted, I think that's what they call it, or something like that, down there at the court in Colbury—that was a year before last—and he had to pay a twenty dollar fine; because when he was the road overseer, he was always letting his friends and folks in general off without making them pay fines when they didn’t show up to work on the road—even though that’s the way overseers have always done it, without anyone telling on them or anything. But those who weren’t Tony Britt’s friends saw things very differently. He was dead set on fining Caleb Hoxie seventy-five cents, according to the law, for every day he was summoned to work and didn’t show up; because Tony and Caleb had some kind of grudge against each other due to a spavined horse Caleb sold to Tony, claiming it was sound—though Caleb swears he never knew the horse was spavined when he sold it to Tony, no more than anything. Caleb was really worked up about this fine situation, and he and Tony had a fight about it every time they came together. But Caleb always ended up on the losing side because Tony, while he’s kind of skinny, is somehow tough and puts up a good fight in a regular brawl. So Caleb got beaten every time and fined too. He once tried to shoot Tony Britt, but he missed. And while he was planning how to get back at Tony for treating him like that, he was stopping one day at Jacob Green’s blacksmith shop, a mile down the valley, and he was talking about it to a bunch of folks there. Lawyer Rood from Colbury was there, and Jacob was shoeing his mare; and he heard the story and asked Caleb why he didn’t report Tony to the court and get him fined for neglecting his duties as road overseer. Caleb didn’t know before that it was the law that anyone who was summoned and didn’t show up must be fined, or else the overseer had to be fined himself; but he knew that Tony had been letting his friends and people in general off, and he just agreed with Lawyer Rood to stir up trouble for Tony. And he did. The court fined Tony twenty dollars for the way he had been handling things. And it kept him so busy scrambling to raise the twenty dollars that he hardly had a chance to give Caleb Hoxie more than one or two beatings the whole time he was hustling to gather the money."

This story was by no means unknown to the little circle, nor did its narrator labor under the delusion that he was telling a new thing. It was merely a verbal act of recollection, and an attentive silence reigned as he related the familiar facts. To people who live in lonely regions this habit of retrospection (especially noticeable in them) and an enduring interest in the past may be something of a compensation for the scanty happenings of the present. When the recital was concluded, the hush for a time was unbroken, save by the rush of the winds, bringing upon their breath the fragrant woodland odors of balsams and pungent herbs, and a fresh and exhilarating suggestion of sweeping over a volume of falling water. They stirred the fringed shadow of a great pine that stood, like a sentinel, before Nathan White's door and threw its colorless simulacrum, a boastful lie twice its size, far down the sunset road. Now and then the faint clangor of a cow-bell came from out the tangled woods about the little hut, and the low of homeward-bound cattle sounded upon the air, mellowed and softened by the distance. The haze that rested above the long, narrow valley was hardly visible, save in the illusive beauty with which it invested the scene,—the tender azure of the far-away ranges; the exquisite tones of the gray and purple shadows that hovered about the darkening coves and along the deep lines marking the gorges; the burnished brilliance of the sunlight, which, despite its splendor, seemed lonely enough, lying motionless upon the lonely landscape and on the still figures clustered about the porch. Their eyes were turned toward the opposite steeps, gorgeous with scarlet oak and sumac, all in autumnal array, and their thoughts were busy with the hunter on the T'other Mounting and vague speculations concerning his evil intent.

This story was by no means new to the small group, nor did the storyteller think he was sharing something original. It was simply an act of reminiscing, and a focused silence filled the air as he recounted the well-known details. For people living in isolated areas, this habit of reflection—especially prominent in them—and a lasting interest in the past might serve as a sort of compensation for the limited events of the present. When he finished telling the tale, the quiet remained undisturbed for a while, except for the sound of the wind rushing by, carrying with it the sweet scents of pine and fragrant herbs, along with a fresh, invigorating hint of water cascading down. The winds stirred the fringed shadow of a tall pine tree standing like a guard in front of Nathan White’s door, casting its colorless shadow—a bold deception twice its actual size—far down the road at sunset. Occasionally, the soft clang of a cowbell echoed from the dense woods surrounding the little cabin, and the distant lowing of cattle heading home filled the air, softened and mellowed by the distance. The haze hanging above the long, narrow valley was hardly noticeable, except for the dreamy beauty it lent to the scene—the gentle blue of the distant hills; the delicate shades of gray and purple shadows lingering in the darkening coves and along the deep lines of the gorges; the shiny brightness of the sunlight, which, despite its brilliance, seemed lonely as it rested motionless upon the empty landscape and the still figures gathered on the porch. Their eyes were fixed on the opposite slopes, vibrant with red oak and sumac, all dressed in autumn colors, and their minds were occupied with thoughts of the hunter on the other mountain and their vague worries about his intentions.

"It 'pears ter me powerful strange ez Tony goes a-foolin' round that thar T'other Mounting, cornsiderin' what happened yander in its shadow," said the woman, coming again to the door, and leaning idly against the frame; the bread was baking over the coals. "That thar wife o' his'n, afore she died, war always frettin' 'kase way down thar on the backbone, whar her house war, the shadow o' the T'other Mounting laid on it fur an hour an' better every day of the worl'. She 'lowed ez it always put her in mind o' the shadow o' death. An' I thought 'bout that thar sayin' o' hern the day when I see her a-lyin' stiff an' cold on the bed, an' the shadow of the T'other Mounting drapping in at the open door, an' a-creepin' an' a-creepin' over her face. An' I war plumb glad when they got that woman under ground, whar, ef the sunshine can't git ter her, neither kin the shadow. Ef ever thar war a murdered woman, she war one. Arter all that hed come an' gone with Caleb Hoxie, fur Tony Britt ter go arter him, 'kase he war a yerb-doctor, ter git him ter physic his wife, who war nigh about dead with the lung fever, an' gin up by old Dr. Marsh!—it looks ter me like he war plumb crazy,—though him an' Caleb hed sorter made friends 'bout the spavined horse an' sech afore then. Jes' ez soon ez she drunk the stuff that Caleb fixed fur her she laid her head back an' shet her eyes, an' never opened 'em no more in this worl'. She war a murdered woman, an' Caleb Hoxie done it through the yerbs he fixed fur her."

"It seems really strange to me that Tony is messing around over at the Other Mountain, considering what happened there in its shadow," said the woman, stepping back to the door and leaning casually against the frame; the bread was baking over the coals. "His wife, before she died, was always worrying because down there on the backbone, where her house was, the shadow of the Other Mountain covered it for an hour or more every day. She said it always reminded her of the shadow of death. And I thought about her saying that the day I saw her lying stiff and cold on the bed, with the shadow of the Other Mountain creeping in through the open door and creeping over her face. And I was really glad when they got that woman buried, where, if the sunshine can't reach her, neither can the shadow. If there was ever a murdered woman, she was one. After all that had happened with Caleb Hoxie, for Tony Britt to go after him because he was a herbalist, to get him to treat his wife, who was nearly dead from pneumonia and given up by old Dr. Marsh!—it seems to me like he was totally out of his mind,—even though he and Caleb had sort of made peace about the lame horse and such beforehand. As soon as she drank the stuff that Caleb made for her, she laid her head back and closed her eyes, and never opened them again in this world. She was a murdered woman, and Caleb Hoxie did it with the herbs he prepared for her."

A subtile amethystine mist had gradually overlaid the slopes of the T'other Mounting, mellowing the brilliant tints of the variegated foliage to a delicious hazy sheen of mosaics; but about the base the air seemed dun-colored, though transparent; seen through it, even the red of the crowded trees was but a sombre sort of magnificence, and the great masses of gray rocks, jutting out among them here and there, wore a darkly frowning aspect. Along the summit there was a blaze of scarlet and gold in the full glory of the sunshine; the topmost cliffs caught its rays, and gave them back in unexpected gleams of green or grayish-yellow, as of mosses, or vines, or huckleberry bushes, nourished in the heart of the deep fissures.

A subtle amethyst mist had gradually settled over the slopes of T'other Mountain, softening the vibrant colors of the diverse foliage into a delightful hazy sheen of mosaics; however, around the base, the air appeared dull-colored, yet clear; seen through it, even the red of the dense trees was a muted kind of splendor, and the large gray rocks, sticking out among them here and there, had a grim expression. Along the summit, there was a bright display of scarlet and gold basking in the full glory of the sunlight; the highest cliffs caught its rays and reflected them in surprising flashes of green or grayish-yellow, resembling mosses, vines, or huckleberry bushes thriving in the depths of the deep crevices.

"Waal," said Nathan White, "I never did believe ez Caleb gin her ennythink ter hurt,—though I knows thar is them ez does. Caleb is the bes' yerb-doctor I ever see. The rheumatiz would nigh on ter hev killed me, ef it warn't fur him, that spell I hed las' winter. An' Dr. Marsh, what they hed up afore the gran' jury, swore that the yerbs what Caleb gin her war nuthin' ter hurt; he said, though, they couldn't holp nor hender. An' but fur Dr. Marsh they would hev jailed Caleb ter stand his trial, like Tony wanted 'em ter do. But Dr. Marsh said she died with the consumption, jes' the same, an' Caleb's yerbs war wholesome, though they warn't no 'count at all."

"Waal," said Nathan White, "I never believed Caleb gave her anything to hurt her—though I know some people think that way. Caleb is the best herbalist I've ever seen. The rheumatism almost killed me last winter if it weren't for him. And Dr. Marsh, who they had up before the grand jury, swore that the herbs Caleb gave her weren't harmful; he said, though, they couldn't really help or hurt. If it weren't for Dr. Marsh, they would have jailed Caleb to stand trial, like Tony wanted them to do. But Dr. Marsh said she died of consumption anyway, and Caleb's herbs were good, even if they didn’t do much."

"I knows I ain't a-goin' never ter tech nuthin' he fixes fur me no more," said his wife, "an' I'll be bound nobody else in these hyar mountings will, nuther."

"I know I'm not going to teach anything he fixes for me anymore," said his wife, "and I bet nobody else in these mountains will either."

"Waal," drawled her son, "I knows fur true ez he air tendin' now on old Gideon Croft, what lives over yander in the valley on the t'other side of the T'other Mounting, an' is down with the fever. He went over thar yestiddy evening, late; I met him when he war goin', an' he tole me."

"Waal," her son drawled, "I know for sure he's taking care of old Gideon Croft, who lives over there in the valley on the other side of the Other Mountain, and he's sick with a fever. He went over there yesterday evening, late; I ran into him when he was heading out, and he told me."

"He hed better look out how he comes across Tony Britt," said Nathan White; "fur I hearn, the las' time I war ter the Settlemint, how Tony hev swore ter kill him the nex' time he see him, fur a-givin' of pizenous yerbs ter his wife. Tony air mightily outdone 'kase the gran' jury let him off. Caleb hed better be sorter keerful how he goes a-foolin' round these hyar dark woods."

"He better watch how he approaches Tony Britt," said Nathan White. "I heard the last time I was at the Settlement, Tony swore he would kill him the next time he sees him for giving his wife poisonous herbs. Tony is really upset because the grand jury let him off. Caleb should be careful about how he messes around in these dark woods."

The sun had sunk, and the night, long held in abeyance, was coming fast. The glooms gathered in the valley; a soft gray shadow hung over the landscape, making familiar things strange. The T'other Mounting was all a dusky, sad purple under the faintly pulsating stars, save that high along the horizontal line of its summit gleamed the strange red radiance of the dead and gone sunset. The outline of the foliage was clearly drawn against the pure lapis lazuli tint of the sky behind it; here and there the uncanny light streamed through the bare limbs of an early leafless tree, which looked in the distance like some bony hand beckoning, or warning, or raised in horror.

The sun had set, and night, long delayed, was coming quickly. Shadows gathered in the valley; a soft gray shade covered the landscape, making familiar sights feel unfamiliar. The other mountain was a dim, melancholy purple under the faintly twinkling stars, except for a strange red glow from the sunset that was gone but still lingered along the peak. The outline of the trees was sharply defined against the bright lapis lazuli blue of the sky behind them; here and there, the eerie light streamed through the bare branches of an early leafless tree, which looked from a distance like a bony hand beckoning, warning, or raised in fright.

"Anythink mought happen thar!" said the woman, as she stood on night-wrapped Rocky-Top and gazed up at the alien light, so red in the midst of the dark landscape. When she turned back to the door of the little hut, the meagre comforts within seemed almost luxury, in their cordial contrast to the desolate, dreary mountain yonder and the thought of the forlorn, wandering hunter. A genial glow from the hearth diffused itself over the puncheon floor; the savory odor of broiling venison filled the room as a tall, slim girl knelt before the fire and placed the meat upon the gridiron, her pale cheeks flushing with the heat; there was a happy suggestion of peace and unity when the four generations trooped in to their supper, grandfather on his grandson's arm, and a sedate two-year-old bringing up the rear. Nathan White's wife paused behind the others to bar the door, and once more, as she looked up at the T'other Mounting, the thought of the lonely wanderer smote her heart. The red sunset light had died out at last, but a golden aureola heralded the moon-rise, and a gleaming thread edged the masses of foliage; there was no faint suggestion now of mist in the valley, and myriads of stars filled a cloudless sky. "He hev done gone home by this time," she said to her daughter-in-law, as she closed the door, "an' ef he ain't, he'll hev a moon ter light him."

"Anything could happen out there!" said the woman, as she stood on night-blanketed Rocky-Top and looked up at the strange light, so red against the dark landscape. When she turned back to the little hut's door, the meager comforts inside felt almost luxurious in their warm contrast to the bleak, dreary mountains beyond and the thought of the lost, wandering hunter. A warm glow from the hearth spread over the rough floor; the delicious smell of broiling venison filled the room as a tall, slender girl knelt before the fire and placed the meat on the grill, her pale cheeks flushing from the heat. There was a cheerful sense of peace and togetherness when the four generations came in for dinner, grandfather on his grandson's arm, and a serious two-year-old bringing up the rear. Nathan White's wife paused behind the others to shut the door, and once again, as she looked up at the other mountain, the thought of the lonely wanderer tugged at her heart. The red sunset light had finally faded, but a golden glow announced the rise of the moon, and a shimmering thread outlined the trees; there was no hint of mist in the valley now, and countless stars filled the clear sky. "He has probably made it home by now," she said to her daughter-in-law as she closed the door, "and if not, he’ll have the moon to guide him."

"Air ye a-studyin' 'bout Tony Britt yit?" asked Nathan White. "He hev done gone home a good hour by sun, I'll be bound. Jes' ketch Tony Britt a-huntin' till sundown, will ye! He air a mighty pore hand ter work. 'Stonishes me ter hear he air even a-huntin' on the T'other Mounting."

"Are you still thinking about Tony Britt?" Nathan White asked. "He’s been home for a good hour now, I’m sure. Can you believe Tony Britt would go hunting until sundown? He’s really not good at working. It surprises me to hear he’s even hunting on the Other Mountain."

"I don't believe he's up ter enny harm," said the woman; "he hev jes' tuk ter the woods with grief."

"I don't think he's up to any harm," said the woman; "he's just gone into the woods with grief."

"'Pears ter me," said the daughter-in-law, rising from her kneeling posture before the fire, and glancing reproachfully at her husband,—"'pears ter me ez ye mought hev brought him hyar ter eat his supper along of we-uns, stiddier a-leavin' him a-grievin' over his dead wife in them witched woods on the T'other Mounting."

"'Seems to me," said the daughter-in-law, getting up from her kneeling position in front of the fire and looking reproachfully at her husband, "'seems to me you could have brought him here to have his dinner with us instead of leaving him grieving for his dead wife in those haunted woods on the other mountain."

The young fellow looked a trifle abashed at this suggestion. "I never wunst thought of it," he said. "Tony never stopped ter talk more'n a minit, nohow."

The young guy looked a bit embarrassed by this suggestion. "I never thought of that," he said. "Tony never talked for more than a minute, anyway."

The evening wore away; the octogenarian and the sedate two-year-old fell asleep in their chairs shortly after supper; Nathan White and his son smoked their cob-pipes, and talked fitfully of the few incidents of the day; the women sat in the firelight with their knitting, silent and absorbed, except that now and then the elder, breaking from her reverie, declared, "I can't git Tony Britt out'n my head nohow in the worl'."

The evening went on; the eighty-year-old and the calm two-year-old dozed off in their chairs shortly after dinner; Nathan White and his son smoked their corn cob pipes, chatting intermittently about the day's few events; the women sat in the glow of the fire with their knitting, quiet and focused, except that now and then the elder, coming out of her daydream, said, "I can't get Tony Britt out of my head at all."

The moon had come grandly up over the T'other Mounting, casting long silver lights and deep black shadows through all the tangled recesses and yawning chasms of the woods and rocks. In the vast wilderness the bright rays met only one human creature, the belated hunter making his way homeward through the dense forest with an experienced woodman's craft. For no evil intent had brought Tony Britt to the T'other Mounting; he had spent the day in hunting, urged by that strong necessity without which the mountaineer seldom makes any exertion. Dr. Marsh's unavailing skill had cost him dear; his only cow was sold to make up the twenty dollars fine which his revenge on Caleb Hoxie had entailed upon him; without even so much as a spavined horse tillage was impossible, and the bounteous harvest left him empty-handed, for he had no crops to gather. The hardships of extreme poverty had reinforced the sorrows that came upon him in battalions, and had driven him far through long aisles of the woods, where the night fell upon him unaware. The foliage was all embossed with exquisite silver designs that seemed to stand out some little distance from the dark masses of leaves; now and then there came to his eyes that emerald gleam never seen upon verdure in the daytime,—only shown by some artificial light, or the moon's sweet uncertainty. The wind was strong and fresh, but not cold; here and there was a glimmer of dew. Once, and once only, he thought of the wild traditions which peopled the T'other Mounting with evil spirits. He paused with a sudden chill; he glanced nervously over his shoulder down the illimitable avenues of the lonely woods. The grape-vines, hanging in festoons from tree to tree, were slowly swinging back and forth, stirred by the wind. There was a dizzy dance of shadows whirling on every open space where the light lay on the ground. The roar and fret of Wild-Duck River, hidden there somewhere in the pines, came on the breeze like a strange, weird, fitful voice, crying out amid the haunted solitudes of the T'other Mounting. He turned abruptly, with his gun on his shoulder, and pursued his way through the trackless desert in the direction of his home. He had been absorbed in his quest and his gloomy thoughts, and did not realize the distance he had traversed until it lay before him to be retraced; but his superstitious terror urged him to renewed exertions. "Ef ever I gits off'n this hyar witched mounting," he said to himself, as he tore away the vines and brambles that beset his course, "I'll never come back agin while I lives." He grew calmer when he paused on a huge projecting crag, and looked across the narrow valley at the great black mass opposite, which he knew was Old Rocky-Top; its very presence gave him a sense of companionship and blunted his fear, and he sat down to rest for a few minutes, gazing at the outline of the range he knew so well, so unfamiliar from a new stand-point. How low it seemed from the heights of the T'other Mounting! Could that faint gleam be the light in Nathan White's house? Tony Britt glanced further down the indistinct slope, where he knew his own desolate, deserted hut was crouched. "Jes' whar the shadow o' the T'other Mounting can reach it," he thought, with a new infusion of bitterness. He averted his eyes; he would look no longer; he threw himself at full length among the ragged clumps of grass and fragments of rock, and turned his face to the stars. It all came back to him then. Sometimes, in his sordid cares and struggles for his scanty existence, his past troubles were dwarfed by the present. But here on the lonely cliff, with the infinite spaces above him and the boundless forest below, he felt anew his isolation. No light on earth save the far gleam from another man's home, and in heaven only the drowning face of the moon, drifting slowly through the blue floods of the skies. He was only twenty-five; he had youth and health and strength, but he felt that he had lived his life; it seemed long, marked as it was by cares and privation and persistent failure. Little as he knew of life, he knew how hard his had been, even meted by those of the poverty-stricken wretches among whom, his lot was cast. "An' sech luck!" he said, as his sad eyes followed the drifting dead face of the moon. "Along o' that thar step-mother o' mine till I war growed; an' then when I war married, an' we hed got the house put up, an' war beginnin' ter git along like other folks kin, an' Caroline's mother gin her that thar calf what growed ter a cow, an' through pinchin' an' savin' we made out ter buy that thar horse from Caleb Hoxie, jes' ez we war a-startin' ter work a crap he lays down an' dies; an' that cussed twenty dollars ez I hed ter pay ter the court; an' Car'line jes' a-gittin' sick, an' a-wastin' an' a-wastin' away, till I, like a fool, brung Caleb thar, an' he pizens her with his yerbs—God A'mighty! ef I could jes' lay my hands wunst on that scoundrel I wouldn't leave a mite of him, ef he war pertected by a hundred lyin', thievin' gran' juries! But he can't stay a-hidin' forevermo'. He's got ter 'count ter me, ef he ain't ter the law; an' he'll see a mighty differ a-twixt us. I swear he'll never draw another breath!"

The moon rose majestically over the T'other Mountain, casting long silver lights and deep black shadows through the tangled depths and vast chasms of the woods and rocks. In the expansive wilderness, the bright rays illuminated only one person, the late hunter making his way home through the thick forest with the skills of an experienced woodsman. Tony Britt hadn’t come to the T'other Mountain with any bad intentions; he had spent the day hunting, driven by a strong necessity that rarely pushed mountain dwellers to act otherwise. Dr. Marsh’s ineffective treatment had cost him dearly; he sold his only cow to cover the twenty-dollar fine that resulted from his revenge on Caleb Hoxie. Without even a worn-out horse, farming was impossible, and the abundant harvest left him empty-handed since he had no crops to gather. The hardships of extreme poverty had compounded the sorrows that hit him like waves, pushing him deep into the long paths of the woods, where night fell on him unexpectedly. The leaves sparkled with beautiful silver patterns, standing out against the dark masses of foliage; occasionally, he caught a glimpse of that emerald shine not found on green during the day—only visible under artificial light or the moon's gentle glow. The wind was strong and refreshing, but not cold; here and there, he could see the shimmer of dew. Once, and only once, he thought about the wild stories that filled the T'other Mountain with evil spirits. He paused, feeling a sudden chill; nervously, he glanced over his shoulder down the endless paths of the lonely woods. The grapevines hung like decorations from tree to tree, swaying gently in the wind. Shadows danced wildly across every open area where the light touched the ground. The roar of Wild-Duck River, hidden somewhere among the pines, floated on the breeze like a strange, eerie, unpredictable voice, echoing through the haunted quiet of the T'other Mountain. He turned abruptly, gun slung over his shoulder, and continued through the unmarked wilderness toward home. He had been lost in his search and dark thoughts, not realizing how far he had come until he had to backtrack; but his superstitious fear pushed him to keep moving. "If I ever get off this cursed mountain," he told himself as he tore through the vines and brambles in his path, "I’ll never come back as long as I live." He felt calmer when he paused on a massive protruding rock and looked across the narrow valley at the large dark mass opposite, which he recognized as Old Rocky-Top; just seeing it made him feel less alone and dulled his fear. He sat down to rest for a few moments, looking at the well-known outline of the mountain range, which seemed unfamiliar from this new viewpoint. It looked so low from the heights of the T'other Mountain! Could that faint glimmer be the light in Nathan White’s house? Tony Britt peered further down the indistinct slope, where he knew his lonely, abandoned hut was hiding. "Just where the shadow of the T'other Mountain can reach it," he thought bitterly. He turned away; he wouldn’t look any longer; he laid down among the rough patches of grass and rocks, turning his face toward the stars. It all flooded back to him then. Sometimes, in his grim struggles for survival, his past troubles felt small compared to the present. But here, on the lonely cliff, with the endless sky above him and the vast forest below, he felt again his isolation. No light on earth except for the distant glow from someone else's home, and in the sky, only the waning face of the moon, drifting slowly through the blue expanse. He was only twenty-five; he had youth, health, and strength, but it felt like he had lived his entire life; it seemed long, marked by worries, hardship, and constant failure. Little as he knew about life, he understood how hard his had been, even compared to the struggles of the other poor souls around him. "And such luck!" he said, his sad eyes following the drifting pale face of the moon. "With that stepmother of mine until I grew up; and then when I got married, and we had just built our house and were starting to get by like other folks can, and Caroline's mother gave her that calf which turned into a cow, and through pinching and saving we managed to buy that horse from Caleb Hoxie, just as we were about to start working a crop, he drops dead; and that damn twenty dollars I had to pay to the court; and Caroline just getting sick, wasting away, until I, like a fool, brought Caleb there, and he poisons her with his herbs—God Almighty! If I could just get my hands on that scoundrel I wouldn't leave a trace of him, even if he was protected by a hundred lying, thieving grand juries! But he can't hide forever. He’s going to have to answer to me, even if not to the law; and he’ll see a huge difference between us. I swear he’ll never draw another breath!"

He rose with a set, stern face, and struck a huge bowlder beside him with his hard clenched hand as he spoke. He had not even an ignorant idea of an impressive dramatic pose; but if the great gaunt cliff had been the stage of a theatre his attitude and manner at that instant would have won him applause. He was all alone with his poverty and his anguished memories, as men with such burdens are apt to be.

He got up with a serious, determined expression and slammed his clenched fist against a massive boulder next to him as he spoke. He didn't have any pretentious notions about being dramatic; but if that tall, jagged cliff had been a theater stage, his stance and demeanor at that moment would have earned him applause. He was completely alone with his struggles and painful memories, just like many men burdened by such things tend to be.

The bowlder on which, in his rude fashion, he had registered his oath was harder than his hard hand, and the vehemence of the blow brought blood; but he had scarcely time to think of it. His absorbed reverie was broken by a rustling other than that of the eddying wind. He raised his head and looked about him, half expecting to see the antlers of a deer. Then there came to his ears the echo of the tread of man. His eyes mechanically followed the sound. Forty feet down the face of the crag a broad ledge jutted out, and upon it ran a narrow path, made by stray cattle, or the feet of their searching owners; it was visible from the summit for a distance of a hundred yards or so, and the white glamour of the moonbeams fell full upon it. Before a speculation had suggested itself, a man walked slowly into view along the path, and with starting eyes the hunter recognized his dearest foe. Britt's hand lay upon the bowlder; his oath was in his mind; his unconscious enemy had come within his power. Swifter than a flash the temptation was presented. He remembered the warnings of his lawyer at Colbury last week, when the grand jury had failed to find a true bill against Caleb Hoxie,—that he was an innocent man, and must go unscathed, that any revenge for fancied wrongs would be dearly rued; he remembered, too, the mountain traditions of the falling rocks burying evil-doers in the heart of the hills. Here was his opportunity. He would have a life for a life, and there would be one more legend of the very stones conspiring to punish malefactors escaped from men added to the terrible "sayin's" of the T'other Mounting. A strong belief in the supernatural influences of the place was rife within him; he knew nothing of Gideon Croft's fever and the errand that had brought the herb-doctor through the "witched mounting;" had he not been transported thither by some invisible agency, that the rocks might fall upon him and crush him?

The boulder where he had clumsily made his vow was tougher than his rough hand, and the force of the blow drew blood, but he barely had time to think about it. His deep thoughts were interrupted by a sound that wasn’t just the swirling wind. He lifted his head and looked around, half-expecting to see the antlers of a deer. Then he heard the echo of someone’s footsteps. His eyes instinctively followed the noise. Forty feet down the crag, a wide ledge stuck out, and a narrow path, made by stray cattle or their searching owners, ran along it; it was visible from the top for about a hundred yards or so, and the bright moonlight illuminated it. Before he could even think about it, a man slowly appeared on the path, and with wide eyes, the hunter recognized his biggest enemy. Britt's hand rested on the boulder; his vow was on his mind; now his unsuspecting enemy was within reach. The temptation hit him like lightning. He recalled his lawyer's warnings from last week in Colbury when the grand jury didn’t find enough evidence against Caleb Hoxie—that he was innocent and should remain unpunished, and that any revenge for imagined wrongs would come back to haunt him; he also remembered the mountain lore about falling rocks burying wrongdoers deep in the hills. This was his chance. He could take a life for a life, and yet another tale would be added to the legends of the stones punishing criminals who escaped justice from men, further fueling the terrifying stories of the "T'other Mountain." A strong belief in the supernatural power of the place filled him; he knew nothing about Gideon Croft's sickness and why the herb-doctor had come through the "cursed mountain;" had he not been brought there by some unseen force, so that the rocks could fall and crush him?

The temptation and the resolve were simultaneous. With his hand upon the bowlder, his hot heart beating fast, his distended eyes burning upon the approaching figure, he waited for the moment to come. There lay the long, low, black mountain opposite, with only the moon beams upon it, for the lights in Nathan White's house were extinguished; there was the deep, dark gulf of the valley; there, forty feet below him, was the narrow, moon-flooded path on the ledge, and the man advancing carelessly. The bowlder fell with a frightful crash, the echoes rang with a scream of terror, and the two men—one fleeing from the dreadful danger he had barely escaped, the other from the hideous deed he thought he had done—ran wildly in opposite directions through the tangled autumnal woods.

The temptation and the determination were happening at the same time. With his hand on the boulder, his heart racing, and his wide eyes fixed on the oncoming figure, he waited for the right moment. The long, low, dark mountain was stretched out in front of him, illuminated only by moonlight, as the lights in Nathan White's house were off; below him was the deep, dark valley, and forty feet down was a narrow path lit by moonlight on the ledge, where the man was approaching carelessly. The boulder crashed down with a terrifying noise, the echoes rang out with a scream of fear, and the two men—one escaping from the awful danger he had just avoided, the other fleeing from the horrifying act he thought he had committed—ran frantically in opposite directions through the tangled autumn woods.

Was every leaf of the forest endowed with a woful voice, that the echo of that shriek might never die from Tony Britt's ears? Did the storied, retributive rocks still vibrate with this new victim's frenzied cry? And what was this horror in his heart! Now,—so late,—was coming a terrible conviction of his enemy's innocence, and with it a fathomless remorse.

Was every leaf in the forest given a sorrowful voice, so that the echo of that scream would never fade from Tony Britt's ears? Did the legendary, vengeful rocks still resonate with this new victim's frantic cry? And what was this horror in his heart! Now—so late—he was struck by a terrible realization of his enemy's innocence, and along with it came an endless remorse.

All through the interminable night he fled frantically along the mountain's summit, scarcely knowing whither, and caring for nothing except to multiply the miles between him and the frightful object that he believed lay under the bowlder which he had dashed down the precipice. The moon sank beneath the horizon; the fantastic shadows were merged in the darkest hour of the night; the winds died, and there was no voice in all the woods, save the wail o' Wild-Duck River and the forever-resounding screams in the flying wretch's ears. Sometimes he answered them in a wild, hoarse, inarticulate cry; sometimes he flung his hands above his head and wrung them in his agony; never once did he pause in his flight. Panting, breathless, exhausted, he eagerly sped through the darkness; tearing his face upon the brambles; plunging now and then into gullies and unseen quagmires; sometimes falling heavily, but recovering himself in an instant, and once more struggling on; striving to elude the pursuing voices, and to distance forever his conscience and his memory.

All night long, he ran wildly along the mountain's peak, hardly knowing where he was going and caring only about putting as much distance as possible between himself and the terrifying thing he believed was under the boulder he had sent tumbling down the cliff. The moon dipped below the horizon; the strange shadows merged into the darkest part of the night; the winds stopped, and there was no sound in the woods except for the wailing of Wild-Duck River and the unending screams echoing in the fleeing man's ears. Sometimes he responded with a frantic, hoarse, inarticulate shout; sometimes he threw his hands up and wrung them in his agony; but he never stopped running. Panting, breathless, and exhausted, he rushed through the darkness, scratching his face on the thorns, occasionally stumbling into ditches and hidden bogs; sometimes he would fall hard but quickly get back up and keep pushing forward, trying to escape the haunting voices and to forever distance himself from his conscience and memories.

And then came that terrible early daylight that was wont to dawn upon the T'other Mounting when all the world besides was lost in slumber; the wan, melancholy light showed dimly the solemn trees and dense undergrowth; the precarious pitfalls about his path; the long deep gorges; the great crags and chasms; the cascades, steely gray, and white; the huge mass, all hung about with shadows, which he knew was Old Rocky-Top, rising from the impenetrably dark valley below. It seemed wonderful to him, somehow, that a new day should break at all. If, in a revulsion of nature, that utter blackness had continued forever and ever it would not have been strange, after what had happened. He could have borne it better than the sight of the familiar world gradually growing into day, all unconscious of his secret. He had begun the descent of the T'other Mounting, and he seemed to carry that pale dawn with him; day was breaking when he reached the foot of Old Rocky-Top, and as he climbed up to his own deserted, empty little shanty, it too stood plainly defined in the morning light. He dragged himself to the door, and impelled by some morbid fascination he glanced over his shoulder at the T'other Mounting. There it was, unchanged, with the golden largess of a gracious season blazing upon every autumnal leaf. He shuddered, and went into the fireless, comfortless house. And then he made an appalling discovery. As he mechanically divested himself of his shot-pouch and powder-horn he was stricken by a sudden consciousness that he did not have his gun! One doubtful moment, and he remembered that he had laid it upon the crag when he had thrown himself down to rest. Beyond question, it was there yet. His conscience was still now,—his remorse had fled. It was only a matter of time when his crime would be known. He recollected his meeting with young White while he was hunting, and then Britt cursed the gun which he had left on the cliff. The discovery of the weapon there would be strong evidence against him, taken in connection with all the other circumstances. True, he could even yet go back and recover it, but he was mastered by the fear of meeting some one on the unfrequented road, or even in the loneliness of the T'other Mounting, and strengthening the chain of evidence against him by the fact of being once more seen in the fateful neighborhood. He resolved that he would wait until night-fall, and then he would retrace his way, secure his gun, and all might yet be well with him. As to the bowlder,—were men never before buried under the falling rocks of the T'other Mounting?

And then came that terrible early morning light that used to break over the T'other Mounting when everyone else was still asleep; the dim, sad light revealed the solemn trees and thick underbrush, the treacherous pitfalls on his path, the long deep gorges, the huge cliffs and chasms, the cascading water, gray and white, and the massive form of Old Rocky-Top, rising from the impenetrably dark valley below. It seemed strange to him that a new day could even start at all. If that complete darkness had persisted forever, it wouldn’t have felt odd after everything that had happened. He could handle that better than seeing the familiar world slowly come to life, oblivious to his secret. He had begun to descend the T'other Mounting, and it felt like he was carrying the pale dawn with him; day was breaking when he reached the foot of Old Rocky-Top, and as he made his way to his deserted, empty little cabin, it stood clearly defined in the morning light. He dragged himself to the door, and driven by some morbid curiosity, he looked back at the T'other Mounting. There it was, unchanged, with the golden bounty of a generous season shining on every autumn leaf. He shuddered and went inside the cold, uncomfortable house. And then he made a horrifying discovery. As he mindlessly took off his shot pouch and powder horn, it hit him suddenly that he didn't have his gun! After a moment of doubt, he remembered that he had left it on the crag when he lay down to rest. There was no doubt it was still there. His conscience was quiet now—his remorse was gone. It was only a matter of time before his crime would be uncovered. He recalled his encounter with young White while hunting, and then Britt cursed the gun he’d left on the cliff. Finding the weapon there would be strong evidence against him, especially in light of everything else. Sure, he could still go back and get it, but he was overwhelmed by the fear of running into someone on that lonely road, or even in the solitude of the T'other Mounting, which would only add to the evidence against him since he’d be seen again in that fateful area. He decided he would wait until evening, and then he would retrace his steps, get his gun, and everything might still turn out fine for him. As for the boulder—hadn't people been buried under the falling rocks of the T'other Mounting before?

Without food, without rest, without sleep, his limbs rigid with the strong tension of his nerves, his eyes bloodshot, haggard, and eager, his brain on fire, he sat through the long morning hours absently gazing across the narrow valley at the solemn, majestic mountain opposite, and that sinister jutting crag with the indistinctly defined ledges of its rugged surface.

Without food, without rest, without sleep, his limbs stiff from the intense strain of his nerves, his eyes bloodshot, worn out, and eager, his mind racing, he sat through the long morning hours, blankly staring across the narrow valley at the serious, impressive mountain in front of him, and that ominous jutting cliff with the vaguely defined ledges of its rough surface.

After a time, the scene began to grow dim; the sun was still shining, but through a haze becoming momently more dense. The brilliantly tinted foliage upon the T'other Mounting was fading; the cliffs showed strangely distorted faces through the semi-transparent blue vapor, and presently they seemed to recede altogether; the valley disappeared, and all the country was filled with the smoke of distant burning woods. He was gasping when he first became sensible of the smoke-laden haze, for he had seen nothing of the changing aspect of the landscape. Before his vision was the changeless picture of a night of mingled moonlight and shadow, the ill-defined black mass where Old Rocky-Top rose into the air, the impenetrable gloom of the valley, the ledge of the crag, and the unconscious figure slowly coming within the power of his murderous hand. His eyes would look on no other scene, no other face, so long as he should live.

After a while, the scene started to fade; the sun was still shining, but it was becoming increasingly hazy. The brightly colored leaves on the other mountain were losing their vibrancy; the cliffs showed oddly distorted shapes through the semi-transparent blue mist, and soon they seemed to pull away completely; the valley vanished, and the whole area was filled with smoke from distant wildfires. He was struggling to breathe when he first noticed the smoke-filled haze, as he hadn't seen how the landscape had changed. Before him was the unchanging image of a night filled with mixed moonlight and shadows; the vague black mass where Old Rocky-Top rose into the sky, the thick darkness of the valley, the ledge of the cliff, and the unaware figure slowly coming under the control of his lethal hand. His eyes would focus on no other scene, no other face, for as long as he lived.

He had a momentary sensation of stifling, and then a great weight was lifted. For he had begun to doubt whether the unlucky locality would account satisfactorily for the fall of that bowlder and the horrible object beneath it; a more reasonable conclusion might be deduced from the fact that he had been seen in the neighborhood, and the circumstance of the deadly feud. But what wonder would there be if the dry leaves on the T'other Mounting should be ignited and the woods burned! What explanations might not such a catastrophe suggest!—a frantic flight from the flames toward the cliff and an accidental fall. And so he waited throughout the long day, that was hardly day at all, but an opaque twilight, through which could be discerned only the stony path leading down the slope from his door, only the blurred outlines of the bushes close at hand, only the great gaunt limbs of a lightning-scathed tree, seeming entirely severed from the unseen trunk, and swinging in the air sixty feet above the earth.

He felt a brief sensation of suffocation, and then a heavy weight was lifted. He started to question whether the unfortunate location could really explain the fall of that boulder and the horrific object underneath it; a more sensible conclusion might be that he had been seen nearby and considering the deadly feud. But what would be so surprising if the dry leaves on the other mountain caught fire and the woods burned? What kinds of explanations could such a disaster lead to?—a desperate escape from the flames towards the cliff and a tragic fall. So he waited throughout the long day, which hardly felt like day at all, but more like a thick twilight, where he could just make out the stony path leading down from his door, the blurry outlines of the bushes nearby, and the skeletal branches of a lightning-struck tree, appearing completely disconnected from the hidden trunk and swinging in the air sixty feet above the ground.

Toward night-fall the wind rose and the smoke-curtain lifted, once more revealing to the settlers upon Old Rocky-Top the sombre T'other Mounting, with the belated evening light still lurid upon the trees,—only a strange, faint resemblance of the sunset radiance, rather the ghost of a dead day. And presently this apparition was gone, and the deep purple line of the witched mountain's summit grew darker against the opaline skies, till it was merged in a dusky black, and the shades of the night fell thick on the landscape.

Toward evening, the wind picked up and the smoke lifted, once again revealing to the settlers on Old Rocky-Top the gloomy T'other Mountain, with the late evening light still casting an eerie glow on the trees—only a faint imitation of sunset, more like the ghost of a day that had died. Soon, this vision disappeared, and the deep purple outline of the enchanted mountain's peak grew darker against the shimmering sky until it blended into an inky black, and the darkness of night settled heavily over the landscape.

The scenic effects of the drama, that serve to widen the mental vision and cultivate the imagination of even the poor in cities, were denied these primitive, simple people; but that magnificent pageant of the four seasons, wherein was forever presented the imposing splendor of the T'other Mounting in an ever-changing grandeur of aspect, was a gracious recompense for the spectacular privileges of civilization. And this evening the humble family party on Nathan White's porch beheld a scene of unique impressiveness.

The beautiful scenery of the play, which helps expand the mind and nurture the imagination even among the less fortunate in cities, was unavailable to these basic, simple folks; but the stunning display of the four seasons, showcasing the impressive beauty of T'other Mounting in its constantly changing glory, was a kind reward for the spectacular advantages of civilization. And this evening, the modest family gathering on Nathan White's porch witnessed a scene of extraordinary significance.

The moon had not yet risen; the winds were awhirl; the darkness draped the earth as with a pall. Out from the impenetrable gloom of the woods on the T'other Mounting there started, suddenly, a scarlet globe of fire; one long moment it was motionless, but near it the spectral outline of a hand appeared beckoning, or warning, or raised in horror,—only a leafless tree, catching in the distance a semblance of humanity. Then from the still ball of fire there streamed upward a long, slender plume of golden light, waving back and forth against the pale horizon. Across the dark slope of the mountain below, flashes of lightning were shooting in zigzag lines, and wherever they gleamed were seen those frantic skeleton hands raised and wrung in anguish. It was cruel sport for the cruel winds; they maddened over gorge and cliff and along the wooded steeps, carrying far upon their wings the sparks of desolation. From the summit, myriads of jets of flame reached up to the placid stars; about the base of the mountain lurked a lake of liquid fire, with wreaths of blue smoke hovering over it; ever and anon, athwart the slope darted the sudden lightning, widening into sheets of flame as it conquered new ground.

The moon hadn't risen yet; the winds were swirling; darkness covered the earth like a shroud. Suddenly, from the thick gloom of the woods on the other mountain, a red sphere of fire appeared; for a moment, it was still, but next to it, the ghostly outline of a hand showed, either beckoning, warning, or raised in horror — just a leafless tree, catching a hint of humanity in the distance. Then, from the still ball of fire, a long, slender plume of golden light shot up, waving back and forth against the pale horizon. Across the dark slope of the mountain below, lightning flashed in zigzag patterns, and wherever it lit up, frantic skeletal hands were seen raised and wringing in despair. It was cruel sport for the vicious winds; they howled over gorges and cliffs and along the wooded slopes, carrying the sparks of destruction far on their wings. From the peak, countless jets of flame reached toward the calm stars; around the base of the mountain lay a lake of liquid fire, with blue smoke curling above it; every now and then, lightning darted across the slope, expanding into sheets of flame as it took over new ground.

The astonishment on the faces grouped about Nathan White's door was succeeded by a startled anxiety. After the first incoherent exclamations of surprise came the pertinent inquiry from his wife, "Ef Old Rocky-Top war ter ketch too, whar would we-uns run ter?"

The shock on the faces gathered around Nathan White's door quickly turned into worried concern. After the initial confused exclamations of surprise, his wife asked the important question, "If Old Rocky-Top were to catch us too, where would we go?"

Nathan White's countenance had in its expression more of astounded excitement than of bodily fear. "Why, bless my soul!" he said at length, "the woods away over yander, what hev been burnin' all day, ain't nigh enough ter the T'other Mounting ter ketch it,—nuthin' like it."

Nathan White’s face showed more astonished excitement than actual fear. “Well, I’ll be!” he finally said, “the woods way over there that have been burning all day aren’t anywhere close to the Other Mountain to catch it—nothing like that.”

"The T'other Mounting would burn, though, ef fire war put ter it," said his son. The two men exchanged a glance of deep significance.

"The other mountain would burn, though, if fire were put to it," said his son. The two men exchanged a glance full of meaning.

"Do ye mean ter say," exclaimed Mrs. White, her fire-lit face agitated by a sudden superstitious terror, "that that thar T'other Mounting is fired by witches an' sech?"

"Do you mean to say," exclaimed Mrs. White, her face illuminated by the fire and showing signs of sudden superstitious fear, "that that other mountain is haunted by witches and such?"

"Don't talk so loud, Matildy," said her husband. "Them knows best ez done it."

"Don't talk so loud, Matildy," her husband said. "They know best how to do it."

"Thar's one thing sure," quavered the old man: "that thar fire will never tech a leaf on Old Rocky-Top. Thar's a church on this hyar mounting,—bless the Lord fur it!—an' we lives in the fear o' God."

"There's one thing I'm sure of," the old man said nervously, "that fire will never touch a leaf on Old Rocky-Top. There's a church up on this mountain—thank the Lord for it!—and we live in the fear of God."

There was a pause, all watching with distended eyes the progress of the flames.

There was a pause, everyone staring with wide eyes at the flames as they danced.

"It looks like it mought hev been kindled in torment," said the young daughter-in-law.

"It seems like it might have been started in pain," said the young daughter-in-law.

"It looks down thar," said her husband, pointing to the lake of fire, "like the pit itself."

"It looks down there," said her husband, pointing to the lake of fire, "like the pit itself."

The apathetic inhabitants of Old Rocky-Top were stirred into an activity very incongruous with their habits and the hour. During the conflagration they traversed long distances to reach each other's houses and confer concerning the danger and the questions of supernatural agency provoked by the mysterious firing of the woods. Nathan White had few neighbors, but above the crackling of the timber and the roar of the flames there rose the quick beat of running footsteps; the undergrowth of the forest near at hand was in strange commotion; and at last, the figure of a man burst forth, the light of the fire showing the startling pallor of his face as he staggered to the little porch and sank, exhausted, into a chair.

The indifferent residents of Old Rocky-Top were unexpectedly roused into activity that was totally out of character for them, especially at this hour. During the fire, they traveled long distances to visit one another's homes to discuss the danger and the supernatural questions raised by the mysterious fire in the woods. Nathan White had few neighbors, but amid the crackling wood and roaring flames, the sound of hurried footsteps could be heard; the underbrush in the nearby forest was in a strange uproar; and finally, a man appeared, the light from the fire highlighting the shocking paleness of his face as he staggered onto the small porch and collapsed, exhausted, into a chair.

"Waal, Caleb Hoxie!" exclaimed Nathan White, in good-natured raillery; "ye're skeered, fur true! What ails ye, ter think Old Rocky-Top air a-goin' ter ketch too? 'Tain't nigh dry enough, I'm a-thinkin'."

"Waal, Caleb Hoxie!" Nathan White laughed, teasingly. "You're scared, that's for sure! What's got you thinking Old Rocky-Top is going to catch fire too? It’s not nearly dry enough, I think."

"Fire kindled that thar way can't tech a leaf on Old Rocky-Top," sleepily piped out the old man, nodding in his chair, the glare of the flames which rioted over the T'other Mounting gilding his long white hair and peaceful, slumberous face. "Thar's a church on Old Rocky-Top,—bless the"—The sentence drifted away with his dreams.

"Fire lit that way can’t touch a leaf on Old Rocky-Top," sleepily said the old man, nodding in his chair. The bright flames dancing over the other mountain illuminated his long white hair and calm, dreamy face. "There’s a church on Old Rocky-Top—bless the"—the sentence faded away with his dreams.

"Does ye believe—them—them"—Caleb Hoxie's trembling white lips could not frame the word—"them—done it?"

"Do you believe—those—those"—Caleb Hoxie's trembling white lips couldn't say the word—"those—did it?"

"Like ez not," said Nathan White. "But that ain't a-troublin' of ye an' me. I ain't never hearn o' them witches a-tormentin' of honest folks what ain't done nuthin' hurtful ter nobody," he added, in cordial reassurance.

"Of course," said Nathan White. "But that doesn't concern you and me. I've never heard of witches bothering honest people who haven't done anything to hurt anyone," he added, in friendly reassurance.

His son was half hidden behind one of the rough cedar posts, that his mirth at the guest's display of cowardice might not be observed. But the women, always quick to suspect, glanced meaningly at each other with widening eyes, as they stood together in the door-way.

His son was mostly hidden behind one of the rough cedar posts, so his amusement at the guest's display of fear wouldn't be noticed. But the women, always quick to catch on, exchanged meaningful glances with each other, their eyes widening as they stood together in the doorway.

"I dunno,—I dunno," Caleb Hoxie declared huskily. "I ain't never done nuthin' ter nobody, an' what do ye s'pose them witches an' sech done ter me las' night, on that T'other Mounting? I war a-goin' over yander to Gideon Croft's fur ter physic him, ez he air mortal low with the fever; an' ez I war a-comin' alongside o' that thar high bluff"—it was very distinct, with the flames wreathing fantastically about its gray, rigid features—"they throwed a bowlder ez big ez this hyar porch down on ter me. It jes' grazed me, an' knocked me down, an' kivered me with dirt. An' I run home a-hollerin'; an' it seemed ter me ter-day ez I war a-goin' ter screech an' screech all my life, like some onsettled crazy critter. It 'peared like 'twould take a bar'l o' hop tea ter git me quiet. An' now look yander!" and he pointed tremulously to the blazing mountain.

"I don’t know—I just don’t know," Caleb Hoxie said hoarsely. "I’ve never done anything to anyone, and what do you think those witches and all did to me last night on that Other Mountain? I was going over there to Gideon Croft’s to help him, since he’s really sick with fever; and as I was coming alongside that high bluff"—it was very clear, with the flames curling oddly around its gray, rigid shape—"they dropped a boulder as big as this porch down on me. It just grazed me, knocked me down, and covered me with dirt. And I ran home shouting; and it seemed to me today like I was going to scream and scream for the rest of my life, like some unsettled crazy creature. It felt like it would take a barrel of herbal tea to calm me down. And now look over there!" and he pointed shakily to the blazing mountain.

There was an expression of conviction on the women's faces. All their lives afterward it was there whenever Caleb Hoxie's name was mentioned; no more to be moved or changed than the stern, set faces of the crags among the fiery woods.

There was a look of certainty on the women's faces. For the rest of their lives, it was there whenever Caleb Hoxie's name came up; unyielding and unchanged, just like the hard, focused faces of the cliffs among the blazing woods.

"Thar's a church on this hyar mounting," said the old man feebly, waking for a moment, and falling asleep the next.

"There's a church on this mountain," said the old man weakly, waking up for a moment and then dozing off again.

Nathan White was perplexed and doubtful, and a superstitious awe had checked the laughing youngster behind the cedar post.

Nathan White was confused and uncertain, and a superstitious fear had silenced the laughing kid behind the cedar post.

A great cloud of flame came rolling through the sky toward them, golden, pellucid, spangled through and through with fiery red stars; poising itself for one moment high above the valley, then breaking into myriads of sparks, and showering down upon the dark abysses below.

A huge cloud of flames rolled across the sky toward them, shimmering gold and clear, dotted with fiery red stars; it hovered for a moment high above the valley before bursting into thousands of sparks and showering down into the dark depths below.

"Look-a-hyar!" said the elder woman in a frightened under-tone to her daughter-in-law; "this hyar wicked critter air too onlucky ter be a-sittin' 'longside of us; we'll all be burnt up afore he gits hisself away from hyar. An' who is that a-comin' yander?" For from the encompassing woods another dark figure had emerged, and was slowly approaching the porch. The wary eyes near Caleb Hoxie saw that he fell to trembling, and that he clutched at a post for support. But the hand pointing at him was shaken as with a palsy, and the voice hardly seemed Tony Britt's as it cried out, in an agony of terror, "What air ye a-doin' hyar, a-sittin' 'longside o' livin' folks? Yer bones air under a bowlder on the T'other Mounting, an' ye air a dead man!"

"Look over here!" said the older woman in a frightened whisper to her daughter-in-law; "this wicked person is just too unlucky to be sitting next to us; we’ll all be burnt up before he gets himself out of here. And who is that coming over there?" For from the surrounding woods, another dark figure had appeared and was slowly approaching the porch. The cautious eyes near Caleb Hoxie noticed that he began to tremble and clutched a post for support. But the hand pointing at him shook as if with a tremor, and the voice barely resembled Tony Britt’s as it cried out, in sheer terror, "What are you doing here, sitting next to living people? Your bones are under a boulder on the other mountain, and you are a dead man!"


They said ever afterward that Tony Britt had lost his mind "through goin' a-huntin' jes' one time on the T'other Mounting. His spirit air all broke, an' he's a mighty tame critter nowadays." Through his persistent endeavor he and Caleb Hoxie became quite friendly, and he was even reported to "'low that he war sati'fied that Caleb never gin his wife nuthin' ter hurt." "Though," said the gossips of Old Rocky-Top, "them women up ter White's will hev it no other way but that Caleb pizened her, an' they wouldn't take no yerbs from him no more 'n he war a rattlesnake. But Caleb always 'pears sorter skittish when he an' Tony air tergether, like he didn't know when Tony war a-goin' ter fotch him a lick. But law! Tony air that changed that ye can't make him mad 'thout ye mind him o' the time he called Caleb a ghost."

They said ever since that Tony Britt had lost his mind "from going hunting just one time on the Other Mountain. His spirit is all broken, and he's a really tame guy these days." Through his consistent efforts, he and Caleb Hoxie became quite friendly, and he was even said to "'low that he was satisfied that Caleb never gave his wife anything to hurt her." "Though," said the gossipers of Old Rocky-Top, "those women over at White's insist that Caleb poisoned her, and they wouldn't take any herbs from him any more than they would from a rattlesnake. But Caleb always seems a bit jumpy when he and Tony are together, like he doesn’t know when Tony is going to hit him. But really! Tony has changed so much that you can't make him mad unless you remind him of the time he called Caleb a ghost."

A dark, gloomy, deserted place was the charred T'other Mounting through all the long winter. And when spring came, and Old Rocky-Top was green with delicate fresh verdure, and melodious with singing birds and chorusing breezes, and bedecked as for some great festival with violets and azaleas and laurel-blooms, the T'other Mounting was stark and wintry and black with its desolate, leafless trees. But after a while the spring came for it, too: the buds swelled and burst; flowering vines festooned the grim gray crags; and the dainty freshness of the vernal season reigned upon its summit, while all the world below was growing into heat and dust. The circuit-rider said it reminded him of a tardy change in a sinner's heart: though it come at the eleventh hour, the glorious summer is before it, and a full fruition; though it work but an hour in the Lord's vineyard, it receives the same reward as those who labored through all the day.

A dark, gloomy, deserted place was the charred T'other Mountain throughout the long winter. But when spring came, and Old Rocky-Top was green with fresh, delicate greenery, filled with the songs of birds and the gentle sounds of the breeze, and decorated like it was for a big festival with violets, azaleas, and laurel blooms, the T'other Mountain remained stark, wintry, and black with its desolate, leafless trees. Eventually, though, spring also arrived for it: the buds swelled and burst; flowering vines draped over the grim gray cliffs; and the fresh spirit of springtime spread across its peak, while the world below began turning to heat and dust. The circuit-rider said it reminded him of a late change in a sinner's heart: even if it comes at the last moment, a glorious summer awaits, along with the full reward; even if it works just an hour in the Lord's vineyard, it receives the same reward as those who labored all day.

"An' it always did 'pear ter me ez thar war mighty little jestice in that," was Mrs. White's comment.

"And it always seemed to me that there was very little justice in that," was Mrs. White's comment.

But at the meeting when that sermon was preached Tony Britt told his "experience." It seemed a confession, for according to the gossips he "'lowed that he hed flung that bowlder down on Caleb Hoxie,—what the witches flung, ye know,—'kase he believed then that Caleb hed killed his wife with pizenous yerbs; an' he went back the nex' night an' fired the woods, ter make folks think when they fund Caleb's bones that he war a-runnin' from the blaze an' fell off'n the bluff." And everybody on Old Rocky-Top said incredulously, "Pore Tony Britt! He hev los' his mind through goin' a-huntin' jes' one time on the T'other Mounting."

But at the meeting where that sermon was delivered, Tony Britt shared his "experience." It felt like a confession because, according to the gossip, he claimed that he had thrown that boulder down on Caleb Hoxie—the one the witches threw, you know—because he believed at the time that Caleb had killed his wife with poisonous herbs; and he went back the next night and set the woods on fire to make people think that when they found Caleb's bones he had been running from the fire and fell off the cliff." And everyone on Old Rocky-Top said in disbelief, "Poor Tony Britt! He’s lost his mind just from going hunting one time on the Other Mountain."


THE "HARNT" THAT WALKS CHILHOWEE.

June had crossed the borders of Tennessee. Even on the summit of Chilhowee Mountain the apples in Peter Giles's orchard were beginning to redden, and his Indian corn, planted on so steep a declivity that the stalks seemed to have much ado to keep their footing, was crested with tassels and plumed with silk. Among the dense forests, seen by no man's eye, the elder was flying its creamy banners in honor of June's coming, and, heard by no man's ear, the pink and white bells of the azalea rang out melodies of welcome.

June had entered Tennessee. Even at the top of Chilhowee Mountain, the apples in Peter Giles's orchard were starting to turn red, and his corn, planted on such a steep slope that the stalks seemed to struggle to hold on, was topped with tassels and adorned with silk. Among the thick forests, unseen by anyone, the elder was displaying its creamy flowers to celebrate the arrival of June, and, unheard by anyone, the pink and white blossoms of the azalea chimed melodies of greeting.

"An' it air a toler'ble for'ard season. Yer wheat looks likely; an' yer gyarden truck air thrivin' powerful. Even that cold spell we-uns hed about the full o' the moon in May ain't done sot it back none, it 'pears like ter me. But, 'cording ter my way o' thinkin', ye hev got chickens enough hyar ter eat off every pea-bloom ez soon ez it opens." And Simon Burney glanced with a gardener's disapproval at the numerous fowls, lifting their red combs and tufted top-knots here and there among the thick clover under the apple-trees.

"And it's a pretty forward season. Your wheat looks good, and your garden produce is thriving a lot. Even that cold spell we had around the full moon in May doesn't seem to have set it back at all, it seems to me. But, according to my way of thinking, you’ve got enough chickens here to eat every pea blossom as soon as it opens." Simon Burney glanced with a gardener's disapproval at the numerous chickens, lifting their red combs and tufted top knots here and there among the thick clover under the apple trees.

"Them's Clarsie's chickens,—my darter, ye know," drawled Peter Giles, a pale, listless, and lank mountaineer. "An' she hev been gin ter onderstand ez they hev got ter be kep' out 'n the gyarden; 'thout," he added indulgently,—"'thout I'm a-plowin', when I lets 'em foller in the furrow ter pick up worms. But law! Clarsie is so spry that she don't ax no better 'n ter be let ter run them chickens off 'n the peas."

"Them are Clarsie's chickens—my daughter, you know," drawled Peter Giles, a pale, tired, and skinny mountain man. "And she's been told that they have to stay out of the garden; except," he added indulgently, "except when I'm plowing and I let them follow in the furrow to pick up worms. But honestly! Clarsie is so quick that she doesn’t ask for anything better than to be allowed to chase those chickens off the peas."

Then the two men tilted their chairs against the posts of the little porch in front of Peter Giles's log cabin, and puffed their pipes in silence. The panorama spread out before them showed misty and dreamy among the delicate spiral wreaths of smoke. But was that gossamer-like illusion, lying upon the far horizon, the magic of nicotian, or the vague presence of distant heights? As ridge after ridge came down from the sky in ever-graduating shades of intenser blue, Peter Giles might have told you that this parallel system of enchantment was only "the mountings:" that here was Foxy, and there was Big Injun, and still beyond was another, which he had "hearn tell ran spang up into Virginny." The sky that bent to clasp this kindred blue was of varying moods. Floods of sunshine submerged Chilhowee in liquid gold, and revealed that dainty outline limned upon the northern horizon; but over the Great Smoky mountains clouds had gathered, and a gigantic rainbow bridged the valley.

Then the two men leaned their chairs against the posts of the small porch in front of Peter Giles's log cabin and silently puffed on their pipes. The view before them was misty and dreamy among the delicate spirals of smoke. But was that gossamer-like illusion resting on the distant horizon the magic of tobacco or the vague presence of far-off heights? As ridge after ridge descended from the sky in increasingly intense shades of blue, Peter Giles could have told you that this parallel system of enchantment was just "the mountings": that here was Foxy, and there was Big Injun, and farther still was another one he had "heard tell ran straight up into Virginia." The sky that seemed to embrace this related blue had various moods. Waves of sunshine drenched Chilhowee in liquid gold, revealing that delicate outline on the northern horizon; but over the Great Smoky Mountains, clouds had gathered, and a massive rainbow spanned the valley.

Peter Giles's listless eyes were fixed upon a bit of red clay road, which was visible through a gap in the foliage far below. Even a tiny object, that ant-like crawled upon it, could be seen from the summit of Chilhowee. "I reckon that's my brother's wagon an' team," he said, as he watched the moving atom pass under the gorgeous triumphal arch. "He 'lowed he war goin' ter the Cross-Roads ter-day."

Peter Giles's tired eyes were focused on a small stretch of red clay road visible through a gap in the trees far below. Even a tiny object that looked like an ant crawling on it could be seen from the top of Chilhowee. "I think that's my brother's wagon and team," he said as he watched the tiny figure move under the beautiful triumphal arch. "He said he was going to the Cross-Roads today."

Simon Burney did not speak for a moment. When he did, his words seemed widely irrelevant. "That's a likely gal o' yourn," he drawled, with an odd constraint in his voice,—"a likely gal, that Clarsie."

Simon Burney didn’t say anything for a moment. When he finally spoke, his words felt completely out of place. “That’s quite a girl of yours,” he said slowly, with a strange tension in his voice—“quite a girl, that Clarsie.”

There was a quick flash of surprise in Peter Giles's dull eyes. He covertly surveyed his guest, with an astounded curiosity rampant in his slow brains. Simon Burney had changed color; an expression of embarrassment lurked in every line of his honest, florid, hard-featured face. An alert imagination might have detected a deprecatory self-consciousness in every gray hair that striped the black beard raggedly fringing his chin.

There was a brief look of surprise in Peter Giles's dull eyes. He discreetly observed his guest, with a shocked curiosity flooding his slow mind. Simon Burney had changed color; a look of embarrassment showed in every line of his honest, rosy, rugged face. A sharp observer might have noticed a self-consciousness in all the gray hairs irregularly mixed in with the black beard surrounding his chin.

"Yes," Peter Giles at length replied, "Clarsie air a likely enough gal. But she air mightily sot ter hevin' her own way. An' ef 't ain't give ter her peaceable-like, she jes' takes it, whether or no."

"Yes," Peter Giles finally replied, "Clarsie is a pretty likely girl. But she's really determined to have her own way. And if it's not given to her nicely, she just takes it, whether people like it or not."

This statement, made by one presumably fully informed on the subject, might have damped the ardor of many a suitor,—for the monstrous truth was dawning on Peter Giles's mind that suitor was the position to which this slow, elderly widower aspired. But Simon Burney, with that odd, all-pervading constraint still prominently apparent, mildly observed, "Waal, ez much ez I hev seen of her goin's-on, it 'pears ter me ez her way air a mighty good way. An' it ain't comical that she likes it."

This statement, made by someone who likely knew what they were talking about, might have discouraged many a hopeful suitor—because the harsh truth was starting to hit Peter Giles that he was the suitor this slow, older widower was aiming to be. But Simon Burney, with that strange, constant awkwardness still clearly visible, calmly said, "Well, from what I've seen of her actions, it seems to me that her way is a pretty good way. And it's not funny that she enjoys it."

Urgent justice compelled Peter Giles to make some amends to the absent Clarissa. "That's a fac'," he admitted. "An' Clarsie ain't no hand ter jaw. She don't hev no words. But then," he qualified, truth and consistency alike constraining him, "she air a toler'ble hard-headed gal. That air a true word. Ye mought ez well try ter hender the sun from shining ez ter make that thar Clarsie Giles do what she don't want ter do."

Urgent justice pushed Peter Giles to make some amends to the missing Clarissa. "That's a fact," he admitted. "And Clarsie isn't much for talking. She doesn't have many words. But then," he added, with both truth and consistency holding him back, "she is quite a hard-headed girl. That's the truth. You might as well try to stop the sun from shining as to make that Clarsie Giles do what she doesn't want to do."

To be sure, Peter Giles had a right to his opinion as to the hardness of his own daughter's head. The expression of his views, however, provoked Simon Burney to wrath; there was something astir within him that in a worthier subject might have been called a chivalric thrill, and it forbade him to hold his peace. He retorted: "Of course ye kin say that, ef so minded; but ennybody ez hev got eyes kin see the change ez hev been made in this hyar place sence that thar gal hev been growed. I ain't a-purtendin' ter know that thar Clarsie ez well ez you-uns knows her hyar at home, but I hev seen enough, an' a deal more'n enough, of her goin's-on, ter know that what she does ain't done fur herself. An' ef she will hev her way, it air fur the good of the whole tribe of ye. It 'pears ter me ez thar ain't many gals like that thar Clarsie. An' she air a merciful critter. She air mighty savin' of the feelin's of everything, from the cow an' the mare down ter the dogs, an' pigs, an' chickens; always a-feedin' of 'em jes' ter the time, an' never draggin', an' clawin', an' beatin' of 'em. Why, that thar Clarsie can't put her foot out'n the door, that every dumb beastis on this hyar place ain't a-runnin' ter git nigh her. I hev seen them pigs mos' climb the fence when she shows her face at the door. 'Pears ter me ez that thar Clarsie could tame a b'ar, ef she looked at him a time or two, she's so savin' o' the critter's feelin's! An' thar's that old yaller dog o' yourn," pointing to an ancient cur that was blinking in the sun, "he's older'n Clarsie, an' no 'count in the worl'. I hev hearn ye say forty times that ye would kill him, 'ceptin' that Clarsie purtected him, an' hed sot her heart on his a-livin' along. An' all the home-folks, an' everybody that kems hyar to sot an' talk awhile, never misses a chance ter kick that thar old dog, or poke him with a stick, or cuss him. But Clarsie!—I hev seen that gal take the bread an' meat off'n her plate, an' give it ter that old dog, ez 'pears ter me ter be the worst dispositionest dog I ever see, an' no thanks lef' in him. He hain't hed the grace ter wag his tail fur twenty year. That thar Clarsie air surely a merciful critter, an' a mighty spry, likely young gal, besides."

To be sure, Peter Giles had a right to his opinion about how stubborn his daughter was. However, his comments made Simon Burney really angry; there was something inside him that in a better situation might have been called a noble thrill, and it wouldn’t let him stay silent. He shot back: “Of course, you can say that if you want; but anyone with eyes can see the change that's happened here since that girl has grown up. I'm not pretending to know Clarsie as well as you do at home, but I've seen enough, and way more than enough, of her behavior to know that what she does isn't just for herself. And if she gets her way, it’s for the good of all of you. It seems to me there aren’t many girls like Clarsie. And she’s a kind-hearted person. She really cares about the feelings of every living thing, from the cow and horse down to the dogs, pigs, and chickens; always feeding them just in time, and never dragging, clawing, or beating them. Why, Clarsie can’t even step out the door without every animal on this place running to get close to her. I’ve seen those pigs nearly climb the fence when she shows her face at the door. It seems to me Clarsie could tame a bear if she just looked at him a couple of times, she’s so considerate of the animal’s feelings! And that old yellow dog of yours,” pointing to an ancient mutt blinking in the sun, “he's older than Clarsie and totally useless. I’ve heard you say a million times that you would put him down, except Clarsie protects him and has her heart set on him living for a while longer. And all the family members, and everyone who comes here to sit and talk for a bit, never misses a chance to kick that old dog, poke him with a stick, or curse him. But Clarsie!—I’ve seen that girl take the bread and meat off her plate and give it to that old dog, who seems to me to be the most ill-tempered dog I’ve ever seen, with no appreciation left in him. He hasn’t had the decency to wag his tail for twenty years. That Clarsie is truly a kind-hearted person, and a very lively, nice young lady, too."

Peter Giles sat in stunned astonishment during this speech, which was delivered in a slow, drawling monotone, with frequent meditative pauses, but nevertheless emphatically. He made no reply, and as they were once more silent there rose suddenly the sound of melody upon the air. It came from beyond that tumultuous stream that raced with the wind down the mountain's side; a great log thrown from bank to bank served as bridge. The song grew momentarily more distinct; among the leaves there were fugitive glimpses of blue and white, and at last Clarsie appeared, walking lightly along the log, clad in her checked homespun dress, and with a pail upon her head.

Peter Giles sat in shocked amazement during this speech, which was delivered in a slow, drawling monotone, with frequent thoughtful pauses, but still quite emphatic. He didn’t respond, and as they fell silent again, suddenly the sound of music filled the air. It came from beyond the rushing stream that sped down the mountain; a big log stretched across as a bridge. The song became clearer and clearer; among the leaves, there were fleeting glimpses of blue and white, and finally, Clarsie appeared, walking gracefully along the log, wearing her checked homespun dress and carrying a pail on her head.

She was a tall, lithe girl, with that delicately transparent complexion often seen among the women of these mountains. Her lustreless black hair lay along her forehead without a ripple or wave; there was something in the expression of her large eyes that suggested those of a deer,—something free, untamable, and yet gentle. "'Tain't no wonder ter me ez Clarsie is all tuk up with the wild things, an' critters ginerally," her mother was wont to say. "She sorter looks like 'em, I'm a-thinkin'."

She was a tall, slender girl, with that pale, clear skin often seen in the women from these mountains. Her flat black hair hung across her forehead without any curls or waves; there was something about the look in her large eyes that reminded one of a deer—something free, wild, yet gentle. "It's no surprise to me that Clarsie is so taken with wild things and animals in general," her mother used to say. "She kind of looks like them, I think."

As she came in sight there was a renewal of that odd constraint in Simon Burney's face and manner, and he rose abruptly. "Waal," he said, hastily, going to his horse, a raw-boned sorrel, hitched to the fence, "it's about time I war a-startin' home, I reckons."

As she came into view, Simon Burney's face and behavior showed that familiar awkwardness again, and he stood up quickly. "Well," he said, hurriedly walking to his horse, a thin sorrel tied to the fence, "I guess it's about time I head home, I suppose."

He nodded to his host, who silently nodded in return, and the old horse jogged off with him down the road, as Clarsie entered the house and placed the pail upon a shelf.

He nodded to his host, who silently nodded back, and the old horse trotted off with him down the road as Clarsie went into the house and put the pail on a shelf.

"Who d'ye think hev been hyar a-speakin' of complimints on ye, Clarsie?" exclaimed Mrs. Giles, who had overheard through the open door every word of the loud, drawling voice on the porch.

"Who do you think has been here talking about compliments on you, Clarsie?" exclaimed Mrs. Giles, who had overheard every word of the loud, slow voice on the porch through the open door.

Clarsie's liquid eyes widened with surprise, and a faint tinge of rose sprang into her pale face, as she looked an expectant inquiry at her mother.

Clarsie's watery eyes grew wide with surprise, and a slight blush appeared on her pale face as she looked at her mother with a questioning gaze.

Mrs. Giles was a slovenly, indolent woman, anxious, at the age of forty-five, to assume the prerogatives of advanced years. She had placed all her domestic cares upon the shapely shoulders of her willing daughter, and had betaken herself to the chimney-corner and a pipe.

Mrs. Giles was a messy, lazy woman who, at forty-five, was eager to take on the privileges that come with old age. She had offloaded all her household responsibilities onto her capable daughter and had settled into the corner by the fireplace with a pipe.

"Yes, thar hev been somebody hyar a-speakin' of complimints on ye, Clarsie," she reiterated, with chuckling amusement. "He war a mighty peart, likely boy,—that he war!"

"Yes, there has been someone here talking about compliments for you, Clarsie," she repeated, with a chuckle. "He was a really sharp, handsome boy—that he was!"

Clarsie's color deepened.

Clarsie's color intensified.

"Old Simon Burney!" exclaimed her mother, in great glee at the incongruity of the idea. "Old Simon Burney!—jes' a-sittin' out thar, a-wastin' the time, an' a-burnin' of daylight—jes' ez perlite an' smilin' ez a basket of chips—a-speakin' of complimints on ye!"

"Old Simon Burney!" her mother exclaimed, clearly amused by the absurdity of the thought. "Old Simon Burney!—just sitting out there, wasting time and burning daylight—just as polite and smiling as a basket of chips—talking about compliments on you!"

There was a flash of laughter among the sylvan suggestions of Clarsie's eyes,—a flash as of sudden sunlight upon water. But despite her mirth she seemed to be unaccountably disappointed. The change in her manner was not noticed by her mother, who continued banteringly,—

There was a burst of laughter in the playful glimmer of Clarsie's eyes—like a sudden ray of sunlight on water. But even though she was laughing, she seemed strangely disappointed. Her mother didn't notice the shift in her mood and kept teasing her—

"Simon Burney air a mighty pore old man. Ye oughter be sorry fur him, Clarsie. Ye mustn't think less of folks than ye does of the dumb beastis,—that ain't religion. Ye knows ye air sorry fur mos' everything; why not fur this comical old consarn? Ye oughter marry him ter take keer of him. He said ye war a merciful critter; now is yer chance ter show it! Why, air ye a-goin' ter weavin', Clarsie, jes' when I wants ter talk ter ye 'bout'n old Simon Burney? But law! I knows ye kerry him with ye in yer heart."

"Simon Burney is a really pitiful old man. You should feel sorry for him, Clarsie. You shouldn’t think any less of people than you do of the dumb animals—that’s not how to be religious. You know you feel sorry for just about everything; so why not for this funny old guy? You should marry him to take care of him. He said you were a kind person; now’s your chance to prove it! Why are you going weaving, Clarsie, just when I want to talk to you about old Simon Burney? But I know you carry him in your heart."

The girl summarily closed the conversation by seating herself before a great hand-loom; presently the persistent thump, thump, of the batten and the noisy creak of the treadle filled the room, and through all the long, hot afternoon her deft, practiced hands lightly tossed the shuttle to and fro.

The girl quickly ended the conversation by sitting down at a large loom; soon, the steady thump, thump of the batten and the loud creak of the treadle filled the room, and throughout the long, hot afternoon, her skilled hands effortlessly moved the shuttle back and forth.

The breeze freshened, after the sun went down, and the hop and gourd vines were all astir as they clung about the little porch where Clarsie was sitting now, idle at last. The rain clouds had disappeared, and there bent over the dark, heavily wooded ridges a pale blue sky, with here and there the crystalline sparkle of a star. A halo was shimmering in the east, where the mists had gathered about the great white moon, hanging high above the mountains. Noiseless wings flitted through the dusk; now and then the bats swept by so close as to wave Clarsie's hair with the wind of their flight. What an airy, glittering, magical thing was that gigantic spider-web suspended between the silver moon and her shining eyes! Ever and anon there came from the woods a strange, weird, long-drawn sigh, unlike the stir of the wind in the trees, unlike the fret of the water on the rocks. Was it the voiceless sorrow of the sad earth? There were stars in the night besides those known to astronomers: the stellular fireflies gemmed the black shadows with a fluctuating brilliancy; they circled in and out of the porch, and touched the leaves above Clarsie's head with quivering points of light. A steadier and an intenser gleam was advancing along the road, and the sound of languid footsteps came with it; the aroma of tobacco graced the atmosphere, and a tall figure walked up to the gate.

The breeze picked up after the sun set, and the hop and gourd vines were all rustling as they wrapped around the little porch where Clarsie was now finally sitting idle. The rain clouds had cleared away, and a pale blue sky stretched over the dark, dense ridges, with a few stars twinkling like crystals. A halo shimmered in the east, where mist gathered around the bright white moon hanging high above the mountains. Silent wings flitted through the dusk; occasionally, bats flew by so close that they brushed Clarsie's hair with the wind from their flight. What a light, sparkling, magical sight that huge spider web was, hanging between the silver moon and her shining eyes! From the woods, a strange, eerie, drawn-out sigh emerged, unlike the rustling of the wind in the trees, unlike the soft lapping of water on the rocks. Was it the soundless sorrow of the melancholy earth? There were stars in the night beyond those recognized by astronomers: fireflies sparkled in the dark shadows with shifting brilliance; they danced in and out of the porch and brushed the leaves above Clarsie's head with flickering points of light. A steadier and more intense glow was moving along the path, accompanied by the sound of lazy footsteps; the scent of tobacco filled the air as a tall figure approached the gate.

"Come in, come in," said Peter Giles, rising, and tendering the guest a chair. "Ye air Tom Pratt, ez well ez I kin make out by this light. Waal, Tom, we hain't furgot ye sence ye done been hyar."

"Come in, come in," said Peter Giles, standing up and offering the guest a chair. "You must be Tom Pratt, from what I can see in this light. Well, Tom, we haven't forgotten you since you've been here."

As Tom had been there on the previous evening, this might be considered a joke, or an equivocal compliment. The young fellow was restless and awkward under it, but Mrs. Giles chuckled with great merriment.

As Tom had been there the night before, this could be seen as a joke or a mixed compliment. The young guy felt uneasy and awkward about it, but Mrs. Giles laughed heartily.

"An' how air ye a-comin' on, Mrs. Giles?" he asked propitiatorily.

"How are you doing, Mrs. Giles?" he asked with a friendly tone.

"Jes' toler'ble, Tom. Air they all well ter yer house?"

"Just fine, Tom. Are they all good at your place?"

"Yes, they're toler'ble well, too." He glanced at Clarsie, intending to address to her some polite greeting, but the expression of her shy, half-startled eyes, turned upon the far-away moon, warned him. "Thar never war a gal so skittish," he thought. "She'd run a mile, skeered ter death, ef I said a word ter her."

"Yeah, they’re pretty good, too." He looked at Clarsie, planning to say something nice to her, but the look in her shy, slightly startled eyes, focused on the distant moon, stopped him. "There’s never been a girl so jumpy," he thought. "She’d run a mile, scared to death, if I said anything to her."

And he was prudently silent.

And he stayed wisely silent.

"Waal," said Peter Giles, "what's the news out yer way, Tom? Ennything a-goin' on?"

"Waal," said Peter Giles, "what's new with you, Tom? Anything happening?"

"Thar war a shower yander on the Backbone; it rained toler'ble hard fur a while, an' sot up the corn wonderful. Did ye git enny hyar?"

"That was a shower over there on the Backbone; it rained pretty hard for a while and really helped the corn. Did you get any here?"

"Not a drap."

"Not a chance."

"'Pears ter me ez I kin see the clouds a-circlin' round Chilhowee, an' a-rainin' on everybody's corn-field 'ceptin' ourn," said Mrs. Giles. "Some folks is the favored of the Lord, an' t'others hev ter work fur everything an' git nuthin'. Waal, waal; we-uns will see our reward in the nex' worl'. Thar's a better worl' than this, Tom."

"'To me, it looks like I can see the clouds circling around Chilhowee, and raining on everyone’s cornfield except ours,' said Mrs. Giles. 'Some people are favored by the Lord, and others have to work for everything and get nothing. Well, well; we will see our reward in the next world. There’s a better world than this, Tom.'"

"That's a fac'," said Tom, in orthodox assent.

"That's a fact," said Tom, agreeing as expected.

"An' when we leaves hyar once, we leaves all trouble an' care behind us, Tom; fur we don't come back no more." Mrs. Giles was drifting into one of her pious moods.

"Once we leave here, we leave all our trouble and worries behind us, Tom; because we’re not coming back." Mrs. Giles was slipping into one of her pious moods.

"I dunno," said Tom. "Thar hev been them ez hev."

"I don't know," said Tom. "There have been those who have."

"Hev what?" demanded Peter Giles, startled.

"Hev what?" asked Peter Giles, surprised.

"Hev come back ter this hyar yearth. Thar's a harnt that walks Chilhowee every night o' the worl'. I know them ez hev seen him."

"He’s come back to this here earth. There’s a ghost that walks Chilhowee every night of the world. I know those who have seen him."

Clarsie's great dilated eyes were fastened on the speaker's face. There was a dead silence for a moment, more eloquent with these looks of amazement than any words could have been.

Clarsie's wide eyes were locked onto the speaker's face. There was a moment of complete silence, more expressive with that look of astonishment than any words could have been.

"I reckons ye remember a puny, shriveled little man, named Reuben Crabb, ez used ter live yander, eight mile along the ridge ter that thar big sulphur spring," Tom resumed, appealing to Peter Giles. "He war born with only one arm."

"I guess you remember a small, withered little man named Reuben Crabb who used to live over there, eight miles along the ridge to that big sulfur spring," Tom continued, addressing Peter Giles. "He was born with only one arm."

"I 'members him," interpolated Mrs. Giles, vivaciously. "He war a mighty porely, sickly little critter, all the days of his life. 'Twar a wonder he war ever raised ter be a man,—an' a pity, too. An' 'twar powerful comical, the way of his takin' off; a stunted, one-armed little critter a-ondertakin' ter fight folks an' shoot pistols. He hed the use o' his one arm, sure."

"I remember him," Mrs. Giles interjected energetically. "He was a really sickly little guy his whole life. It was a miracle he made it to adulthood—and a shame, too. And it was pretty funny how he acted; a short, one-armed little guy trying to fight people and shoot guns. He could use his one arm, for sure."

"Waal," said Tom, "his house ain't thar now, 'kase Sam Grim's brothers burned it ter the ground fur his a-killin' of Sam. That warn't all that war done ter Reuben fur killin' of Sam. The sheriff run Reuben Crabb down this hyar road 'bout a mile from hyar,—mebbe less,—an' shot him dead in the road, jes' whar it forks. Waal, Reuben war in company with another evil-doer,—he war from the Cross-Roads, an' I furgits what he hed done, but he war a-tryin' ter hide in the mountings, too; an' the sheriff lef' Reuben a-lying thar in the road, while he tries ter ketch up with the t'other; but his horse got a stone in his hoof, an' he los' time, an' hed ter gin it up. An' when he got back ter the forks o' the road whar he had lef' Reuben a-lyin' dead, thar war nuthin' thar 'ceptin' a pool o' blood. Waal, he went right on ter Reuben's house, an' them Grim boys hed burnt it ter the ground; but he seen Reuben's brother Joel. An' Joel, he tole the sheriff that late that evenin' he hed tuk Reuben's body out'n the road an' buried it, 'kase it hed been lyin' thar in the road ever sence early in the mornin', an' he couldn't leave it thar all night, an' he hedn't no shelter fur it, sence the Grim boys hed burnt down the house. So he war obleeged ter bury it. An' Joel showed the sheriff a new-made grave, an' Reuben's coat whar the sheriff's bullet hed gone in at the back an' kem out'n the breast. The sheriff 'lowed ez they'd fine Joel fifty dollars fur a-buryin' of Reuben afore the cor'ner kem; but they never done it, ez I knows on. The sheriff said that when the cor'ner kem the body would be tuk up fur a 'quest. But thar hed been a powerful big frishet, an' the river 'twixt the cor'ner's house an' Chilhowee couldn't be forded fur three weeks. The cor'ner never kem, an' so thar it all stayed. That war four year ago."

"Well," said Tom, "his house isn't there now, because Sam Grim's brothers burned it to the ground for him killing Sam. That wasn't all that happened to Reuben for killing Sam. The sheriff tracked down Reuben Crabb about a mile down this road—maybe less—and shot him dead right in the road, just where it forks. Well, Reuben was with another wrongdoer—he was from the Cross-Roads, and I forget what he had done, but he was trying to hide in the mountains too; and the sheriff left Reuben lying there in the road while he tried to catch up with the other guy; but his horse got a stone in its hoof, and he lost time and had to give it up. And when he got back to the forks of the road where he had left Reuben lying dead, there was nothing there except a pool of blood. Well, he went straight to Reuben's house, and those Grim boys had burned it to the ground; but he saw Reuben's brother Joel. And Joel told the sheriff that late that evening he had taken Reuben's body out of the road and buried it, because it had been lying there since early in the morning, and he couldn't leave it there all night, and he didn't have any shelter for it since the Grim boys had burned down the house. So he had to bury it. And Joel showed the sheriff a freshly made grave, and Reuben's coat where the sheriff's bullet had entered at the back and exited from the front. The sheriff said they'd fine Joel fifty dollars for burying Reuben before the coroner came; but they never did, as far as I know. The sheriff said that when the coroner came, the body would be taken up for an inquest. But there had been a really big flood, and the river between the coroner's house and Chilhowee couldn't be crossed for three weeks. The coroner never came, and so it all just stayed. That was four years ago."

"Waal," said Peter Giles, dryly, "I ain't seen no harnt yit. I knowed all that afore."

"Waal," Peter Giles said dryly, "I haven't seen any ghosts yet. I already knew all that."

Clarsie's wondering eyes upon the young man's moonlit face had elicited these facts, familiar to the elders, but strange, he knew, to her.

Clarsie's curious eyes on the young man's face in the moonlight had revealed these facts, which were known to the older folks but were unfamiliar to her.

"I war jes' a-goin' on ter tell," said Tom, abashed. "Waal, ever sence his brother Joel died, this spring, Reuben's harnt walks Chilhowee. He war seen week afore las', 'bout daybreak, by Ephraim Blenkins, who hed been a-fishin', an' war a-goin' home. Eph happened ter stop in the laurel ter wind up his line, when all in a minit he seen the harnt go by, his face white, an' his eye-balls like fire, an' puny an' one-armed, jes' like he lived. Eph, he owed me a haffen day's work; I holped him ter plow las' month, an' so he kem ter-day an' hoed along cornsider'ble ter pay fur it. He say he believes the harnt never seen him, 'kase it went right by. He 'lowed ef the harnt hed so much ez cut one o' them blazin' eyes round at him he couldn't but hev drapped dead. Waal, this mornin', 'bout sunrise, my brother Bob's little gal, three year old, strayed off from home while her mother war out milkin' the cow. An' we went a-huntin' of her, mightily worked up, 'kase thar hev been a b'ar prowlin' round our corn-field twict this summer. An' I went to the right, an' Bob went to the lef'. An' he say ez he war a-pushin' 'long through the laurel, he seen the bushes ahead of him a-rustlin'. An' he jes' stood still an' watched 'em. An' fur a while the bushes war still too; an' then they moved jes' a little, fust this way an' then that, till all of a suddint the leaves opened, like the mouth of hell mought hev done, an' thar he seen Reuben Crabb's face. He say he never seen sech a face! Its mouth war open, an' its eyes war a-startin' out'n its head, an' its skin war white till it war blue; an' ef the devil hed hed it a-hangin' over the coals that minit it couldn't hev looked no more skeered. But that war all that Bob seen, 'kase he jes' shet his eyes an' screeched an' screeched like he war destracted. An' when he stopped a second ter ketch his breath he hearn su'thin' a-answerin' him back, sorter weak-like, an' thar war little Peggy a-pullin' through the laurel. Ye know she's too little ter talk good, but the folks down ter our house believes she seen the harnt, too."

"I was just about to say," Tom said, embarrassed. "Well, ever since his brother Joel died this spring, Reuben's ghost has been wandering around Chilhowee. He was seen a week ago at dawn by Ephraim Blenkins, who was fishing and was on his way home. Eph happened to stop in the laurel to wind up his line when suddenly he saw the ghost go by, its face pale, its eyes like fire, and weak and one-armed, just like he was alive. Eph owed me half a day's work; I helped him plow last month, and so he came today and hoed a good bit to pay for it. He says he believes the ghost didn’t see him since it passed right by. He said if the ghost had even so much as glanced at him with one of those blazing eyes, he would have dropped dead. Well, this morning, around sunrise, my brother Bob's little girl, three years old, wandered off from home while her mother was out milking the cow. We went looking for her, really worried, because there had been a bear prowling around our cornfield twice this summer. I went to the right, and Bob went to the left. He said as he was pushing through the laurel, he saw the bushes ahead of him rustling. He just stood still and watched them. For a while, the bushes were still, too; then they moved just a little, first one way and then the other, until all of a sudden the leaves opened, like the mouth of hell might have done, and there he saw Reuben Crabb's face. He said he had never seen such a face! Its mouth was open, its eyes were bulging out of its head, and its skin was white until it was blue; and if the devil had had it hanging over the coals at that moment, it couldn’t have looked more scared. But that was all Bob saw because he just shut his eyes and screamed and screamed like he was distracted. When he stopped for a second to catch his breath, he heard something answering him back, sort of weak-like, and there was little Peggy pulling through the laurel. You know she’s too little to talk well, but the folks down at our house believe she saw the ghost, too."

"My Lord!" exclaimed Peter Giles. "I 'low I couldn't live a minit ef I war ter see that thar harnt that walks Chilhowee!"

"My Lord!" exclaimed Peter Giles. "I don't think I could live a minute if I saw that ghost that walks Chilhowee!"

"I know I couldn't," said his wife.

"I know I couldn't," said his wife.

"Nor me, nuther," murmured Clarsie.

"Me neither," murmured Clarsie.

"Waal," said Tom, resuming the thread of his narrative, "we hev all been a-talkin' down yander ter our house ter make out the reason why Reuben Crabb's harnt hev sot out ter walk jes' sence his brother Joel died,—'kase it war never seen afore then. An' ez nigh ez we kin make it out, the reason is 'kase thar's nobody lef' in this hyar worl' what believes he warn't ter blame in that thar killin' o' Sam Grim. Joel always swore ez Reuben never killed him no more'n nuthin'; that Sam's own pistol went off in his own hand, an' shot him through the heart jes' ez he war a-drawin' of it ter shoot Reuben Crabb. An' I hev hearn other men ez war a-standin' by say the same thing, though them Grims tells another tale; but ez Reuben never owned no pistol in his life, nor kerried one, it don't 'pear ter me ez what them Grims say air reasonable. Joel always swore ez Sam Grim war a mighty mean man,—a great big feller like him a-rockin' of a deformed little critter, an' a-mockin' of him, an' a hittin' of him. An' the day of the fight Sam jes' knocked him down fur nuthin' at all; an' afore ye could wink Reuben jumped up suddint, an' flew at him like an eagle, an' struck him in the face. An' then Sam drawed his pistol, an' it went off in his own hand, an' shot him through the heart, an' killed him dead. Joel said that ef he could hev kep' that pore little critter Reuben still, an' let the sheriff arrest him peaceable-like, he war sure the jury would hev let him off; 'kase how war Reuben a-goin ter shoot ennybody when Sam Grim never left a-holt of the only pistol between 'em, in life, or in death? They tells me they hed ter bury Sam Grim with that thar pistol in his hand; his grip war too tight fur death to unloose it. But Joel said that Reuben war sartain they'd hang him. He hedn't never seen no jestice from enny one man, an' he couldn't look fur it from twelve men. So he jes' sot out ter run through the woods, like a painter or a wolf, ter be hunted by the sheriff, an' he war run down an' kilt in the road. Joel said he kep' up arter the sheriff ez well ez he could on foot,—fur the Crabbs never hed no horse,—ter try ter beg fur Reuben, ef he war cotched, an' tell how little an' how weakly he war. I never seen a young man's head turn white like Joel's done; he said he reckoned it war his troubles. But ter the las' he stuck ter his rifle faithful. He war a powerful hunter; he war out rain or shine, hot or cold, in sech weather ez other folks would think thar warn't no use in tryin' ter do nuthin' in. I'm mightily afeard o' seein' Reuben, now, that's a fac'," concluded Tom, frankly; "'kase I hev hearn tell, an' I believes it, that ef a harnt speaks ter ye, it air sartain ye're bound ter die right then."

"Waal," said Tom, picking up his story again, "we've all been talking over at our house trying to figure out why Reuben Crabb's ghost hasn’t started walking around since his brother Joel died—because no one has seen it before that. As far as we can tell, the reason is that there’s nobody left in this world who believes he wasn’t responsible for the killing of Sam Grim. Joel always insisted that Reuben didn't kill him any more than nothing; that Sam’s own gun went off in his own hand and shot him through the heart just as he was pulling it out to shoot Reuben Crabb. I've heard other men who were standing by say the same thing, although those Grims tell a different story; but since Reuben never owned a gun in his life, much less carried one, it doesn't seem reasonable to me what the Grims are saying. Joel always said that Sam Grim was a really mean man—like a big guy picking on a deformed little creature, mocking him and hitting him. And on the day of the fight, Sam just knocked him down for no reason at all; and before you could blink, Reuben suddenly jumped up and charged at him like an eagle, hitting him in the face. Then Sam pulled out his gun, and it went off in his own hand, shooting him through the heart and killing him dead. Joel said that if he could have kept that poor little Reuben calm, and let the sheriff arrest him peacefully, he was sure the jury would have let him off; because how could Reuben have shot anyone when Sam Grim never let go of the only gun between them, in life or in death? They tell me they had to bury Sam Grim with that gun in his hand; his grip was too tight for death to loosen it. But Joel said he was sure they’d hang Reuben. He’d never seen any justice from one man, and he couldn’t expect it from twelve. So he just took off running through the woods, like a painter or a wolf, to be hunted by the sheriff, and he was caught and killed on the road. Joel said he kept up with the sheriff as best as he could on foot—since the Crabbs never had a horse—to try to plead for Reuben, if he was caught, and to explain how small and weak he was. I’ve never seen a young man’s face go as pale as Joel’s did; he said he figured it was his troubles. But in the end, he stuck to his rifle loyally. He was a powerful hunter; he was out in rain or shine, hot or cold, in weather that other folks would think there was no point in trying anything in. I'm really afraid of seeing Reuben now, that’s a fact,” concluded Tom honestly; “because I’ve heard that if a ghost speaks to you, it means you’re sure to die right then."

"'Pears ter me," said Mrs. Giles, "ez many mountings ez thar air round hyar, he mought hev tuk ter walkin' some o' them, stiddier Chilhowee."

"'Pears to me," said Mrs. Giles, "with so many mountains around here, he might have taken to walking some of them instead of Chilhowee."

There was a sudden noise close at hand: a great inverted splint-basket, from which came a sound of flapping wings, began to move slightly back and forth. Mrs. Giles gasped out an ejaculation of terror, the two men sprang to their feet, and the coy Clarsie laughed aloud in an exuberance of delighted mirth, forgetful of her shyness. "I declar' ter goodness, you-uns air all skeered fur true! Did ye think it war the harnt that walks Chilhowee?"

There was a loud noise nearby: a large upside-down splint basket, from which came the sound of flapping wings, started to sway back and forth. Mrs. Giles gasped in fear, the two men jumped to their feet, and the coy Clarsie burst out laughing in sheer delight, forgetting her shyness. "I swear, you all are really scared! Did you think it was the ghost that haunts Chilhowee?"

"What's under that thar basket?" demanded Peter Giles, rather sheepishly, as he sat down again.

"What's under that basket?" asked Peter Giles, a bit sheepishly, as he sat down again.

"Nuthin' but the duck-legged Dominicky," said Clarsie, "what air bein' broke up from settin'." The moonlight was full upon the dimpling merriment in her face, upon her shining eyes and parted red lips, and her gurgling laughter was pleasant to hear. Tom Pratt edged his chair a trifle nearer, as he, too, sat down.

"Nothin' but the duck-legged Dominicky," said Clarsie, "what are being broke up from sitting." The moonlight shone brightly on the cheerful expressions in her face, on her sparkling eyes and slightly open red lips, and her bubbly laughter was nice to hear. Tom Pratt moved his chair a little closer as he sat down too.

"Ye oughtn't never ter break up a duck-legged hen, nor a Dominicky, nuther," he volunteered, "'kase they air sech a good kind o' hen ter kerry chickens; but a hen that is duck-legged an' Dominicky too oughter be let ter set, whether or no."

"Hey, you should never break up a duck-legged hen, or a Dominicker either," he said, "because they’re such a good kind of hen for raising chicks; but a hen that is both duck-legged and Dominicker should be allowed to sit, whether you like it or not."

Had he been warned in a dream, he could have found no more secure road to Clarsie's favor and interest than a discussion of the poultry. "I'm a-thinkin'," she said, "that it air too hot fur hens ter set now, an' 'twill be till the las' of August."

Had he been warned in a dream, he couldn't have found a better way to win Clarsie's favor and interest than by talking about the chickens. "I’m thinking," she said, "that it’s too hot for hens to sit on their eggs right now, and it will be until the end of August."

"It don't 'pear ter me ez it air hot much in June up hyar on Chilhowee,—thar's a differ, I know, down in the valley; but till July, on Chilhowee, it don't 'pear ter me ez it air too hot ter set a hen. An' a duck-legged Dominicky air mighty hard ter break up."

"It doesn't seem to me like it's very hot here in June on Chilhowee—there's a difference, I know, down in the valley; but until July, it doesn't seem to me like it's too hot to sit a hen. And a duck-legged Dominicky is really hard to break up."

"That's a fac'," Clarsie admitted; "but I'll hev ter do it, somehow, 'kase I ain't got no eggs fur her. All my hens air kerryin' of chickens."

"That's a fact," Clarsie admitted; "but I'll have to do it somehow, because I don't have any eggs for her. All my hens are raising chicks."

"Waal!" exclaimed Tom, seizing his opportunity, "I'll bring ye some ter-morrer night, when I come agin. We-uns hev got eggs ter our house."

"Waal!" Tom exclaimed, taking his chance, "I'll bring you some tomorrow night when I come back. We have eggs at our place."

"Thanky," said Clarsie, shyly smiling.

"Thanks," said Clarsie, shyly smiling.

This unique method of courtship would have progressed very prosperously but for the interference of the elders, who are an element always more or less adverse to love-making. "Ye oughter turn out yer hen now, Clarsie," said Mrs. Giles, "ez Tom air a-goin' ter bring ye some eggs ter-morrer. I wonder ye don't think it's mean ter keep her up longer'n ye air obleeged ter. Ye oughter remember ye war called a merciful critter jes' ter-day."

This unique way of dating could have gone very well if it weren't for the interference of the elders, who are always somewhat opposed to romance. "You should let your hen out now, Clarsie," Mrs. Giles said, "since Tom is going to bring you some eggs tomorrow. I wonder why you don't think it's unfair to keep her up longer than you need to. You should remember you were called a kind creature just today."

Clarsie rose precipitately, raised the basket, and out flew the "duck-legged Dominicky," with a frantic flutter and hysterical cackling. But Mrs. Giles was not to be diverted from her purpose; her thoughts had recurred to the absurd episode of the afternoon, and with her relish of the incongruity of the joke she opened upon the subject at once.

Clarsie jumped up quickly, lifted the basket, and out burst the "duck-legged Dominicky," flapping around wildly and making a noisy fuss. But Mrs. Giles wasn’t going to be sidetracked from her goal; her mind went back to the ridiculous event from earlier in the day, and with her amusement at the absurdity of the joke, she immediately jumped into the topic.

"Waal, Tom," she said, "we'll be hevin' Clarsie married, afore long, I'm a-thinkin'." The young man sat bewildered. He, too, had entertained views concerning Clarsie's speedy marriage, but with a distinctly personal application; and this frank mention of the matter by Mrs. Giles had a sinister suggestion that perhaps her ideas might be antagonistic. "An' who d'ye think hev been hyar ter-day, a-speakin' of complimints on Clarsie?" He could not answer, but he turned his head with a look of inquiry, and Mrs. Giles continued, "He is a mighty peart, likely boy,—he is."

"Waal, Tom," she said, "I think we’ll be getting Clarsie married off pretty soon." The young man sat there, confused. He had also thought about Clarsie's impending marriage, but with a very personal twist; and Mrs. Giles’ open discussion about it hinted that her thoughts might not align with his. "And who do you think has been here today, talking about compliments for Clarsie?" He couldn’t respond, but he turned his head with a questioning look, and Mrs. Giles continued, "He’s a really good-looking, sharp boy—he is."

There was a growing anger in the dismay on Tom Pratt's face; he leaned forward to hear the name with a fiery eagerness, altogether incongruous with his usual lack-lustre manner.

There was a growing anger in the distress on Tom Pratt's face; he leaned forward to catch the name with an intense eagerness, completely out of character with his usual dull demeanor.

"Old Simon Burney!" cried Mrs. Giles, with a burst of laughter. "Old Simon Burney! Jes' a-speakin' of complimints on Clarsie!"

"Old Simon Burney!" laughed Mrs. Giles. "Old Simon Burney! Just talking about compliments on Clarsie!"

The young fellow drew back with a look of disgust. "Why, he's a old man; he ain't no fit husband fur Clarsie."

The young guy pulled back with a look of disgust. "Come on, he's an old man; he's not a suitable husband for Clarsie."

"Don't ye be too sure ter count on that. I war jes' a-layin' off ter tell Clarsie that a gal oughter keep mighty clar o' widowers, 'thout she wants ter marry one. Fur I believes," said Mrs. Giles, with a wild flight of imagination, "ez them men hev got some sort'n trade with the Evil One, an' he gives 'em the power ter witch the gals, somehow, so's ter git 'em ter marry; 'kase I don't think that any gal that's got good sense air a-goin' ter be a man's second ch'ice, an' the mother of a whole pack of step-chil'ren, 'thout she air under some sort'n spell. But them men carries the day with the gals ginerally, an' I'm a-thinkin' they're banded with the devil. Ef I war a gal, an' a smart, peart boy like Simon Burney kem around a-speakin' of complimints, an' sayin' I war a merciful critter, I'd jes' give it up, an' marry him fur second ch'ice. Thar's one blessin'," she continued, contemplating the possibility in a cold-blooded fashion positively revolting to Tom Pratt: "he ain't got no tribe of chil'ren fur Clarsie ter look arter; nary chick nor child hev old Simon Burney got. He hed two, but they died."

"Don't be too sure you can count on that. I was just about to tell Clarsie that a girl should be really careful with widowers if she doesn't want to marry one. Because I believe," said Mrs. Giles, with a wild flight of imagination, "that those men have some sort of deal with the Evil One, and he gives them the power to enchant the girls somehow, so they can get them to marry; because I don't think any girl with common sense would be second choice to a man and become the mother of a whole bunch of stepchildren unless she was under some sort of spell. But those men usually win the favor of the girls, and I think they're in cahoots with the devil. If I were a girl, and a sharp, charming guy like Simon Burney came around flattering me and saying I was a kind-hearted person, I’d just give in and marry him as a second choice. There's one blessing," she continued, contemplating the possibility in a brutally honest way that was really off-putting to Tom Pratt: "he doesn't have any kids for Clarsie to take care of; old Simon Burney hasn’t got a single child. He had two, but they died."

The young man took leave presently, in great depression of spirit,—the idea that the widower was banded with the powers of evil was rather overwhelming to a man whose dependence was in merely mortal attractions; and after he had been gone a little while Clarsie ascended the ladder to a nook in the roof, which she called her room.

The young man left soon after, feeling very downcast. The thought that the widower was allied with evil forces was quite daunting for someone who relied solely on earthly attractions. After he'd been gone for a bit, Clarsie climbed the ladder to a small space in the roof that she referred to as her room.

For the first time in her life her slumber was fitful and restless, long intervals of wakefulness alternating with snatches of fantastic dreams. At last she rose and sat by the rude window, looking out through the chestnut leaves at the great moon, which had begun to dip toward the dark uncertainty of the western ridges, and at the shimmering, translucent, pearly mists that filled the intermediate valleys. All the air was dew and incense; so subtle and penetrating an odor came from that fir-tree beyond the fence that it seemed as if some invigorating infusion were thrilling along her veins; there floated upward, too, the warm fragrance of the clover, and every breath of the gentle wind brought from over the stream a thousand blended, undistinguishable perfumes of the deep forests beyond. The moon's idealizing glamour had left no trace of the uncouthness of the place which the daylight revealed; the little log house, the great overhanging chestnut-oaks, the jagged precipice before the door, the vague outlines of the distant ranges, all suffused with a magic sheen, might have seemed a stupendous alto-rilievo in silver repoussé. Still, there came here and there the sweep of the bat's dusky wings; even they were a part of the night's witchery. A tiny owl perched for a moment or two amid the dew-tipped chestnut-leaves, and gazed with great round eyes at Clarsie as solemnly as she gazed at him.

For the first time in her life, her sleep was restless and fitful, with long stretches of wakefulness mixed with snippets of surreal dreams. Eventually, she got up and sat by the rough window, looking out through the chestnut leaves at the big moon, which was starting to sink into the dark uncertainty of the western hills, and at the shimmering, translucent, pearly mists that filled the valleys in between. The air was filled with dew and a sweet scent; the aroma coming from the fir tree beyond the fence was so subtle and penetrating that it felt like something invigorating was coursing through her veins; the warm fragrance of clover floated up too, and every breath of the gentle wind carried a thousand blended, indistinguishable scents from the deep forests beyond the stream. The moon's enchanting glow had erased any trace of the roughness of the place that daylight revealed; the little log cabin, the massive chestnut oaks, the jagged cliff right outside the door, and the faint outlines of the distant hills, all bathed in a magical light, could have appeared as a stunning bas-relief in silver. Still, now and then, the shadowy wings of bats swept by; they were part of the night's charm. A tiny owl perched for a moment among the dew-drenched chestnut leaves, looking solemnly at Clarsie with its big round eyes, just as she looked back at him.

"I'm thankful enough that ye hed the grace not ter screech while ye war hyar," she said, after the bird had taken his flight. "I ain't ready ter die yit, an' a screech-owel air the sure sign."

"I'm grateful that you had the kindness not to scream while you were here," she said, after the bird had flown away. "I'm not ready to die yet, and a screech owl is a sure sign."

She felt now and then a great impatience with her wakeful mood. Once she took herself to task: "Jes' a-sittin' up hyar all night, the same ez ef I war a fox, or that thar harnt that walks Chilhowee!"

She occasionally felt a strong impatience with her inability to sleep. At one point, she scolded herself: "Just sitting up here all night, just like I’m a fox, or that ghost that walks Chilhowee!"

And then her mind reverted to Tom Pratt, to old Simon Burney, and to her mother's emphatic and oracular declaration that widowers are in league with Satan, and that the girls upon whom they cast the eye of supernatural fascination have no choice in the matter. "I wish I knowed ef that thar sayin' war true," she murmured, her face still turned to the western spurs, and the moon sinking so slowly toward them.

And then her thoughts went back to Tom Pratt, to old Simon Burney, and to her mother’s strong and mysterious statement that widowers are in cahoots with the devil, and that the girls they find so captivating have no say in the matter. "I wish I knew if that saying was true," she murmured, her face still turned toward the western hills, with the moon slowly sinking toward them.

With a sudden resolution she rose to her feet. She knew a way of telling fortunes which was, according to tradition, infallible, and she determined to try it, and ease her mind as to her future. Now was the propitious moment. "I hev always hearn that it won't come true 'thout ye try it jes' before daybreak, an' a-kneelin' down at the forks of the road." She hesitated a moment and listened intently. "They'd never git done a-laffin' at me, ef they fund it out," she thought.

With a sudden determination, she got to her feet. She knew a way to tell fortunes that, according to tradition, was foolproof, and she decided to give it a try to ease her worries about the future. Now was the perfect time. "I've always heard that it won't come true unless you try it right before dawn, while kneeling at the fork in the road." She paused for a moment and listened carefully. "They'd never stop laughing at me if they found out," she thought.

There was no sound in the house, and from the dark woods arose only those monotonous voices of the night, so familiar to her ears that she accounted their murmurous iteration as silence too. She leaned far out of the low window, caught the wide-spreading branches of the tree beside it, and swung herself noiselessly to the ground. The road before her was dark with the shadowy foliage and dank with the dew; but now and then, at long intervals, there lay athwart it a bright bar of light, where the moonshine fell through a gap in the trees. Once, as she went rapidly along her way, she saw speeding across the white radiance, lying just before her feet, the ill-omened shadow of a rabbit. She paused, with a superstitious sinking of the heart, and she heard the animal's quick, leaping rush through the bushes near at hand; but she mustered her courage, and kept steadily on. "'T ain't no use a-goin' back ter git shet o' bad luck," she argued. "Ef old Simon Burney air my fortune, he'll come whether or no,—ef all they say air true."

There was no noise in the house, and from the dark woods came only those repetitive sounds of the night, so familiar to her ears that she considered their murmuring a form of silence too. She leaned far out of the low window, grasped the wide branches of the tree beside it, and quietly swung herself down to the ground. The road in front of her was dark with shadowy foliage and damp with dew; but now and then, at long intervals, a bright beam of light crossed it where the moonlight filtered through a gap in the trees. Once, as she hurried along, she saw the ominous shadow of a rabbit darting across the white light just in front of her feet. She stopped, feeling a superstitious flutter in her stomach, and heard the quick rustle of the animal rushing through the nearby bushes; but she gathered her courage and continued on. "There's no point in going back to get rid of bad luck," she reasoned. "If old Simon Burney is my fate, he’ll come whether I want him to or not—if all they say is true."

The serpentine road curved to the mountain's brink before it forked, and there was again that familiar picture of precipice, and far-away ridges, and shining mist, and sinking moon, which was visibly turning from silver to gold. The changing lustre gilded the feathery ferns that grew in the marshy dip. Just at the angle of the divergent paths there rose into the air a great mass of indistinct white blossoms, which she knew were the exquisite mountain azaleas, and all the dark forest was starred with the blooms of the laurel.

The winding road twisted to the edge of the mountain before splitting in two, revealing that familiar scene of the cliff, distant ridges, shimmering mist, and the setting moon, which was clearly shifting from silver to gold. The changing light highlighted the delicate ferns growing in the damp hollow. Right where the paths separated, there was a large cluster of vague white flowers in the air, which she recognized as the beautiful mountain azaleas, and the dark forest was dotted with laurel blooms.

She fixed her eyes upon the mystic sphere dropping down the sky, knelt among the azaleas at the forks of the road, and repeated the time-honored invocation:—

She focused on the mysterious orb descending from the sky, knelt among the azaleas at the crossroads, and recited the ancient prayer:—

"Ef I'm a-goin' ter marry a young man, whistle, Bird, whistle. Ef I'm a-goin' ter marry an old man, low, Cow, low. Ef I ain't a-goin' ter marry nobody, knock, Death, knock."

" if I'm going to marry a young man, whistle, Bird, whistle. If I'm going to marry an old man, low, Cow, low. If I'm not going to marry anyone, knock, Death, knock."

There was a prolonged silence in the matutinal freshness and perfume of the woods. She raised her head, and listened attentively. No chirp of half-awakened bird, no tapping of woodpecker, or the mysterious death-watch; but from far along the dewy aisles of the forest, the ungrateful Spot, that Clarsie had fed more faithfully than herself, lifted up her voice, and set the echoes vibrating. Clarsie, however, had hardly time for a pang of disappointment. While she still knelt among the azaleas her large, deer-like eyes were suddenly dilated with terror. From around the curve of the road came the quick beat of hastening footsteps, the sobbing sound of panting breath, and between her and the sinking moon there passed an attenuated, one-armed figure, with a pallid, sharpened face, outlined for a moment on its brilliant disk, and dreadful starting eyes, and quivering open mouth. It disappeared in an instant among the shadows of the laurel, and Clarsie, with a horrible fear clutching at her heart, sprang to her feet.

There was a long silence in the morning chill and scent of the woods. She lifted her head and listened closely. There were no chirps from half-awake birds, no knocks from woodpeckers, or the ominous ticking of a death-watch; instead, from far along the dewy paths of the forest, the ungrateful Spot, whom Clarsie had fed more faithfully than herself, raised her voice, making the echoes resonate. Clarsie barely had time to feel a pang of disappointment. As she knelt among the azaleas, her large, doe-like eyes suddenly widened in terror. From around the bend of the road came the rapid sound of approaching footsteps, the gasping sound of heavy breathing, and between her and the setting moon, there passed a thin, one-armed figure with a pale, sharp face, momentarily outlined against the bright disk, with dreadful wide eyes and a trembling open mouth. It vanished in an instant among the shadows of the laurel, and Clarsie, gripped by a horrible fear, jumped to her feet.

Her flight was arrested by other sounds. Before her reeling senses could distinguish them, a party of horsemen plunged down the road. They reined in suddenly as their eyes fell upon her, and their leader, an eager, authoritative man, was asking her a question. Why could she not understand him? With her nerveless hands feebly catching at the shrubs for support, she listened vaguely to his impatient, meaningless words, and saw with helpless deprecation the rising anger in his face. But there was no time to be lost. With a curse upon the stupidity of the mountaineer, who couldn't speak when she was spoken to, the party sped on in a sweeping gallop, and the rocks and the steeps were hilarious with the sound.

Her flight was interrupted by other sounds. Before her swirling senses could make sense of them, a group of horsemen came racing down the road. They pulled up suddenly when they saw her, and their leader, an eager and commanding man, began asking her something. Why couldn’t she understand him? With her trembling hands weakly grasping at the bushes for support, she vaguely listened to his impatient, confusing words and watched with helpless concern as his anger grew. But there was no time to waste. With a curse about the dumb mountaineer who couldn’t respond when spoken to, the group took off at a full gallop, and the rocks and steep slopes echoed with their noise.

When the last faint echo was hushed, Clarsie tremblingly made her way out into the road; not reassured, however, for she had a frightful conviction that there was now and then a strange stir in the laurel, and that she was stealthily watched. Her eyes were fixed upon the dense growth with a morbid fascination, as she moved away; but she was once more rooted to the spot when the leaves parted and in the golden moonlight the ghost stood before her. She could not nerve herself to run past him, and he was directly in her way homeward. His face was white, and lined, and thin; that pitiful quiver was never still in the parted lips; he looked at her with faltering, beseeching eyes. Clarsie's merciful heart was stirred. "What ails ye, ter come back hyar, an' foller me?" she cried out, abruptly. And then a great horror fell upon her. Was not one to whom a ghost should speak doomed to death, sudden and immediate?

When the last faint echo faded away, Clarsie nervously stepped out onto the road; she wasn’t reassured, though, because she felt a terrible sense that there was an unsettling movement in the laurel, and that someone was watching her stealthily. Her eyes were fixed on the thick foliage with a morbid curiosity as she moved away, but she was rooted to the spot again when the leaves parted and, in the golden moonlight, the ghost appeared before her. She couldn’t bring herself to run past him since he was directly in her way home. His face was pale, lined, and gaunt; a pitiful tremor never left his parted lips, and he looked at her with uncertain, pleading eyes. Clarsie’s compassionate heart was touched. “What’s wrong with you, to come back here and follow me?” she exclaimed abruptly. And then a wave of dread washed over her. Wasn't someone whom a ghost spoke to doomed to death, suddenly and without warning?

The ghost replied in a broken, shivering voice, like a wail of pain, "I war a-starvin',—I war a-starvin'," with despairing iteration.

The ghost replied in a shaky, trembling voice, like a cry of pain, "I’m starving—I’m starving," with desperate repetition.

It was all over, Clarsie thought. The ghost had spoken, and she was a doomed creature. She wondered that she did not fall dead in the road. But while those beseeching eyes were fastened in piteous appeal on hers, she could not leave him. "I never hearn that 'bout ye," she said, reflectively. "I knows ye hed awful troubles while ye war alive, but I never knowed ez ye war starved."

It was all over, Clarsie thought. The ghost had spoken, and she was a doomed soul. She wondered why she didn’t just collapse in the street. But as those pleading eyes locked onto hers, she couldn’t walk away from him. "I never heard that about you," she said thoughtfully. "I know you had terrible troubles while you were alive, but I never knew you were starved."

Surely that was a gleam of sharp surprise in the ghost's prominent eyes, succeeded by a sly intelligence.

Surely that was a sharp look of surprise in the ghost's prominent eyes, followed by a knowing glance.

"Day is nigh ter breakin'," Clarsie admonished him, as the lower rim of the moon touched the silver mists of the west. "What air ye a-wantin' of me?"

"Day is almost breaking," Clarsie warned him, as the lower edge of the moon met the silver mists of the west. "What do you want from me?"

There was a short silence. Mind travels far in such intervals. Clarsie's thoughts had overtaken the scenes when she should have died that sudden terrible death: when there would be no one left to feed the chickens; when no one would care if the pigs cried with the pangs of hunger, unless, indeed, it were time for them to be fattened before killing. The mare,—how often would she be taken from the plow, and shut up for the night in her shanty without a drop of water, after her hard day's work! Who would churn, or spin, or weave? Clarsie could not understand how the machinery of the universe could go on without her. And Towse, poor Towse! He was a useless cumberer of the ground, and it was hardly to be supposed that after his protector was gone he would be spared a blow or a bullet, to hasten his lagging death. But Clarsie still stood in the road, and watched the face of the ghost, as he, with his eager, starting eyes, scanned her open, ingenuous countenance.

There was a brief silence. Thoughts wander far in moments like that. Clarsie's mind raced through the moments she could have died that sudden, awful death: when there would be no one to feed the chickens; when no one would care if the pigs cried out from hunger, unless it was time to fatten them up before slaughter. The mare—how often would she be pulled from the plow and locked up for the night in her shed without a drop of water after her long day! Who would churn, spin, or weave? Clarsie couldn’t grasp how the world could keep moving on without her. And Towse, poor Towse! He was just a useless burden on the ground, and it was hard to believe that after his protector was gone, he wouldn’t get a blow or a bullet to speed up his slow death. But Clarsie still stood in the road, watching the ghost’s face as he, with his eager, wide eyes, examined her open, sincere expression.

"Ye do ez ye air bid, or it'll be the worse for ye," said the "harnt," in the same quivering, shrill tone. "Thar's hunger in the nex' worl' ez well ez in this, an' ye bring me some vittles hyar this time ter-morrer, an' don't ye tell nobody ye hev seen me, nuther, or it'll be the worse for ye."

"Do what I say, or it'll be bad for you," said the "ghost," in the same trembling, high-pitched voice. "There's hunger in the next world just like in this one, so you better bring me some food here this time tomorrow, and don't tell anyone you've seen me, or it'll be bad for you."

There was a threat in his eyes as he disappeared in the laurel, and left the girl standing in the last rays of moonlight.

There was a menacing look in his eyes as he vanished into the laurel, leaving the girl standing in the final beams of moonlight.

A curious doubt was stirring in Clarsie's mind when she reached home, in the early dawn, and heard her father talking about the sheriff and his posse, who had stopped at the house in the night, and roused its inmates, to know if they had seen a man pass that way.

A curious doubt was stirring in Clarsie's mind when she got home in the early morning and heard her father talking about the sheriff and his posse, who had stopped by the house during the night and woke everyone up to ask if they had seen a man pass that way.

"Clarsie never hearn none o' the noise, I'll be bound, 'kase she always sleeps like a log," said Mrs. Giles, as her daughter came in with the pail, after milking the cow. "Tell her 'bout'n it."

"Clarsie never heard any of the noise, I’ll bet, because she always sleeps like a log," said Mrs. Giles, as her daughter came in with the bucket after milking the cow. "Tell her about it."

"They kem a-bustin' along hyar a while afore daybreak, a-runnin' arter the man," drawled Mr. Giles, dramatically. "An' they knocked me up, ter know ef ennybody hed passed. An' one o' them men—I never seen none of 'em afore; they's all valley folks, I'm a-thinkin'—an' one of 'em bruk his saddle-girt' a good piece down the road, an' he kem back ter borrer mine; an' ez we war a-fixin' of it, he tole me what they war all arter. He said that word war tuk ter the sheriff down yander in the valley—'pears ter me them town-folks don't think nobody in the mountings hev got good sense—word war tuk ter the sheriff 'bout this one-armed harnt that walks Chilhowee; an' he sot it down that Reuben Crabb warn't dead at all, an' Joel jes' purtended ter hev buried him, an' it air Reuben hisself that walks Chilhowee. An' thar air two hunderd dollars blood-money reward fur ennybody ez kin ketch him. These hyar valley folks air powerful cur'ous critters,—two hunderd dollars blood-money reward fur that thar harnt that walks Chilhowee! I jes' sot myself ter laffin' when that thar cuss tole it so solemn. I jes' 'lowed ter him ez he couldn't shoot a harnt nor hang a harnt, an' Reuben Crabb hed about got done with his persecutions in this worl'. An' he said that by the time they hed scoured this mounting, like they hed laid off ter do, they would find that that thar puny little harnt war nuthin' but a mortal man, an' could be kep' in a jail ez handy ez enny other flesh an' blood. He said the sheriff 'lowed ez the reason Reuben hed jes' taken ter walk Chilhowee sence Joel died is 'kase thar air nobody ter feed him, like Joel done, mebbe, in the nights; an' Reuben always war a pore, one-armed, weakly critter, what can't even kerry a gun, an' he air driv by hunger out'n the hole whar he stays, ter prowl round the cornfields an' hencoops ter steal suthin',—an' that's how he kem ter be seen frequent. The sheriff 'lowed that Reuben can't find enough roots an' yerbs ter keep him up; but law!—a harnt eatin'! It jes' sot me off ter laffin'. Reuben Crabb hev been too busy in torment fur the las' four year ter be a-studyin' 'bout eatin'; an' it air his harnt that walks Chilhowee."

"They came tearing along here a while before dawn, running after the man," Mr. Giles drawled dramatically. "And they woke me up to see if anyone had passed. One of those men—I’d never seen any of them before; they're all valley folks, I think—one of them broke his saddle girth a little way down the road, and he came back to borrow mine; and as we were fixing it, he told me what they were all after. He said word got to the sheriff down there in the valley—seems like those town folks don’t think anyone in the mountains has any sense—word got to the sheriff about this one-armed ghost that walks Chilhowee; and he said that Reuben Crabb wasn’t dead at all, and Joel just pretended to bury him, and it’s Reuben himself that walks Chilhowee. And there’s a $200 bounty for anyone who can catch him. These valley folks are really curious—$200 bounty for that ghost that walks Chilhowee! I just started laughing when that guy told it so seriously. I told him that he couldn’t shoot a ghost or hang one, and Reuben Crabb had about finished his troubles in this world. He said that by the time they had searched this mountain like they planned to, they’d find that little ghost was nothing but a living man and could be locked up just as easily as anyone else. He said the sheriff thought the reason Reuben had started walking Chilhowee since Joel died was because there was no one to feed him like Joel did, maybe, at night; and Reuben was always a poor, one-armed, weak guy who couldn’t even carry a gun, and hunger was driving him out of the hole where he stays to sneak around the cornfields and hen houses to steal something—and that’s why he was seen often. The sheriff thought that Reuben couldn’t find enough roots and herbs to keep him going; but good heavens!—a ghost eating! It just made me laugh. Reuben Crabb has been too busy suffering for the last four years to be thinking about eating; and it’s his ghost that walks Chilhowee."

The next morning, before the moon sank, Clarsie, with a tin pail in her hand, went to meet the ghost at the appointed place. She understood now why the terrible doom that falls upon those to whom a spirit may chance to speak had not descended upon her, and that fear was gone; but the secrecy of her errand weighed heavily. She had been scrupulously careful to put into the pail only such things as had fallen to her share at the table, and which she had saved from the meals of yesterday. "A gal that goes a-robbin' fur a hongry harnt," was her moral reflection, "oughter be throwed bodaciously off'n the bluff."

The next morning, before the moon set, Clarsie, with a tin bucket in her hand, went to meet the ghost at the agreed spot. She now understood why the terrible fate that befalls those who might speak to a spirit hadn’t affected her, and that fear was gone; but the secrecy of her mission weighed heavily on her. She had been very careful to only put in the bucket the items that had been her portion at the table, which she had saved from yesterday's meals. "A girl who goes stealing for a hungry ghost," was her moral thought, "should be thrown off the cliff without a doubt."

She found no one at the forks of the road. In the marshy dip were only the myriads of mountain azaleas, only the masses of feathery ferns, only the constellated glories of the laurel blooms. A sea of shining white mist was in the valley, with glinting golden rays striking athwart it from the great cresset of the sinking moon; here and there the long, dark, horizontal line of a distant mountain's summit rose above the vaporous shimmer, like a dreary, sombre island in the midst of enchanted waters. Her large, dreamy eyes, so wild and yet so gentle, gazed out through the laurel leaves upon the floating gilded flakes of light, as in the deep coverts of the mountain, where the fulvous-tinted deer were lying, other eyes, as wild and as gentle, dreamily watched the vanishing moon. Overhead, the filmy, lace-like clouds, fretting the blue heavens, were tinged with a faint rose. Through the trees she caught a glimpse of the red sky of dawn, and the glister of a great lucent, tremulous star. From the ground, misty blue exhalations were rising, alternating with the long lines of golden light yet drifting through the woods. It was all very still, very peaceful, almost holy. One could hardly believe that these consecrated solitudes had once reverberated with the echoes of man's death-dealing ingenuity, and that Reuben Crabb had fallen, shot through and through, amid that wealth of flowers at the forks of the road. She heard suddenly the far-away baying of a hound. Her great eyes dilated, and she lifted her head to listen. Only the solemn silence of the woods, the slow sinking of the noiseless moon, the voiceless splendor of that eloquent day-star.

She found no one at the fork in the road. In the marshy dip were only the countless mountain azaleas, only the thick masses of feathery ferns, only the clustered glories of the laurel blooms. A sea of shining white mist filled the valley, with glinting golden rays cutting through it from the large lantern of the sinking moon; here and there, the long, dark, horizontal line of a distant mountain peak rose above the vaporous shimmer, like a dreary, somber island in the middle of enchanted waters. Her large, dreamy eyes, so wild yet so gentle, gazed out through the laurel leaves at the floating gilded flakes of light, while in the deep cover of the mountain, where the tawny deer lay, other eyes as wild and gentle dreamily watched the vanishing moon. Overhead, the thin, lace-like clouds draping the blue sky were tinged with a faint rose. Through the trees, she caught a glimpse of the red dawn sky and the glimmer of a large, shimmering, pulsating star. From the ground, misty blue puffs were rising, alternating with the long lines of golden light still drifting through the woods. It was all very still, very peaceful, almost sacred. One could hardly believe that these hallowed solitudes had once echoed with the sounds of man’s destructive inventions, and that Reuben Crabb had fallen, shot through and through, amidst that wealth of flowers at the fork in the road. She suddenly heard the distant baying of a hound. Her large eyes widened, and she lifted her head to listen. Only the solemn silence of the woods, the slow sinking of the silent moon, the voiceless splendor of that radiant day-star.

Morning was close at hand, and she was beginning to wonder that the ghost did not appear, when the leaves fell into abrupt commotion, and he was standing in the road, beside her. He did not speak, but watched her with an eager, questioning intentness, as she placed the contents of the pail upon the moss at the roadside. "I'm a-comin' agin ter-morrer," she said, gently. He made no reply, quickly gathered the food from the ground, and disappeared in the deep shades of the woods.

Morning was approaching, and she began to wonder why the ghost hadn't shown up, when the leaves suddenly rustled, and he was standing in the road next to her. He didn't say anything but looked at her with an eager, questioning intensity as she set the contents of the pail on the moss by the roadside. "I'll be back again tomorrow," she said softly. He didn't respond, quickly picked up the food from the ground, and vanished into the dark shadows of the woods.

She had not expected thanks, for she was accustomed only to the gratitude of dumb beasts; but she was vaguely conscious of something wanting, as she stood motionless for a moment, and watched the burnished rim of the moon slip down behind the western mountains. Then she slowly walked along her misty way in the dim light of the coming dawn. There was a footstep in the road behind her; she thought it was the ghost once more. She turned, and met Simon Burney, face to face. His rod was on his shoulder, and a string of fish was in his hand.

She hadn’t expected thanks, since she was used to the gratitude of silent animals; but she sensed something missing as she stood still for a moment, watching the shiny edge of the moon disappear behind the western mountains. Then she slowly continued on her foggy path in the faint light of the approaching dawn. She heard a footstep on the road behind her; she thought it was the ghost again. She turned and came face to face with Simon Burney. He had his fishing rod over his shoulder and a string of fish in his hand.

"Ye air a-doin' wrongful, Clarsie," he said, sternly. "It air agin the law fur folks ter feed an' shelter them ez is a-runnin' from jestice. An' ye'll git yerself inter trouble. Other folks will find ye out, besides me, an' then the sheriff'll be up hyar arter ye."

"You're doing something wrong, Clarsie," he said firmly. "It's against the law for people to feed and shelter those who are running from justice. And you'll get yourself into trouble. Other people will find out, not just me, and then the sheriff will be here after you."

The tears rose to Clarsie's eyes. This prospect was infinitely more terrifying than the awful doom which follows the horror of a ghost's speech.

The tears welled up in Clarsie's eyes. This possibility was far more frightening than the terrible fate that comes after the horror of a ghost's words.

"I can't holp it," she said, however, doggedly swinging the pail back and forth. "I can't gin my consent ter starvin' of folks, even ef they air a-hidin' an' a-runnin' from jestice."

"I can't help it," she said, stubbornly swinging the pail back and forth. "I can't give my consent to starving people, even if they are hiding and running from justice."

"They mought put ye in jail, too,—I dunno," suggested Simon Burney.

"They might put you in jail, too—I don't know," suggested Simon Burney.

"I can't holp that, nuther," said Clarsie, the sobs rising, and the tears falling fast. "Ef they comes an' gits me, and puts me in the pen'tiary away down yander, somewhars in the valley, like they done Jane Simpkins, fur a-cuttin' of her step-mother's throat with a butcher-knife, while she war asleep,—though some said Jane war crazy,—I can't gin my consent ter starvin' of folks."

"I can't help that either," Clarsie said, her sobs growing louder and tears streaming down her face. "If they come and get me, and put me in the penitentiary down there in the valley, like they did with Jane Simpkins for cutting her stepmother's throat with a butcher knife while she was asleep—though some said Jane was crazy—I can't agree to starving people."

A recollection came over Simon Burney of the simile of "hendering the sun from shining."

A memory came to Simon Burney about the saying "stopping the sun from shining."

"She hev done sot it down in her mind," he thought, as he walked on beside her and looked at her resolute face. Still he did not relinquish his effort.

"She has definitely made up her mind," he thought, as he walked alongside her and observed her determined expression. Still, he didn’t give up on his efforts.

"Doin' wrong, Clarsie, ter aid folks what air a-doin' wrong, an' mebbe hev done wrong, air powerful hurtful ter everybody, an' henders the law an' jestice."

"Doin' wrong, Clarsie, to help people who are doing wrong, and maybe have done wrong, is really harmful to everyone, and it interferes with the law and justice."

"I can't holp it," said Clarsie.

"I can't help it," said Clarsie.

"It 'pears toler'ble comical ter me," said Simon Burney, with a sudden perception of a curious fact which has proved a marvel to wiser men, "that no matter how good a woman is, she ain't got no respect fur the laws of the country, an' don't sot no store by jestice." After a momentary silence he appealed to her on another basis. "Somebody will ketch him arter a while, ez sure ez ye air born. The sheriff's a-sarchin' now, an' by the time that word gits around, all the mounting boys'll turn out, 'kase thar air two hunderd dollars blood-money fur him. An' then he'll think, when they ketches him,—an' everybody'll say so, too,—ez ye war constant in feedin' him jes' ter 'tice him ter comin' ter one place, so ez ye could tell somebody whar ter go ter ketch him, an' make them gin ye haffen the blood-money, mebbe. That's what the mounting will say, mos' likely."

"It seems pretty funny to me," said Simon Burney, suddenly realizing a curious fact that has amazed wiser people, "that no matter how good a woman is, she doesn't have any respect for the laws of the country, and doesn’t care about justice." After a brief silence, he appealed to her in a different way. "Someone will catch him eventually, just as sure as you’re born. The sheriff is searching now, and by the time word spreads, all the local guys will show up because there’s a two hundred dollar bounty on him. And then he’ll think, when they catch him—and everyone will say so too—that you were constantly feeding him just to lure him to one place, so you could tell someone where to find him and make them give you half of the bounty, maybe. That’s what the locals will probably say."

"I can't holp it," said Clarsie, once more.

"I can't help it," said Clarsie, once more.

He left her walking on toward the rising sun, and retraced his way to the forks of the road. The jubilant morning was filled with the song of birds; the sunlight flashed on the dew; all the delicate enameled bells of the pink and white azaleas were swinging tremulously in the wind; the aroma of ferns and mint rose on the delicious fresh air. Presently he checked his pace, creeping stealthily on the moss and grass beside the road rather than in the beaten path. He pulled aside the leaves of the laurel with no more stir than the wind might have made, and stole cautiously through its dense growth, till he came suddenly upon the puny little ghost, lying in the sun at the foot of a tree. The frightened creature sprang to his feet with a wild cry of terror, but before he could move a step he was caught and held fast in the strong grip of the stalwart mountaineer beside him. "I hev kem hyar ter tell ye a word, Reuben Crabb," said Simon Burney. "I hev kem hyar ter tell ye that the whole mounting air a-goin' ter turn out ter sarch fur ye; the sheriff air a-ridin' now, an' ef ye don't come along with me they'll hev ye afore night, 'kase thar air two hunderd dollars reward fur ye."

He left her walking toward the rising sun and made his way back to the fork in the road. The cheerful morning was filled with birdsong; sunlight sparkled on the dew; all the delicate, enameled petals of the pink and white azaleas swayed gently in the wind; the scent of ferns and mint filled the fresh air. Soon, he slowed his pace, moving quietly on the moss and grass beside the road instead of the worn path. He gently pushed aside the laurel leaves without making any more noise than the wind would have, and carefully made his way through its thick undergrowth until he suddenly stumbled upon the small ghost, lying in the sun at the base of a tree. The startled creature jumped to his feet with a wild cry of fear, but before he could take a step, he was caught and held tightly by the strong grip of the sturdy mountaineer next to him. "I've come here to tell you something, Reuben Crabb," said Simon Burney. "I've come here to tell you that the whole mountain is going to come out to search for you; the sheriff is riding now, and if you don’t come with me, they’ll have you by nightfall, because there’s a two hundred dollar reward for you."

What a piteous wail went up to the smiling blue sky, seen through the dappling leaves above them! What a horror, and despair, and prescient agony were in the hunted creature's face! The ghost struggled no longer; he slipped from his feet down upon the roots of the tree, and turned that woful face, with its starting eyes and drawn muscles and quivering parted lips, up toward the unseeing sky.

What a heartbreaking cry rose to the bright blue sky, filtered through the dappled leaves overhead! What horror, despair, and a sense of impending doom were etched on the face of the hunted creature! The ghost fought no more; he fell to the ground at the base of the tree, lifting that sorrowful face, with its wide eyes, tight muscles, and trembling lips, toward the indifferent sky.

"God A'mighty, man!" exclaimed Simon Burney, moved to pity. "Whyn't ye quit this hyar way of livin' in the woods like ye war a wolf? Whyn't ye come back an' stand yer trial? From all I've hearn tell, it 'pears ter me ez the jury air obleeged ter let ye off, an' I'll take keer of ye agin them Grims."

"God Almighty, man!" exclaimed Simon Burney, feeling sorry for him. "Why don’t you stop living out here in the woods like you’re a wolf? Why don’t you come back and face your trial? From everything I’ve heard, it seems the jury is obligated to let you off, and I’ll take care of you against those Grims."

"I hain't got no place ter live in," cried out the ghost, with a keen despair.

"I don't have anywhere to live," the ghost cried out, filled with deep despair.

Simon Barney hesitated. Reuben Crabb was possibly a murderer,—at the best could but be a burden. The burden, however, had fallen in his way, and he lifted it.

Simon Barney hesitated. Reuben Crabb was possibly a murderer—at best, he could only be a burden. However, that burden had come to him, and he accepted it.

"I tell ye now, Reuben Crabb," he said, "I ain't a-goin' ter holp no man ter break the law an' hender jestice; but ef ye will go an' stand yer trial, I'll take keer of ye agin them Grims ez long ez I kin fire a rifle. An' arter the jury hev done let ye off, ye air welcome ter live along o' me at my house till ye die. Ye air no-'count ter work, I know, but I ain't a-goin' ter grudge ye fur a livin' at my house."

"I’m telling you now, Reuben Crabb," he said, "I’m not going to help anyone break the law and interfere with justice; but if you’ll go and stand your trial, I’ll take care of you against those Grims as long as I can fire a rifle. And after the jury lets you off, you’re welcome to live with me in my house for as long as you want. I know you’re not much good for work, but I’m not going to hold it against you for living at my place."

And so it came to pass that the reward set upon the head of the harnt that walked Chilhowee was never claimed.

And so it happened that the reward placed on the head of the ghost that roamed Chilhowee was never claimed.

With his powerful ally, the forlorn little spectre went to stand his trial, and the jury acquitted him without leaving the box. Then he came back to the mountains to live with Simon Burney. The cruel gibes of his burly mockers that had beset his feeble life from his childhood up, the deprivation and loneliness and despair and fear that had filled those days when he walked Chilhowee, had not improved the harnt's temper. He was a helpless creature, not able to carry a gun or hold a plow, and the years that he spent smoking his cob-pipe in Simon Burney's door were idle years and unhappy. But Mrs. Giles said she thought he was "a mighty lucky little critter: fust, he hed Joel ter take keer of him an' feed him, when he tuk ter the woods ter pertend he war a harnt; an' they do say now that Clarsie Pratt, afore she war married, used ter kerry him vittles, too; an' then old Simon Burney tuk him up an' fed him ez plenty ez ef he war a good workin' hand, an' gin him clothes an' house-room, an' put up with his jawin' jes' like he never hearn a word of it. But law! some folks dunno when they air well off."

With his strong ally, the sad little ghost went to face his trial, and the jury cleared him without even leaving the box. After that, he returned to the mountains to live with Simon Burney. The harsh taunts of his bullying tormentors that had plagued his weak life since childhood, along with the isolation, loneliness, despair, and fear that filled his days while he walked Chilhowee, hadn't improved the ghost's mood. He was a helpless being, unable to carry a gun or work a plow, and the years he spent smoking his corncob pipe at Simon Burney's door were idle and unhappy. But Mrs. Giles said she thought he was "a really lucky little critter: first, he had Joel to take care of him and feed him when he went into the woods to pretend he was a ghost; and they say now that Clarsie Pratt, before she got married, used to bring him food, too; and then old Simon Burney took him in and fed him as if he were a good worker, and gave him clothes and a place to stay, and just put up with his complaining like he never heard a word of it. But goodness! some people don’t know how good they have it."

There was only a sluggish current of peasant blood in Simon Burney's veins, but a prince could not have dispensed hospitality with a more royal hand. Ungrudgingly he gave of his best; valiantly he defended his thankless guest at the risk of his life; with a moral gallantry he struggled with his sloth, and worked early and late, that there might be enough to divide. There was no possibility of a recompense for him, not even in the encomiums of discriminating friends, nor the satisfaction of tutored feelings and a practiced spiritual discernment; for he was an uncouth creature, and densely ignorant.

There was only a slow current of peasant blood in Simon Burney's veins, but a prince couldn't have offered hospitality more generously. He willingly shared his best; he bravely defended his ungrateful guest at great personal risk; with moral courage, he fought against his laziness and worked tirelessly so there would be enough to share. There was no chance for him to be repaid, not even with praise from discerning friends, nor with the satisfaction of refined feelings and cultivated spiritual insight; he was an awkward person and seriously uninformed.

The grace of culture is, in its way, a fine thing, but the best that art can do—the polish of a gentleman—is hardly equal to the best that Nature can do in her higher moods.

The beauty of culture is, in its own way, a wonderful thing, but the best that art can achieve—the refinement of a gentleman—is barely comparable to the best that Nature can offer in her finest moments.


[Transcriber's Note: Inconsistent hyphenation left as printed.]

[Transcriber's Note: Inconsistent hyphenation left as printed.]


Download ePUB

If you like this ebook, consider a donation!